You cannot select more than 25 topics
Topics must start with a letter or number, can include dashes ('-') and can be up to 35 characters long.
13426 lines
688 KiB
Plaintext
13426 lines
688 KiB
Plaintext
10 months ago
|
The Project Gutenberg EBook of Pride and Prejudice, by Jane Austen
|
||
|
|
||
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
|
||
|
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
|
||
|
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
|
||
|
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Title: Pride and Prejudice
|
||
|
|
||
|
Author: Jane Austen
|
||
|
|
||
|
Posting Date: August 26, 2008 [EBook #1342]
|
||
|
Release Date: June, 1998
|
||
|
[Last updated: August 11, 2011]
|
||
|
|
||
|
Language: English
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK PRIDE AND PREJUDICE ***
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Produced by Anonymous Volunteers
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
PRIDE AND PREJUDICE
|
||
|
|
||
|
By Jane Austen
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 1
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
It is a truth universally acknowledged, that a single man in possession
|
||
|
of a good fortune, must be in want of a wife.
|
||
|
|
||
|
However little known the feelings or views of such a man may be on his
|
||
|
first entering a neighbourhood, this truth is so well fixed in the minds
|
||
|
of the surrounding families, that he is considered the rightful property
|
||
|
of some one or other of their daughters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Mr. Bennet," said his lady to him one day, "have you heard that
|
||
|
Netherfield Park is let at last?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet replied that he had not.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But it is," returned she; "for Mrs. Long has just been here, and she
|
||
|
told me all about it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet made no answer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you not want to know who has taken it?" cried his wife impatiently.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_You_ want to tell me, and I have no objection to hearing it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was invitation enough.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, my dear, you must know, Mrs. Long says that Netherfield is taken
|
||
|
by a young man of large fortune from the north of England; that he came
|
||
|
down on Monday in a chaise and four to see the place, and was so much
|
||
|
delighted with it, that he agreed with Mr. Morris immediately; that he
|
||
|
is to take possession before Michaelmas, and some of his servants are to
|
||
|
be in the house by the end of next week."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is his name?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Bingley."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is he married or single?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! Single, my dear, to be sure! A single man of large fortune; four or
|
||
|
five thousand a year. What a fine thing for our girls!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How so? How can it affect them?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Mr. Bennet," replied his wife, "how can you be so tiresome! You
|
||
|
must know that I am thinking of his marrying one of them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is that his design in settling here?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Design! Nonsense, how can you talk so! But it is very likely that he
|
||
|
_may_ fall in love with one of them, and therefore you must visit him as
|
||
|
soon as he comes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I see no occasion for that. You and the girls may go, or you may send
|
||
|
them by themselves, which perhaps will be still better, for as you are
|
||
|
as handsome as any of them, Mr. Bingley may like you the best of the
|
||
|
party."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear, you flatter me. I certainly _have_ had my share of beauty, but
|
||
|
I do not pretend to be anything extraordinary now. When a woman has five
|
||
|
grown-up daughters, she ought to give over thinking of her own beauty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In such cases, a woman has not often much beauty to think of."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But, my dear, you must indeed go and see Mr. Bingley when he comes into
|
||
|
the neighbourhood."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is more than I engage for, I assure you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But consider your daughters. Only think what an establishment it would
|
||
|
be for one of them. Sir William and Lady Lucas are determined to
|
||
|
go, merely on that account, for in general, you know, they visit no
|
||
|
newcomers. Indeed you must go, for it will be impossible for _us_ to
|
||
|
visit him if you do not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are over-scrupulous, surely. I dare say Mr. Bingley will be very
|
||
|
glad to see you; and I will send a few lines by you to assure him of my
|
||
|
hearty consent to his marrying whichever he chooses of the girls; though
|
||
|
I must throw in a good word for my little Lizzy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I desire you will do no such thing. Lizzy is not a bit better than the
|
||
|
others; and I am sure she is not half so handsome as Jane, nor half so
|
||
|
good-humoured as Lydia. But you are always giving _her_ the preference."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They have none of them much to recommend them," replied he; "they are
|
||
|
all silly and ignorant like other girls; but Lizzy has something more of
|
||
|
quickness than her sisters."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Bennet, how _can_ you abuse your own children in such a way? You
|
||
|
take delight in vexing me. You have no compassion for my poor nerves."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You mistake me, my dear. I have a high respect for your nerves. They
|
||
|
are my old friends. I have heard you mention them with consideration
|
||
|
these last twenty years at least."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah, you do not know what I suffer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But I hope you will get over it, and live to see many young men of four
|
||
|
thousand a year come into the neighbourhood."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will be no use to us, if twenty such should come, since you will not
|
||
|
visit them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Depend upon it, my dear, that when there are twenty, I will visit them
|
||
|
all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet was so odd a mixture of quick parts, sarcastic humour,
|
||
|
reserve, and caprice, that the experience of three-and-twenty years had
|
||
|
been insufficient to make his wife understand his character. _Her_ mind
|
||
|
was less difficult to develop. She was a woman of mean understanding,
|
||
|
little information, and uncertain temper. When she was discontented,
|
||
|
she fancied herself nervous. The business of her life was to get her
|
||
|
daughters married; its solace was visiting and news.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 2
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet was among the earliest of those who waited on Mr. Bingley. He
|
||
|
had always intended to visit him, though to the last always assuring
|
||
|
his wife that he should not go; and till the evening after the visit was
|
||
|
paid she had no knowledge of it. It was then disclosed in the following
|
||
|
manner. Observing his second daughter employed in trimming a hat, he
|
||
|
suddenly addressed her with:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope Mr. Bingley will like it, Lizzy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We are not in a way to know _what_ Mr. Bingley likes," said her mother
|
||
|
resentfully, "since we are not to visit."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But you forget, mamma," said Elizabeth, "that we shall meet him at the
|
||
|
assemblies, and that Mrs. Long promised to introduce him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not believe Mrs. Long will do any such thing. She has two nieces
|
||
|
of her own. She is a selfish, hypocritical woman, and I have no opinion
|
||
|
of her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No more have I," said Mr. Bennet; "and I am glad to find that you do
|
||
|
not depend on her serving you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet deigned not to make any reply, but, unable to contain
|
||
|
herself, began scolding one of her daughters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Don't keep coughing so, Kitty, for Heaven's sake! Have a little
|
||
|
compassion on my nerves. You tear them to pieces."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Kitty has no discretion in her coughs," said her father; "she times
|
||
|
them ill."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not cough for my own amusement," replied Kitty fretfully. "When is
|
||
|
your next ball to be, Lizzy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To-morrow fortnight."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Aye, so it is," cried her mother, "and Mrs. Long does not come back
|
||
|
till the day before; so it will be impossible for her to introduce him,
|
||
|
for she will not know him herself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then, my dear, you may have the advantage of your friend, and introduce
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley to _her_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Impossible, Mr. Bennet, impossible, when I am not acquainted with him
|
||
|
myself; how can you be so teasing?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I honour your circumspection. A fortnight's acquaintance is certainly
|
||
|
very little. One cannot know what a man really is by the end of a
|
||
|
fortnight. But if _we_ do not venture somebody else will; and after all,
|
||
|
Mrs. Long and her daughters must stand their chance; and, therefore, as
|
||
|
she will think it an act of kindness, if you decline the office, I will
|
||
|
take it on myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The girls stared at their father. Mrs. Bennet said only, "Nonsense,
|
||
|
nonsense!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What can be the meaning of that emphatic exclamation?" cried he. "Do
|
||
|
you consider the forms of introduction, and the stress that is laid on
|
||
|
them, as nonsense? I cannot quite agree with you _there_. What say you,
|
||
|
Mary? For you are a young lady of deep reflection, I know, and read
|
||
|
great books and make extracts."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mary wished to say something sensible, but knew not how.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"While Mary is adjusting her ideas," he continued, "let us return to Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sick of Mr. Bingley," cried his wife.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sorry to hear _that_; but why did not you tell me that before? If
|
||
|
I had known as much this morning I certainly would not have called
|
||
|
on him. It is very unlucky; but as I have actually paid the visit, we
|
||
|
cannot escape the acquaintance now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The astonishment of the ladies was just what he wished; that of Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet perhaps surpassing the rest; though, when the first tumult of joy
|
||
|
was over, she began to declare that it was what she had expected all the
|
||
|
while.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How good it was in you, my dear Mr. Bennet! But I knew I should
|
||
|
persuade you at last. I was sure you loved your girls too well to
|
||
|
neglect such an acquaintance. Well, how pleased I am! and it is such a
|
||
|
good joke, too, that you should have gone this morning and never said a
|
||
|
word about it till now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now, Kitty, you may cough as much as you choose," said Mr. Bennet; and,
|
||
|
as he spoke, he left the room, fatigued with the raptures of his wife.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What an excellent father you have, girls!" said she, when the door was
|
||
|
shut. "I do not know how you will ever make him amends for his kindness;
|
||
|
or me, either, for that matter. At our time of life it is not so
|
||
|
pleasant, I can tell you, to be making new acquaintances every day; but
|
||
|
for your sakes, we would do anything. Lydia, my love, though you _are_
|
||
|
the youngest, I dare say Mr. Bingley will dance with you at the next
|
||
|
ball."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh!" said Lydia stoutly, "I am not afraid; for though I _am_ the
|
||
|
youngest, I'm the tallest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The rest of the evening was spent in conjecturing how soon he would
|
||
|
return Mr. Bennet's visit, and determining when they should ask him to
|
||
|
dinner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 3
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Not all that Mrs. Bennet, however, with the assistance of her five
|
||
|
daughters, could ask on the subject, was sufficient to draw from her
|
||
|
husband any satisfactory description of Mr. Bingley. They attacked him
|
||
|
in various ways--with barefaced questions, ingenious suppositions, and
|
||
|
distant surmises; but he eluded the skill of them all, and they were at
|
||
|
last obliged to accept the second-hand intelligence of their neighbour,
|
||
|
Lady Lucas. Her report was highly favourable. Sir William had been
|
||
|
delighted with him. He was quite young, wonderfully handsome, extremely
|
||
|
agreeable, and, to crown the whole, he meant to be at the next assembly
|
||
|
with a large party. Nothing could be more delightful! To be fond of
|
||
|
dancing was a certain step towards falling in love; and very lively
|
||
|
hopes of Mr. Bingley's heart were entertained.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I can but see one of my daughters happily settled at Netherfield,"
|
||
|
said Mrs. Bennet to her husband, "and all the others equally well
|
||
|
married, I shall have nothing to wish for."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In a few days Mr. Bingley returned Mr. Bennet's visit, and sat about
|
||
|
ten minutes with him in his library. He had entertained hopes of being
|
||
|
admitted to a sight of the young ladies, of whose beauty he had
|
||
|
heard much; but he saw only the father. The ladies were somewhat more
|
||
|
fortunate, for they had the advantage of ascertaining from an upper
|
||
|
window that he wore a blue coat, and rode a black horse.
|
||
|
|
||
|
An invitation to dinner was soon afterwards dispatched; and already
|
||
|
had Mrs. Bennet planned the courses that were to do credit to her
|
||
|
housekeeping, when an answer arrived which deferred it all. Mr. Bingley
|
||
|
was obliged to be in town the following day, and, consequently, unable
|
||
|
to accept the honour of their invitation, etc. Mrs. Bennet was quite
|
||
|
disconcerted. She could not imagine what business he could have in town
|
||
|
so soon after his arrival in Hertfordshire; and she began to fear that
|
||
|
he might be always flying about from one place to another, and never
|
||
|
settled at Netherfield as he ought to be. Lady Lucas quieted her fears
|
||
|
a little by starting the idea of his being gone to London only to get
|
||
|
a large party for the ball; and a report soon followed that Mr. Bingley
|
||
|
was to bring twelve ladies and seven gentlemen with him to the assembly.
|
||
|
The girls grieved over such a number of ladies, but were comforted the
|
||
|
day before the ball by hearing, that instead of twelve he brought only
|
||
|
six with him from London--his five sisters and a cousin. And when
|
||
|
the party entered the assembly room it consisted of only five
|
||
|
altogether--Mr. Bingley, his two sisters, the husband of the eldest, and
|
||
|
another young man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley was good-looking and gentlemanlike; he had a pleasant
|
||
|
countenance, and easy, unaffected manners. His sisters were fine women,
|
||
|
with an air of decided fashion. His brother-in-law, Mr. Hurst, merely
|
||
|
looked the gentleman; but his friend Mr. Darcy soon drew the attention
|
||
|
of the room by his fine, tall person, handsome features, noble mien, and
|
||
|
the report which was in general circulation within five minutes
|
||
|
after his entrance, of his having ten thousand a year. The gentlemen
|
||
|
pronounced him to be a fine figure of a man, the ladies declared he
|
||
|
was much handsomer than Mr. Bingley, and he was looked at with great
|
||
|
admiration for about half the evening, till his manners gave a disgust
|
||
|
which turned the tide of his popularity; for he was discovered to be
|
||
|
proud; to be above his company, and above being pleased; and not all
|
||
|
his large estate in Derbyshire could then save him from having a most
|
||
|
forbidding, disagreeable countenance, and being unworthy to be compared
|
||
|
with his friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley had soon made himself acquainted with all the principal
|
||
|
people in the room; he was lively and unreserved, danced every dance,
|
||
|
was angry that the ball closed so early, and talked of giving
|
||
|
one himself at Netherfield. Such amiable qualities must speak for
|
||
|
themselves. What a contrast between him and his friend! Mr. Darcy danced
|
||
|
only once with Mrs. Hurst and once with Miss Bingley, declined being
|
||
|
introduced to any other lady, and spent the rest of the evening in
|
||
|
walking about the room, speaking occasionally to one of his own party.
|
||
|
His character was decided. He was the proudest, most disagreeable man
|
||
|
in the world, and everybody hoped that he would never come there again.
|
||
|
Amongst the most violent against him was Mrs. Bennet, whose dislike of
|
||
|
his general behaviour was sharpened into particular resentment by his
|
||
|
having slighted one of her daughters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth Bennet had been obliged, by the scarcity of gentlemen, to sit
|
||
|
down for two dances; and during part of that time, Mr. Darcy had been
|
||
|
standing near enough for her to hear a conversation between him and Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley, who came from the dance for a few minutes, to press his friend
|
||
|
to join it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, Darcy," said he, "I must have you dance. I hate to see you
|
||
|
standing about by yourself in this stupid manner. You had much better
|
||
|
dance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I certainly shall not. You know how I detest it, unless I am
|
||
|
particularly acquainted with my partner. At such an assembly as this
|
||
|
it would be insupportable. Your sisters are engaged, and there is not
|
||
|
another woman in the room whom it would not be a punishment to me to
|
||
|
stand up with."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would not be so fastidious as you are," cried Mr. Bingley, "for a
|
||
|
kingdom! Upon my honour, I never met with so many pleasant girls in
|
||
|
my life as I have this evening; and there are several of them you see
|
||
|
uncommonly pretty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_You_ are dancing with the only handsome girl in the room," said Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy, looking at the eldest Miss Bennet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! She is the most beautiful creature I ever beheld! But there is one
|
||
|
of her sisters sitting down just behind you, who is very pretty, and I
|
||
|
dare say very agreeable. Do let me ask my partner to introduce you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Which do you mean?" and turning round he looked for a moment at
|
||
|
Elizabeth, till catching her eye, he withdrew his own and coldly said:
|
||
|
"She is tolerable, but not handsome enough to tempt _me_; I am in no
|
||
|
humour at present to give consequence to young ladies who are slighted
|
||
|
by other men. You had better return to your partner and enjoy her
|
||
|
smiles, for you are wasting your time with me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley followed his advice. Mr. Darcy walked off; and Elizabeth
|
||
|
remained with no very cordial feelings toward him. She told the story,
|
||
|
however, with great spirit among her friends; for she had a lively,
|
||
|
playful disposition, which delighted in anything ridiculous.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The evening altogether passed off pleasantly to the whole family. Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet had seen her eldest daughter much admired by the Netherfield
|
||
|
party. Mr. Bingley had danced with her twice, and she had been
|
||
|
distinguished by his sisters. Jane was as much gratified by this as
|
||
|
her mother could be, though in a quieter way. Elizabeth felt Jane's
|
||
|
pleasure. Mary had heard herself mentioned to Miss Bingley as the most
|
||
|
accomplished girl in the neighbourhood; and Catherine and Lydia had been
|
||
|
fortunate enough never to be without partners, which was all that they
|
||
|
had yet learnt to care for at a ball. They returned, therefore, in good
|
||
|
spirits to Longbourn, the village where they lived, and of which they
|
||
|
were the principal inhabitants. They found Mr. Bennet still up. With
|
||
|
a book he was regardless of time; and on the present occasion he had a
|
||
|
good deal of curiosity as to the event of an evening which had raised
|
||
|
such splendid expectations. He had rather hoped that his wife's views on
|
||
|
the stranger would be disappointed; but he soon found out that he had a
|
||
|
different story to hear.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! my dear Mr. Bennet," as she entered the room, "we have had a most
|
||
|
delightful evening, a most excellent ball. I wish you had been there.
|
||
|
Jane was so admired, nothing could be like it. Everybody said how well
|
||
|
she looked; and Mr. Bingley thought her quite beautiful, and danced with
|
||
|
her twice! Only think of _that_, my dear; he actually danced with her
|
||
|
twice! and she was the only creature in the room that he asked a second
|
||
|
time. First of all, he asked Miss Lucas. I was so vexed to see him stand
|
||
|
up with her! But, however, he did not admire her at all; indeed, nobody
|
||
|
can, you know; and he seemed quite struck with Jane as she was going
|
||
|
down the dance. So he inquired who she was, and got introduced, and
|
||
|
asked her for the two next. Then the two third he danced with Miss King,
|
||
|
and the two fourth with Maria Lucas, and the two fifth with Jane again,
|
||
|
and the two sixth with Lizzy, and the _Boulanger_--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If he had had any compassion for _me_," cried her husband impatiently,
|
||
|
"he would not have danced half so much! For God's sake, say no more of
|
||
|
his partners. Oh that he had sprained his ankle in the first dance!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! my dear, I am quite delighted with him. He is so excessively
|
||
|
handsome! And his sisters are charming women. I never in my life saw
|
||
|
anything more elegant than their dresses. I dare say the lace upon Mrs.
|
||
|
Hurst's gown--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here she was interrupted again. Mr. Bennet protested against any
|
||
|
description of finery. She was therefore obliged to seek another branch
|
||
|
of the subject, and related, with much bitterness of spirit and some
|
||
|
exaggeration, the shocking rudeness of Mr. Darcy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But I can assure you," she added, "that Lizzy does not lose much by not
|
||
|
suiting _his_ fancy; for he is a most disagreeable, horrid man, not at
|
||
|
all worth pleasing. So high and so conceited that there was no enduring
|
||
|
him! He walked here, and he walked there, fancying himself so very
|
||
|
great! Not handsome enough to dance with! I wish you had been there, my
|
||
|
dear, to have given him one of your set-downs. I quite detest the man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 4
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
When Jane and Elizabeth were alone, the former, who had been cautious in
|
||
|
her praise of Mr. Bingley before, expressed to her sister just how very
|
||
|
much she admired him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is just what a young man ought to be," said she, "sensible,
|
||
|
good-humoured, lively; and I never saw such happy manners!--so much
|
||
|
ease, with such perfect good breeding!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is also handsome," replied Elizabeth, "which a young man ought
|
||
|
likewise to be, if he possibly can. His character is thereby complete."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I was very much flattered by his asking me to dance a second time. I
|
||
|
did not expect such a compliment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did not you? I did for you. But that is one great difference between
|
||
|
us. Compliments always take _you_ by surprise, and _me_ never. What
|
||
|
could be more natural than his asking you again? He could not help
|
||
|
seeing that you were about five times as pretty as every other woman
|
||
|
in the room. No thanks to his gallantry for that. Well, he certainly is
|
||
|
very agreeable, and I give you leave to like him. You have liked many a
|
||
|
stupider person."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dear Lizzy!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! you are a great deal too apt, you know, to like people in general.
|
||
|
You never see a fault in anybody. All the world are good and agreeable
|
||
|
in your eyes. I never heard you speak ill of a human being in your
|
||
|
life."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would not wish to be hasty in censuring anyone; but I always speak
|
||
|
what I think."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know you do; and it is _that_ which makes the wonder. With _your_
|
||
|
good sense, to be so honestly blind to the follies and nonsense of
|
||
|
others! Affectation of candour is common enough--one meets with it
|
||
|
everywhere. But to be candid without ostentation or design--to take the
|
||
|
good of everybody's character and make it still better, and say nothing
|
||
|
of the bad--belongs to you alone. And so you like this man's sisters,
|
||
|
too, do you? Their manners are not equal to his."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Certainly not--at first. But they are very pleasing women when you
|
||
|
converse with them. Miss Bingley is to live with her brother, and keep
|
||
|
his house; and I am much mistaken if we shall not find a very charming
|
||
|
neighbour in her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth listened in silence, but was not convinced; their behaviour at
|
||
|
the assembly had not been calculated to please in general; and with more
|
||
|
quickness of observation and less pliancy of temper than her sister,
|
||
|
and with a judgement too unassailed by any attention to herself, she
|
||
|
was very little disposed to approve them. They were in fact very fine
|
||
|
ladies; not deficient in good humour when they were pleased, nor in the
|
||
|
power of making themselves agreeable when they chose it, but proud and
|
||
|
conceited. They were rather handsome, had been educated in one of the
|
||
|
first private seminaries in town, had a fortune of twenty thousand
|
||
|
pounds, were in the habit of spending more than they ought, and of
|
||
|
associating with people of rank, and were therefore in every respect
|
||
|
entitled to think well of themselves, and meanly of others. They were of
|
||
|
a respectable family in the north of England; a circumstance more deeply
|
||
|
impressed on their memories than that their brother's fortune and their
|
||
|
own had been acquired by trade.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley inherited property to the amount of nearly a hundred
|
||
|
thousand pounds from his father, who had intended to purchase an
|
||
|
estate, but did not live to do it. Mr. Bingley intended it likewise, and
|
||
|
sometimes made choice of his county; but as he was now provided with a
|
||
|
good house and the liberty of a manor, it was doubtful to many of those
|
||
|
who best knew the easiness of his temper, whether he might not spend the
|
||
|
remainder of his days at Netherfield, and leave the next generation to
|
||
|
purchase.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His sisters were anxious for his having an estate of his own; but,
|
||
|
though he was now only established as a tenant, Miss Bingley was by no
|
||
|
means unwilling to preside at his table--nor was Mrs. Hurst, who had
|
||
|
married a man of more fashion than fortune, less disposed to consider
|
||
|
his house as her home when it suited her. Mr. Bingley had not been of
|
||
|
age two years, when he was tempted by an accidental recommendation
|
||
|
to look at Netherfield House. He did look at it, and into it for
|
||
|
half-an-hour--was pleased with the situation and the principal
|
||
|
rooms, satisfied with what the owner said in its praise, and took it
|
||
|
immediately.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Between him and Darcy there was a very steady friendship, in spite of
|
||
|
great opposition of character. Bingley was endeared to Darcy by the
|
||
|
easiness, openness, and ductility of his temper, though no disposition
|
||
|
could offer a greater contrast to his own, and though with his own he
|
||
|
never appeared dissatisfied. On the strength of Darcy's regard, Bingley
|
||
|
had the firmest reliance, and of his judgement the highest opinion.
|
||
|
In understanding, Darcy was the superior. Bingley was by no means
|
||
|
deficient, but Darcy was clever. He was at the same time haughty,
|
||
|
reserved, and fastidious, and his manners, though well-bred, were not
|
||
|
inviting. In that respect his friend had greatly the advantage. Bingley
|
||
|
was sure of being liked wherever he appeared, Darcy was continually
|
||
|
giving offense.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The manner in which they spoke of the Meryton assembly was sufficiently
|
||
|
characteristic. Bingley had never met with more pleasant people or
|
||
|
prettier girls in his life; everybody had been most kind and attentive
|
||
|
to him; there had been no formality, no stiffness; he had soon felt
|
||
|
acquainted with all the room; and, as to Miss Bennet, he could not
|
||
|
conceive an angel more beautiful. Darcy, on the contrary, had seen a
|
||
|
collection of people in whom there was little beauty and no fashion, for
|
||
|
none of whom he had felt the smallest interest, and from none received
|
||
|
either attention or pleasure. Miss Bennet he acknowledged to be pretty,
|
||
|
but she smiled too much.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Hurst and her sister allowed it to be so--but still they admired
|
||
|
her and liked her, and pronounced her to be a sweet girl, and one
|
||
|
whom they would not object to know more of. Miss Bennet was therefore
|
||
|
established as a sweet girl, and their brother felt authorized by such
|
||
|
commendation to think of her as he chose.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 5
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Within a short walk of Longbourn lived a family with whom the Bennets
|
||
|
were particularly intimate. Sir William Lucas had been formerly in trade
|
||
|
in Meryton, where he had made a tolerable fortune, and risen to the
|
||
|
honour of knighthood by an address to the king during his mayoralty.
|
||
|
The distinction had perhaps been felt too strongly. It had given him a
|
||
|
disgust to his business, and to his residence in a small market town;
|
||
|
and, in quitting them both, he had removed with his family to a house
|
||
|
about a mile from Meryton, denominated from that period Lucas Lodge,
|
||
|
where he could think with pleasure of his own importance, and,
|
||
|
unshackled by business, occupy himself solely in being civil to all
|
||
|
the world. For, though elated by his rank, it did not render him
|
||
|
supercilious; on the contrary, he was all attention to everybody. By
|
||
|
nature inoffensive, friendly, and obliging, his presentation at St.
|
||
|
James's had made him courteous.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Lucas was a very good kind of woman, not too clever to be a
|
||
|
valuable neighbour to Mrs. Bennet. They had several children. The eldest
|
||
|
of them, a sensible, intelligent young woman, about twenty-seven, was
|
||
|
Elizabeth's intimate friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That the Miss Lucases and the Miss Bennets should meet to talk over
|
||
|
a ball was absolutely necessary; and the morning after the assembly
|
||
|
brought the former to Longbourn to hear and to communicate.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_You_ began the evening well, Charlotte," said Mrs. Bennet with civil
|
||
|
self-command to Miss Lucas. "_You_ were Mr. Bingley's first choice."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; but he seemed to like his second better."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! you mean Jane, I suppose, because he danced with her twice. To be
|
||
|
sure that _did_ seem as if he admired her--indeed I rather believe he
|
||
|
_did_--I heard something about it--but I hardly know what--something
|
||
|
about Mr. Robinson."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps you mean what I overheard between him and Mr. Robinson; did not
|
||
|
I mention it to you? Mr. Robinson's asking him how he liked our Meryton
|
||
|
assemblies, and whether he did not think there were a great many
|
||
|
pretty women in the room, and _which_ he thought the prettiest? and his
|
||
|
answering immediately to the last question: 'Oh! the eldest Miss Bennet,
|
||
|
beyond a doubt; there cannot be two opinions on that point.'"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Upon my word! Well, that is very decided indeed--that does seem as
|
||
|
if--but, however, it may all come to nothing, you know."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_My_ overhearings were more to the purpose than _yours_, Eliza," said
|
||
|
Charlotte. "Mr. Darcy is not so well worth listening to as his friend,
|
||
|
is he?--poor Eliza!--to be only just _tolerable_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I beg you would not put it into Lizzy's head to be vexed by his
|
||
|
ill-treatment, for he is such a disagreeable man, that it would be quite
|
||
|
a misfortune to be liked by him. Mrs. Long told me last night that he
|
||
|
sat close to her for half-an-hour without once opening his lips."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you quite sure, ma'am?--is not there a little mistake?" said Jane.
|
||
|
"I certainly saw Mr. Darcy speaking to her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Aye--because she asked him at last how he liked Netherfield, and he
|
||
|
could not help answering her; but she said he seemed quite angry at
|
||
|
being spoke to."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Bingley told me," said Jane, "that he never speaks much,
|
||
|
unless among his intimate acquaintances. With _them_ he is remarkably
|
||
|
agreeable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not believe a word of it, my dear. If he had been so very
|
||
|
agreeable, he would have talked to Mrs. Long. But I can guess how it
|
||
|
was; everybody says that he is eat up with pride, and I dare say he had
|
||
|
heard somehow that Mrs. Long does not keep a carriage, and had come to
|
||
|
the ball in a hack chaise."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not mind his not talking to Mrs. Long," said Miss Lucas, "but I
|
||
|
wish he had danced with Eliza."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Another time, Lizzy," said her mother, "I would not dance with _him_,
|
||
|
if I were you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I believe, ma'am, I may safely promise you _never_ to dance with him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"His pride," said Miss Lucas, "does not offend _me_ so much as pride
|
||
|
often does, because there is an excuse for it. One cannot wonder that so
|
||
|
very fine a young man, with family, fortune, everything in his favour,
|
||
|
should think highly of himself. If I may so express it, he has a _right_
|
||
|
to be proud."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is very true," replied Elizabeth, "and I could easily forgive
|
||
|
_his_ pride, if he had not mortified _mine_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pride," observed Mary, who piqued herself upon the solidity of her
|
||
|
reflections, "is a very common failing, I believe. By all that I have
|
||
|
ever read, I am convinced that it is very common indeed; that human
|
||
|
nature is particularly prone to it, and that there are very few of us
|
||
|
who do not cherish a feeling of self-complacency on the score of some
|
||
|
quality or other, real or imaginary. Vanity and pride are different
|
||
|
things, though the words are often used synonymously. A person may
|
||
|
be proud without being vain. Pride relates more to our opinion of
|
||
|
ourselves, vanity to what we would have others think of us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I were as rich as Mr. Darcy," cried a young Lucas, who came with
|
||
|
his sisters, "I should not care how proud I was. I would keep a pack of
|
||
|
foxhounds, and drink a bottle of wine a day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then you would drink a great deal more than you ought," said Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet; "and if I were to see you at it, I should take away your bottle
|
||
|
directly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The boy protested that she should not; she continued to declare that she
|
||
|
would, and the argument ended only with the visit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 6
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The ladies of Longbourn soon waited on those of Netherfield. The visit
|
||
|
was soon returned in due form. Miss Bennet's pleasing manners grew on
|
||
|
the goodwill of Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley; and though the mother was
|
||
|
found to be intolerable, and the younger sisters not worth speaking to,
|
||
|
a wish of being better acquainted with _them_ was expressed towards
|
||
|
the two eldest. By Jane, this attention was received with the greatest
|
||
|
pleasure, but Elizabeth still saw superciliousness in their treatment
|
||
|
of everybody, hardly excepting even her sister, and could not like them;
|
||
|
though their kindness to Jane, such as it was, had a value as arising in
|
||
|
all probability from the influence of their brother's admiration. It
|
||
|
was generally evident whenever they met, that he _did_ admire her and
|
||
|
to _her_ it was equally evident that Jane was yielding to the preference
|
||
|
which she had begun to entertain for him from the first, and was in a
|
||
|
way to be very much in love; but she considered with pleasure that it
|
||
|
was not likely to be discovered by the world in general, since Jane
|
||
|
united, with great strength of feeling, a composure of temper and a
|
||
|
uniform cheerfulness of manner which would guard her from the suspicions
|
||
|
of the impertinent. She mentioned this to her friend Miss Lucas.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It may perhaps be pleasant," replied Charlotte, "to be able to impose
|
||
|
on the public in such a case; but it is sometimes a disadvantage to be
|
||
|
so very guarded. If a woman conceals her affection with the same skill
|
||
|
from the object of it, she may lose the opportunity of fixing him; and
|
||
|
it will then be but poor consolation to believe the world equally in
|
||
|
the dark. There is so much of gratitude or vanity in almost every
|
||
|
attachment, that it is not safe to leave any to itself. We can all
|
||
|
_begin_ freely--a slight preference is natural enough; but there are
|
||
|
very few of us who have heart enough to be really in love without
|
||
|
encouragement. In nine cases out of ten a women had better show _more_
|
||
|
affection than she feels. Bingley likes your sister undoubtedly; but he
|
||
|
may never do more than like her, if she does not help him on."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But she does help him on, as much as her nature will allow. If I can
|
||
|
perceive her regard for him, he must be a simpleton, indeed, not to
|
||
|
discover it too."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Remember, Eliza, that he does not know Jane's disposition as you do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But if a woman is partial to a man, and does not endeavour to conceal
|
||
|
it, he must find it out."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps he must, if he sees enough of her. But, though Bingley and Jane
|
||
|
meet tolerably often, it is never for many hours together; and, as they
|
||
|
always see each other in large mixed parties, it is impossible that
|
||
|
every moment should be employed in conversing together. Jane should
|
||
|
therefore make the most of every half-hour in which she can command his
|
||
|
attention. When she is secure of him, there will be more leisure for
|
||
|
falling in love as much as she chooses."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your plan is a good one," replied Elizabeth, "where nothing is in
|
||
|
question but the desire of being well married, and if I were determined
|
||
|
to get a rich husband, or any husband, I dare say I should adopt it. But
|
||
|
these are not Jane's feelings; she is not acting by design. As yet,
|
||
|
she cannot even be certain of the degree of her own regard nor of its
|
||
|
reasonableness. She has known him only a fortnight. She danced four
|
||
|
dances with him at Meryton; she saw him one morning at his own house,
|
||
|
and has since dined with him in company four times. This is not quite
|
||
|
enough to make her understand his character."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not as you represent it. Had she merely _dined_ with him, she might
|
||
|
only have discovered whether he had a good appetite; but you must
|
||
|
remember that four evenings have also been spent together--and four
|
||
|
evenings may do a great deal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; these four evenings have enabled them to ascertain that they
|
||
|
both like Vingt-un better than Commerce; but with respect to any other
|
||
|
leading characteristic, I do not imagine that much has been unfolded."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," said Charlotte, "I wish Jane success with all my heart; and
|
||
|
if she were married to him to-morrow, I should think she had as good a
|
||
|
chance of happiness as if she were to be studying his character for a
|
||
|
twelvemonth. Happiness in marriage is entirely a matter of chance. If
|
||
|
the dispositions of the parties are ever so well known to each other or
|
||
|
ever so similar beforehand, it does not advance their felicity in the
|
||
|
least. They always continue to grow sufficiently unlike afterwards to
|
||
|
have their share of vexation; and it is better to know as little as
|
||
|
possible of the defects of the person with whom you are to pass your
|
||
|
life."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You make me laugh, Charlotte; but it is not sound. You know it is not
|
||
|
sound, and that you would never act in this way yourself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Occupied in observing Mr. Bingley's attentions to her sister, Elizabeth
|
||
|
was far from suspecting that she was herself becoming an object of some
|
||
|
interest in the eyes of his friend. Mr. Darcy had at first scarcely
|
||
|
allowed her to be pretty; he had looked at her without admiration at the
|
||
|
ball; and when they next met, he looked at her only to criticise. But no
|
||
|
sooner had he made it clear to himself and his friends that she hardly
|
||
|
had a good feature in her face, than he began to find it was rendered
|
||
|
uncommonly intelligent by the beautiful expression of her dark eyes. To
|
||
|
this discovery succeeded some others equally mortifying. Though he had
|
||
|
detected with a critical eye more than one failure of perfect symmetry
|
||
|
in her form, he was forced to acknowledge her figure to be light and
|
||
|
pleasing; and in spite of his asserting that her manners were not those
|
||
|
of the fashionable world, he was caught by their easy playfulness. Of
|
||
|
this she was perfectly unaware; to her he was only the man who made
|
||
|
himself agreeable nowhere, and who had not thought her handsome enough
|
||
|
to dance with.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He began to wish to know more of her, and as a step towards conversing
|
||
|
with her himself, attended to her conversation with others. His doing so
|
||
|
drew her notice. It was at Sir William Lucas's, where a large party were
|
||
|
assembled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What does Mr. Darcy mean," said she to Charlotte, "by listening to my
|
||
|
conversation with Colonel Forster?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is a question which Mr. Darcy only can answer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But if he does it any more I shall certainly let him know that I see
|
||
|
what he is about. He has a very satirical eye, and if I do not begin by
|
||
|
being impertinent myself, I shall soon grow afraid of him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
On his approaching them soon afterwards, though without seeming to have
|
||
|
any intention of speaking, Miss Lucas defied her friend to mention such
|
||
|
a subject to him; which immediately provoking Elizabeth to do it, she
|
||
|
turned to him and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did you not think, Mr. Darcy, that I expressed myself uncommonly
|
||
|
well just now, when I was teasing Colonel Forster to give us a ball at
|
||
|
Meryton?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With great energy; but it is always a subject which makes a lady
|
||
|
energetic."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are severe on us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It will be _her_ turn soon to be teased," said Miss Lucas. "I am going
|
||
|
to open the instrument, Eliza, and you know what follows."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are a very strange creature by way of a friend!--always wanting me
|
||
|
to play and sing before anybody and everybody! If my vanity had taken
|
||
|
a musical turn, you would have been invaluable; but as it is, I would
|
||
|
really rather not sit down before those who must be in the habit of
|
||
|
hearing the very best performers." On Miss Lucas's persevering, however,
|
||
|
she added, "Very well, if it must be so, it must." And gravely glancing
|
||
|
at Mr. Darcy, "There is a fine old saying, which everybody here is of
|
||
|
course familiar with: 'Keep your breath to cool your porridge'; and I
|
||
|
shall keep mine to swell my song."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her performance was pleasing, though by no means capital. After a song
|
||
|
or two, and before she could reply to the entreaties of several that
|
||
|
she would sing again, she was eagerly succeeded at the instrument by her
|
||
|
sister Mary, who having, in consequence of being the only plain one in
|
||
|
the family, worked hard for knowledge and accomplishments, was always
|
||
|
impatient for display.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mary had neither genius nor taste; and though vanity had given her
|
||
|
application, it had given her likewise a pedantic air and conceited
|
||
|
manner, which would have injured a higher degree of excellence than she
|
||
|
had reached. Elizabeth, easy and unaffected, had been listened to with
|
||
|
much more pleasure, though not playing half so well; and Mary, at the
|
||
|
end of a long concerto, was glad to purchase praise and gratitude by
|
||
|
Scotch and Irish airs, at the request of her younger sisters, who,
|
||
|
with some of the Lucases, and two or three officers, joined eagerly in
|
||
|
dancing at one end of the room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy stood near them in silent indignation at such a mode of
|
||
|
passing the evening, to the exclusion of all conversation, and was too
|
||
|
much engrossed by his thoughts to perceive that Sir William Lucas was
|
||
|
his neighbour, till Sir William thus began:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What a charming amusement for young people this is, Mr. Darcy! There
|
||
|
is nothing like dancing after all. I consider it as one of the first
|
||
|
refinements of polished society."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Certainly, sir; and it has the advantage also of being in vogue amongst
|
||
|
the less polished societies of the world. Every savage can dance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sir William only smiled. "Your friend performs delightfully," he
|
||
|
continued after a pause, on seeing Bingley join the group; "and I doubt
|
||
|
not that you are an adept in the science yourself, Mr. Darcy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You saw me dance at Meryton, I believe, sir."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, indeed, and received no inconsiderable pleasure from the sight. Do
|
||
|
you often dance at St. James's?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Never, sir."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you not think it would be a proper compliment to the place?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a compliment which I never pay to any place if I can avoid it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have a house in town, I conclude?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy bowed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had once had some thought of fixing in town myself--for I am fond
|
||
|
of superior society; but I did not feel quite certain that the air of
|
||
|
London would agree with Lady Lucas."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He paused in hopes of an answer; but his companion was not disposed
|
||
|
to make any; and Elizabeth at that instant moving towards them, he was
|
||
|
struck with the action of doing a very gallant thing, and called out to
|
||
|
her:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Miss Eliza, why are you not dancing? Mr. Darcy, you must allow
|
||
|
me to present this young lady to you as a very desirable partner. You
|
||
|
cannot refuse to dance, I am sure when so much beauty is before you."
|
||
|
And, taking her hand, he would have given it to Mr. Darcy who, though
|
||
|
extremely surprised, was not unwilling to receive it, when she instantly
|
||
|
drew back, and said with some discomposure to Sir William:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, sir, I have not the least intention of dancing. I entreat you
|
||
|
not to suppose that I moved this way in order to beg for a partner."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy, with grave propriety, requested to be allowed the honour of
|
||
|
her hand, but in vain. Elizabeth was determined; nor did Sir William at
|
||
|
all shake her purpose by his attempt at persuasion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You excel so much in the dance, Miss Eliza, that it is cruel to deny
|
||
|
me the happiness of seeing you; and though this gentleman dislikes the
|
||
|
amusement in general, he can have no objection, I am sure, to oblige us
|
||
|
for one half-hour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Darcy is all politeness," said Elizabeth, smiling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is, indeed; but, considering the inducement, my dear Miss Eliza,
|
||
|
we cannot wonder at his complaisance--for who would object to such a
|
||
|
partner?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth looked archly, and turned away. Her resistance had not
|
||
|
injured her with the gentleman, and he was thinking of her with some
|
||
|
complacency, when thus accosted by Miss Bingley:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can guess the subject of your reverie."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should imagine not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are considering how insupportable it would be to pass many evenings
|
||
|
in this manner--in such society; and indeed I am quite of your opinion.
|
||
|
I was never more annoyed! The insipidity, and yet the noise--the
|
||
|
nothingness, and yet the self-importance of all those people! What would
|
||
|
I give to hear your strictures on them!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your conjecture is totally wrong, I assure you. My mind was more
|
||
|
agreeably engaged. I have been meditating on the very great pleasure
|
||
|
which a pair of fine eyes in the face of a pretty woman can bestow."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley immediately fixed her eyes on his face, and desired he
|
||
|
would tell her what lady had the credit of inspiring such reflections.
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy replied with great intrepidity:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Elizabeth Bennet."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Elizabeth Bennet!" repeated Miss Bingley. "I am all astonishment.
|
||
|
How long has she been such a favourite?--and pray, when am I to wish you
|
||
|
joy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is exactly the question which I expected you to ask. A lady's
|
||
|
imagination is very rapid; it jumps from admiration to love, from love
|
||
|
to matrimony, in a moment. I knew you would be wishing me joy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nay, if you are serious about it, I shall consider the matter is
|
||
|
absolutely settled. You will be having a charming mother-in-law, indeed;
|
||
|
and, of course, she will always be at Pemberley with you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He listened to her with perfect indifference while she chose to
|
||
|
entertain herself in this manner; and as his composure convinced her
|
||
|
that all was safe, her wit flowed long.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 7
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet's property consisted almost entirely in an estate of two
|
||
|
thousand a year, which, unfortunately for his daughters, was entailed,
|
||
|
in default of heirs male, on a distant relation; and their mother's
|
||
|
fortune, though ample for her situation in life, could but ill supply
|
||
|
the deficiency of his. Her father had been an attorney in Meryton, and
|
||
|
had left her four thousand pounds.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She had a sister married to a Mr. Phillips, who had been a clerk to
|
||
|
their father and succeeded him in the business, and a brother settled in
|
||
|
London in a respectable line of trade.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The village of Longbourn was only one mile from Meryton; a most
|
||
|
convenient distance for the young ladies, who were usually tempted
|
||
|
thither three or four times a week, to pay their duty to their aunt and
|
||
|
to a milliner's shop just over the way. The two youngest of the family,
|
||
|
Catherine and Lydia, were particularly frequent in these attentions;
|
||
|
their minds were more vacant than their sisters', and when nothing
|
||
|
better offered, a walk to Meryton was necessary to amuse their morning
|
||
|
hours and furnish conversation for the evening; and however bare of news
|
||
|
the country in general might be, they always contrived to learn some
|
||
|
from their aunt. At present, indeed, they were well supplied both with
|
||
|
news and happiness by the recent arrival of a militia regiment in the
|
||
|
neighbourhood; it was to remain the whole winter, and Meryton was the
|
||
|
headquarters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their visits to Mrs. Phillips were now productive of the most
|
||
|
interesting intelligence. Every day added something to their knowledge
|
||
|
of the officers' names and connections. Their lodgings were not long a
|
||
|
secret, and at length they began to know the officers themselves. Mr.
|
||
|
Phillips visited them all, and this opened to his nieces a store of
|
||
|
felicity unknown before. They could talk of nothing but officers; and
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley's large fortune, the mention of which gave animation
|
||
|
to their mother, was worthless in their eyes when opposed to the
|
||
|
regimentals of an ensign.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After listening one morning to their effusions on this subject, Mr.
|
||
|
Bennet coolly observed:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From all that I can collect by your manner of talking, you must be two
|
||
|
of the silliest girls in the country. I have suspected it some time, but
|
||
|
I am now convinced."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Catherine was disconcerted, and made no answer; but Lydia, with perfect
|
||
|
indifference, continued to express her admiration of Captain Carter,
|
||
|
and her hope of seeing him in the course of the day, as he was going the
|
||
|
next morning to London.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am astonished, my dear," said Mrs. Bennet, "that you should be so
|
||
|
ready to think your own children silly. If I wished to think slightingly
|
||
|
of anybody's children, it should not be of my own, however."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If my children are silly, I must hope to be always sensible of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--but as it happens, they are all of them very clever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is the only point, I flatter myself, on which we do not agree. I
|
||
|
had hoped that our sentiments coincided in every particular, but I must
|
||
|
so far differ from you as to think our two youngest daughters uncommonly
|
||
|
foolish."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Mr. Bennet, you must not expect such girls to have the sense of
|
||
|
their father and mother. When they get to our age, I dare say they will
|
||
|
not think about officers any more than we do. I remember the time when
|
||
|
I liked a red coat myself very well--and, indeed, so I do still at my
|
||
|
heart; and if a smart young colonel, with five or six thousand a year,
|
||
|
should want one of my girls I shall not say nay to him; and I thought
|
||
|
Colonel Forster looked very becoming the other night at Sir William's in
|
||
|
his regimentals."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mamma," cried Lydia, "my aunt says that Colonel Forster and Captain
|
||
|
Carter do not go so often to Miss Watson's as they did when they first
|
||
|
came; she sees them now very often standing in Clarke's library."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet was prevented replying by the entrance of the footman with
|
||
|
a note for Miss Bennet; it came from Netherfield, and the servant waited
|
||
|
for an answer. Mrs. Bennet's eyes sparkled with pleasure, and she was
|
||
|
eagerly calling out, while her daughter read,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, Jane, who is it from? What is it about? What does he say? Well,
|
||
|
Jane, make haste and tell us; make haste, my love."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is from Miss Bingley," said Jane, and then read it aloud.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"MY DEAR FRIEND,--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you are not so compassionate as to dine to-day with Louisa and me,
|
||
|
we shall be in danger of hating each other for the rest of our lives,
|
||
|
for a whole day's tete-a-tete between two women can never end without a
|
||
|
quarrel. Come as soon as you can on receipt of this. My brother and the
|
||
|
gentlemen are to dine with the officers.--Yours ever,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"CAROLINE BINGLEY"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With the officers!" cried Lydia. "I wonder my aunt did not tell us of
|
||
|
_that_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dining out," said Mrs. Bennet, "that is very unlucky."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can I have the carriage?" said Jane.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, my dear, you had better go on horseback, because it seems likely to
|
||
|
rain; and then you must stay all night."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That would be a good scheme," said Elizabeth, "if you were sure that
|
||
|
they would not offer to send her home."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! but the gentlemen will have Mr. Bingley's chaise to go to Meryton,
|
||
|
and the Hursts have no horses to theirs."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had much rather go in the coach."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But, my dear, your father cannot spare the horses, I am sure. They are
|
||
|
wanted in the farm, Mr. Bennet, are they not?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are wanted in the farm much oftener than I can get them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But if you have got them to-day," said Elizabeth, "my mother's purpose
|
||
|
will be answered."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She did at last extort from her father an acknowledgment that the horses
|
||
|
were engaged. Jane was therefore obliged to go on horseback, and her
|
||
|
mother attended her to the door with many cheerful prognostics of a
|
||
|
bad day. Her hopes were answered; Jane had not been gone long before
|
||
|
it rained hard. Her sisters were uneasy for her, but her mother was
|
||
|
delighted. The rain continued the whole evening without intermission;
|
||
|
Jane certainly could not come back.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This was a lucky idea of mine, indeed!" said Mrs. Bennet more than
|
||
|
once, as if the credit of making it rain were all her own. Till the
|
||
|
next morning, however, she was not aware of all the felicity of her
|
||
|
contrivance. Breakfast was scarcely over when a servant from Netherfield
|
||
|
brought the following note for Elizabeth:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"MY DEAREST LIZZY,--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I find myself very unwell this morning, which, I suppose, is to be
|
||
|
imputed to my getting wet through yesterday. My kind friends will not
|
||
|
hear of my returning till I am better. They insist also on my seeing Mr.
|
||
|
Jones--therefore do not be alarmed if you should hear of his having been
|
||
|
to me--and, excepting a sore throat and headache, there is not much the
|
||
|
matter with me.--Yours, etc."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, my dear," said Mr. Bennet, when Elizabeth had read the note
|
||
|
aloud, "if your daughter should have a dangerous fit of illness--if she
|
||
|
should die, it would be a comfort to know that it was all in pursuit of
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley, and under your orders."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! I am not afraid of her dying. People do not die of little trifling
|
||
|
colds. She will be taken good care of. As long as she stays there, it is
|
||
|
all very well. I would go and see her if I could have the carriage."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, feeling really anxious, was determined to go to her, though
|
||
|
the carriage was not to be had; and as she was no horsewoman, walking
|
||
|
was her only alternative. She declared her resolution.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How can you be so silly," cried her mother, "as to think of such a
|
||
|
thing, in all this dirt! You will not be fit to be seen when you get
|
||
|
there."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I shall be very fit to see Jane--which is all I want."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is this a hint to me, Lizzy," said her father, "to send for the
|
||
|
horses?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, indeed, I do not wish to avoid the walk. The distance is nothing
|
||
|
when one has a motive; only three miles. I shall be back by dinner."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I admire the activity of your benevolence," observed Mary, "but every
|
||
|
impulse of feeling should be guided by reason; and, in my opinion,
|
||
|
exertion should always be in proportion to what is required."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We will go as far as Meryton with you," said Catherine and Lydia.
|
||
|
Elizabeth accepted their company, and the three young ladies set off
|
||
|
together.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If we make haste," said Lydia, as they walked along, "perhaps we may
|
||
|
see something of Captain Carter before he goes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In Meryton they parted; the two youngest repaired to the lodgings of one
|
||
|
of the officers' wives, and Elizabeth continued her walk alone, crossing
|
||
|
field after field at a quick pace, jumping over stiles and springing
|
||
|
over puddles with impatient activity, and finding herself at last
|
||
|
within view of the house, with weary ankles, dirty stockings, and a face
|
||
|
glowing with the warmth of exercise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was shown into the breakfast-parlour, where all but Jane were
|
||
|
assembled, and where her appearance created a great deal of surprise.
|
||
|
That she should have walked three miles so early in the day, in such
|
||
|
dirty weather, and by herself, was almost incredible to Mrs. Hurst and
|
||
|
Miss Bingley; and Elizabeth was convinced that they held her in contempt
|
||
|
for it. She was received, however, very politely by them; and in their
|
||
|
brother's manners there was something better than politeness; there
|
||
|
was good humour and kindness. Mr. Darcy said very little, and Mr.
|
||
|
Hurst nothing at all. The former was divided between admiration of the
|
||
|
brilliancy which exercise had given to her complexion, and doubt as
|
||
|
to the occasion's justifying her coming so far alone. The latter was
|
||
|
thinking only of his breakfast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her inquiries after her sister were not very favourably answered. Miss
|
||
|
Bennet had slept ill, and though up, was very feverish, and not
|
||
|
well enough to leave her room. Elizabeth was glad to be taken to her
|
||
|
immediately; and Jane, who had only been withheld by the fear of giving
|
||
|
alarm or inconvenience from expressing in her note how much she longed
|
||
|
for such a visit, was delighted at her entrance. She was not equal,
|
||
|
however, to much conversation, and when Miss Bingley left them
|
||
|
together, could attempt little besides expressions of gratitude for the
|
||
|
extraordinary kindness she was treated with. Elizabeth silently attended
|
||
|
her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When breakfast was over they were joined by the sisters; and Elizabeth
|
||
|
began to like them herself, when she saw how much affection and
|
||
|
solicitude they showed for Jane. The apothecary came, and having
|
||
|
examined his patient, said, as might be supposed, that she had caught
|
||
|
a violent cold, and that they must endeavour to get the better of it;
|
||
|
advised her to return to bed, and promised her some draughts. The advice
|
||
|
was followed readily, for the feverish symptoms increased, and her head
|
||
|
ached acutely. Elizabeth did not quit her room for a moment; nor were
|
||
|
the other ladies often absent; the gentlemen being out, they had, in
|
||
|
fact, nothing to do elsewhere.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the clock struck three, Elizabeth felt that she must go, and very
|
||
|
unwillingly said so. Miss Bingley offered her the carriage, and she only
|
||
|
wanted a little pressing to accept it, when Jane testified such concern
|
||
|
in parting with her, that Miss Bingley was obliged to convert the offer
|
||
|
of the chaise to an invitation to remain at Netherfield for the present.
|
||
|
Elizabeth most thankfully consented, and a servant was dispatched to
|
||
|
Longbourn to acquaint the family with her stay and bring back a supply
|
||
|
of clothes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 8
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
At five o'clock the two ladies retired to dress, and at half-past six
|
||
|
Elizabeth was summoned to dinner. To the civil inquiries which then
|
||
|
poured in, and amongst which she had the pleasure of distinguishing the
|
||
|
much superior solicitude of Mr. Bingley's, she could not make a very
|
||
|
favourable answer. Jane was by no means better. The sisters, on hearing
|
||
|
this, repeated three or four times how much they were grieved, how
|
||
|
shocking it was to have a bad cold, and how excessively they disliked
|
||
|
being ill themselves; and then thought no more of the matter: and their
|
||
|
indifference towards Jane when not immediately before them restored
|
||
|
Elizabeth to the enjoyment of all her former dislike.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their brother, indeed, was the only one of the party whom she could
|
||
|
regard with any complacency. His anxiety for Jane was evident, and his
|
||
|
attentions to herself most pleasing, and they prevented her feeling
|
||
|
herself so much an intruder as she believed she was considered by the
|
||
|
others. She had very little notice from any but him. Miss Bingley was
|
||
|
engrossed by Mr. Darcy, her sister scarcely less so; and as for Mr.
|
||
|
Hurst, by whom Elizabeth sat, he was an indolent man, who lived only to
|
||
|
eat, drink, and play at cards; who, when he found her to prefer a plain
|
||
|
dish to a ragout, had nothing to say to her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When dinner was over, she returned directly to Jane, and Miss Bingley
|
||
|
began abusing her as soon as she was out of the room. Her manners were
|
||
|
pronounced to be very bad indeed, a mixture of pride and impertinence;
|
||
|
she had no conversation, no style, no beauty. Mrs. Hurst thought the
|
||
|
same, and added:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She has nothing, in short, to recommend her, but being an excellent
|
||
|
walker. I shall never forget her appearance this morning. She really
|
||
|
looked almost wild."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She did, indeed, Louisa. I could hardly keep my countenance. Very
|
||
|
nonsensical to come at all! Why must _she_ be scampering about the
|
||
|
country, because her sister had a cold? Her hair, so untidy, so blowsy!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, and her petticoat; I hope you saw her petticoat, six inches deep
|
||
|
in mud, I am absolutely certain; and the gown which had been let down to
|
||
|
hide it not doing its office."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your picture may be very exact, Louisa," said Bingley; "but this was
|
||
|
all lost upon me. I thought Miss Elizabeth Bennet looked remarkably
|
||
|
well when she came into the room this morning. Her dirty petticoat quite
|
||
|
escaped my notice."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_You_ observed it, Mr. Darcy, I am sure," said Miss Bingley; "and I am
|
||
|
inclined to think that you would not wish to see _your_ sister make such
|
||
|
an exhibition."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Certainly not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To walk three miles, or four miles, or five miles, or whatever it is,
|
||
|
above her ankles in dirt, and alone, quite alone! What could she mean by
|
||
|
it? It seems to me to show an abominable sort of conceited independence,
|
||
|
a most country-town indifference to decorum."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It shows an affection for her sister that is very pleasing," said
|
||
|
Bingley.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am afraid, Mr. Darcy," observed Miss Bingley in a half whisper, "that
|
||
|
this adventure has rather affected your admiration of her fine eyes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not at all," he replied; "they were brightened by the exercise." A
|
||
|
short pause followed this speech, and Mrs. Hurst began again:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have an excessive regard for Miss Jane Bennet, she is really a very
|
||
|
sweet girl, and I wish with all my heart she were well settled. But with
|
||
|
such a father and mother, and such low connections, I am afraid there is
|
||
|
no chance of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think I have heard you say that their uncle is an attorney in
|
||
|
Meryton."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; and they have another, who lives somewhere near Cheapside."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is capital," added her sister, and they both laughed heartily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If they had uncles enough to fill _all_ Cheapside," cried Bingley, "it
|
||
|
would not make them one jot less agreeable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But it must very materially lessen their chance of marrying men of any
|
||
|
consideration in the world," replied Darcy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To this speech Bingley made no answer; but his sisters gave it their
|
||
|
hearty assent, and indulged their mirth for some time at the expense of
|
||
|
their dear friend's vulgar relations.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a renewal of tenderness, however, they returned to her room on
|
||
|
leaving the dining-parlour, and sat with her till summoned to coffee.
|
||
|
She was still very poorly, and Elizabeth would not quit her at all, till
|
||
|
late in the evening, when she had the comfort of seeing her sleep, and
|
||
|
when it seemed to her rather right than pleasant that she should go
|
||
|
downstairs herself. On entering the drawing-room she found the whole
|
||
|
party at loo, and was immediately invited to join them; but suspecting
|
||
|
them to be playing high she declined it, and making her sister the
|
||
|
excuse, said she would amuse herself for the short time she could stay
|
||
|
below, with a book. Mr. Hurst looked at her with astonishment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you prefer reading to cards?" said he; "that is rather singular."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Eliza Bennet," said Miss Bingley, "despises cards. She is a great
|
||
|
reader, and has no pleasure in anything else."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I deserve neither such praise nor such censure," cried Elizabeth; "I am
|
||
|
_not_ a great reader, and I have pleasure in many things."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In nursing your sister I am sure you have pleasure," said Bingley; "and
|
||
|
I hope it will be soon increased by seeing her quite well."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth thanked him from her heart, and then walked towards the
|
||
|
table where a few books were lying. He immediately offered to fetch her
|
||
|
others--all that his library afforded.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I wish my collection were larger for your benefit and my own
|
||
|
credit; but I am an idle fellow, and though I have not many, I have more
|
||
|
than I ever looked into."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth assured him that she could suit herself perfectly with those
|
||
|
in the room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am astonished," said Miss Bingley, "that my father should have left
|
||
|
so small a collection of books. What a delightful library you have at
|
||
|
Pemberley, Mr. Darcy!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It ought to be good," he replied, "it has been the work of many
|
||
|
generations."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And then you have added so much to it yourself, you are always buying
|
||
|
books."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot comprehend the neglect of a family library in such days as
|
||
|
these."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Neglect! I am sure you neglect nothing that can add to the beauties of
|
||
|
that noble place. Charles, when you build _your_ house, I wish it may be
|
||
|
half as delightful as Pemberley."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I wish it may."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But I would really advise you to make your purchase in that
|
||
|
neighbourhood, and take Pemberley for a kind of model. There is not a
|
||
|
finer county in England than Derbyshire."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With all my heart; I will buy Pemberley itself if Darcy will sell it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am talking of possibilities, Charles."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Upon my word, Caroline, I should think it more possible to get
|
||
|
Pemberley by purchase than by imitation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was so much caught with what passed, as to leave her very
|
||
|
little attention for her book; and soon laying it wholly aside, she drew
|
||
|
near the card-table, and stationed herself between Mr. Bingley and his
|
||
|
eldest sister, to observe the game.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is Miss Darcy much grown since the spring?" said Miss Bingley; "will
|
||
|
she be as tall as I am?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think she will. She is now about Miss Elizabeth Bennet's height, or
|
||
|
rather taller."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How I long to see her again! I never met with anybody who delighted me
|
||
|
so much. Such a countenance, such manners! And so extremely accomplished
|
||
|
for her age! Her performance on the pianoforte is exquisite."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is amazing to me," said Bingley, "how young ladies can have patience
|
||
|
to be so very accomplished as they all are."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All young ladies accomplished! My dear Charles, what do you mean?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, all of them, I think. They all paint tables, cover screens, and
|
||
|
net purses. I scarcely know anyone who cannot do all this, and I am sure
|
||
|
I never heard a young lady spoken of for the first time, without being
|
||
|
informed that she was very accomplished."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your list of the common extent of accomplishments," said Darcy, "has
|
||
|
too much truth. The word is applied to many a woman who deserves it no
|
||
|
otherwise than by netting a purse or covering a screen. But I am very
|
||
|
far from agreeing with you in your estimation of ladies in general. I
|
||
|
cannot boast of knowing more than half-a-dozen, in the whole range of my
|
||
|
acquaintance, that are really accomplished."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nor I, I am sure," said Miss Bingley.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then," observed Elizabeth, "you must comprehend a great deal in your
|
||
|
idea of an accomplished woman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, I do comprehend a great deal in it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! certainly," cried his faithful assistant, "no one can be really
|
||
|
esteemed accomplished who does not greatly surpass what is usually met
|
||
|
with. A woman must have a thorough knowledge of music, singing, drawing,
|
||
|
dancing, and the modern languages, to deserve the word; and besides
|
||
|
all this, she must possess a certain something in her air and manner of
|
||
|
walking, the tone of her voice, her address and expressions, or the word
|
||
|
will be but half-deserved."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All this she must possess," added Darcy, "and to all this she must
|
||
|
yet add something more substantial, in the improvement of her mind by
|
||
|
extensive reading."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am no longer surprised at your knowing _only_ six accomplished women.
|
||
|
I rather wonder now at your knowing _any_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you so severe upon your own sex as to doubt the possibility of all
|
||
|
this?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never saw such a woman. I never saw such capacity, and taste, and
|
||
|
application, and elegance, as you describe united."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley both cried out against the injustice of her
|
||
|
implied doubt, and were both protesting that they knew many women who
|
||
|
answered this description, when Mr. Hurst called them to order, with
|
||
|
bitter complaints of their inattention to what was going forward. As all
|
||
|
conversation was thereby at an end, Elizabeth soon afterwards left the
|
||
|
room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Elizabeth Bennet," said Miss Bingley, when the door was closed on her,
|
||
|
"is one of those young ladies who seek to recommend themselves to the
|
||
|
other sex by undervaluing their own; and with many men, I dare say, it
|
||
|
succeeds. But, in my opinion, it is a paltry device, a very mean art."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Undoubtedly," replied Darcy, to whom this remark was chiefly addressed,
|
||
|
"there is a meanness in _all_ the arts which ladies sometimes condescend
|
||
|
to employ for captivation. Whatever bears affinity to cunning is
|
||
|
despicable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley was not so entirely satisfied with this reply as to
|
||
|
continue the subject.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth joined them again only to say that her sister was worse, and
|
||
|
that she could not leave her. Bingley urged Mr. Jones being sent for
|
||
|
immediately; while his sisters, convinced that no country advice could
|
||
|
be of any service, recommended an express to town for one of the most
|
||
|
eminent physicians. This she would not hear of; but she was not so
|
||
|
unwilling to comply with their brother's proposal; and it was settled
|
||
|
that Mr. Jones should be sent for early in the morning, if Miss Bennet
|
||
|
were not decidedly better. Bingley was quite uncomfortable; his sisters
|
||
|
declared that they were miserable. They solaced their wretchedness,
|
||
|
however, by duets after supper, while he could find no better relief
|
||
|
to his feelings than by giving his housekeeper directions that every
|
||
|
attention might be paid to the sick lady and her sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 9
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth passed the chief of the night in her sister's room, and in the
|
||
|
morning had the pleasure of being able to send a tolerable answer to the
|
||
|
inquiries which she very early received from Mr. Bingley by a housemaid,
|
||
|
and some time afterwards from the two elegant ladies who waited on his
|
||
|
sisters. In spite of this amendment, however, she requested to have a
|
||
|
note sent to Longbourn, desiring her mother to visit Jane, and form her
|
||
|
own judgement of her situation. The note was immediately dispatched, and
|
||
|
its contents as quickly complied with. Mrs. Bennet, accompanied by her
|
||
|
two youngest girls, reached Netherfield soon after the family breakfast.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Had she found Jane in any apparent danger, Mrs. Bennet would have been
|
||
|
very miserable; but being satisfied on seeing her that her illness was
|
||
|
not alarming, she had no wish of her recovering immediately, as her
|
||
|
restoration to health would probably remove her from Netherfield. She
|
||
|
would not listen, therefore, to her daughter's proposal of being carried
|
||
|
home; neither did the apothecary, who arrived about the same time, think
|
||
|
it at all advisable. After sitting a little while with Jane, on Miss
|
||
|
Bingley's appearance and invitation, the mother and three daughters all
|
||
|
attended her into the breakfast parlour. Bingley met them with hopes
|
||
|
that Mrs. Bennet had not found Miss Bennet worse than she expected.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed I have, sir," was her answer. "She is a great deal too ill to be
|
||
|
moved. Mr. Jones says we must not think of moving her. We must trespass
|
||
|
a little longer on your kindness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Removed!" cried Bingley. "It must not be thought of. My sister, I am
|
||
|
sure, will not hear of her removal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may depend upon it, Madam," said Miss Bingley, with cold civility,
|
||
|
"that Miss Bennet will receive every possible attention while she
|
||
|
remains with us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet was profuse in her acknowledgments.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sure," she added, "if it was not for such good friends I do not
|
||
|
know what would become of her, for she is very ill indeed, and suffers
|
||
|
a vast deal, though with the greatest patience in the world, which is
|
||
|
always the way with her, for she has, without exception, the sweetest
|
||
|
temper I have ever met with. I often tell my other girls they are
|
||
|
nothing to _her_. You have a sweet room here, Mr. Bingley, and a
|
||
|
charming prospect over the gravel walk. I do not know a place in the
|
||
|
country that is equal to Netherfield. You will not think of quitting it
|
||
|
in a hurry, I hope, though you have but a short lease."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Whatever I do is done in a hurry," replied he; "and therefore if I
|
||
|
should resolve to quit Netherfield, I should probably be off in five
|
||
|
minutes. At present, however, I consider myself as quite fixed here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is exactly what I should have supposed of you," said Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You begin to comprehend me, do you?" cried he, turning towards her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! yes--I understand you perfectly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I wish I might take this for a compliment; but to be so easily seen
|
||
|
through I am afraid is pitiful."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is as it happens. It does not follow that a deep, intricate
|
||
|
character is more or less estimable than such a one as yours."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lizzy," cried her mother, "remember where you are, and do not run on in
|
||
|
the wild manner that you are suffered to do at home."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I did not know before," continued Bingley immediately, "that you were a
|
||
|
studier of character. It must be an amusing study."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, but intricate characters are the _most_ amusing. They have at
|
||
|
least that advantage."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The country," said Darcy, "can in general supply but a few subjects for
|
||
|
such a study. In a country neighbourhood you move in a very confined and
|
||
|
unvarying society."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But people themselves alter so much, that there is something new to be
|
||
|
observed in them for ever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, indeed," cried Mrs. Bennet, offended by his manner of mentioning
|
||
|
a country neighbourhood. "I assure you there is quite as much of _that_
|
||
|
going on in the country as in town."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Everybody was surprised, and Darcy, after looking at her for a moment,
|
||
|
turned silently away. Mrs. Bennet, who fancied she had gained a complete
|
||
|
victory over him, continued her triumph.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot see that London has any great advantage over the country, for
|
||
|
my part, except the shops and public places. The country is a vast deal
|
||
|
pleasanter, is it not, Mr. Bingley?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When I am in the country," he replied, "I never wish to leave it;
|
||
|
and when I am in town it is pretty much the same. They have each their
|
||
|
advantages, and I can be equally happy in either."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Aye--that is because you have the right disposition. But that
|
||
|
gentleman," looking at Darcy, "seemed to think the country was nothing
|
||
|
at all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, Mamma, you are mistaken," said Elizabeth, blushing for her
|
||
|
mother. "You quite mistook Mr. Darcy. He only meant that there was not
|
||
|
such a variety of people to be met with in the country as in the town,
|
||
|
which you must acknowledge to be true."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Certainly, my dear, nobody said there were; but as to not meeting
|
||
|
with many people in this neighbourhood, I believe there are few
|
||
|
neighbourhoods larger. I know we dine with four-and-twenty families."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nothing but concern for Elizabeth could enable Bingley to keep his
|
||
|
countenance. His sister was less delicate, and directed her eyes towards
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy with a very expressive smile. Elizabeth, for the sake of
|
||
|
saying something that might turn her mother's thoughts, now asked her if
|
||
|
Charlotte Lucas had been at Longbourn since _her_ coming away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, she called yesterday with her father. What an agreeable man Sir
|
||
|
William is, Mr. Bingley, is not he? So much the man of fashion! So
|
||
|
genteel and easy! He has always something to say to everybody. _That_
|
||
|
is my idea of good breeding; and those persons who fancy themselves very
|
||
|
important, and never open their mouths, quite mistake the matter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did Charlotte dine with you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, she would go home. I fancy she was wanted about the mince-pies. For
|
||
|
my part, Mr. Bingley, I always keep servants that can do their own work;
|
||
|
_my_ daughters are brought up very differently. But everybody is to
|
||
|
judge for themselves, and the Lucases are a very good sort of girls,
|
||
|
I assure you. It is a pity they are not handsome! Not that I think
|
||
|
Charlotte so _very_ plain--but then she is our particular friend."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She seems a very pleasant young woman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! dear, yes; but you must own she is very plain. Lady Lucas herself
|
||
|
has often said so, and envied me Jane's beauty. I do not like to boast
|
||
|
of my own child, but to be sure, Jane--one does not often see anybody
|
||
|
better looking. It is what everybody says. I do not trust my own
|
||
|
partiality. When she was only fifteen, there was a man at my brother
|
||
|
Gardiner's in town so much in love with her that my sister-in-law was
|
||
|
sure he would make her an offer before we came away. But, however, he
|
||
|
did not. Perhaps he thought her too young. However, he wrote some verses
|
||
|
on her, and very pretty they were."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so ended his affection," said Elizabeth impatiently. "There has
|
||
|
been many a one, I fancy, overcome in the same way. I wonder who first
|
||
|
discovered the efficacy of poetry in driving away love!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been used to consider poetry as the _food_ of love," said Darcy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of a fine, stout, healthy love it may. Everything nourishes what is
|
||
|
strong already. But if it be only a slight, thin sort of inclination, I
|
||
|
am convinced that one good sonnet will starve it entirely away."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy only smiled; and the general pause which ensued made Elizabeth
|
||
|
tremble lest her mother should be exposing herself again. She longed to
|
||
|
speak, but could think of nothing to say; and after a short silence Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet began repeating her thanks to Mr. Bingley for his kindness to
|
||
|
Jane, with an apology for troubling him also with Lizzy. Mr. Bingley was
|
||
|
unaffectedly civil in his answer, and forced his younger sister to be
|
||
|
civil also, and say what the occasion required. She performed her part
|
||
|
indeed without much graciousness, but Mrs. Bennet was satisfied, and
|
||
|
soon afterwards ordered her carriage. Upon this signal, the youngest of
|
||
|
her daughters put herself forward. The two girls had been whispering to
|
||
|
each other during the whole visit, and the result of it was, that the
|
||
|
youngest should tax Mr. Bingley with having promised on his first coming
|
||
|
into the country to give a ball at Netherfield.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lydia was a stout, well-grown girl of fifteen, with a fine complexion
|
||
|
and good-humoured countenance; a favourite with her mother, whose
|
||
|
affection had brought her into public at an early age. She had high
|
||
|
animal spirits, and a sort of natural self-consequence, which the
|
||
|
attention of the officers, to whom her uncle's good dinners, and her own
|
||
|
easy manners recommended her, had increased into assurance. She was very
|
||
|
equal, therefore, to address Mr. Bingley on the subject of the ball, and
|
||
|
abruptly reminded him of his promise; adding, that it would be the most
|
||
|
shameful thing in the world if he did not keep it. His answer to this
|
||
|
sudden attack was delightful to their mother's ear:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am perfectly ready, I assure you, to keep my engagement; and when
|
||
|
your sister is recovered, you shall, if you please, name the very day of
|
||
|
the ball. But you would not wish to be dancing when she is ill."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lydia declared herself satisfied. "Oh! yes--it would be much better to
|
||
|
wait till Jane was well, and by that time most likely Captain Carter
|
||
|
would be at Meryton again. And when you have given _your_ ball," she
|
||
|
added, "I shall insist on their giving one also. I shall tell Colonel
|
||
|
Forster it will be quite a shame if he does not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet and her daughters then departed, and Elizabeth returned
|
||
|
instantly to Jane, leaving her own and her relations' behaviour to the
|
||
|
remarks of the two ladies and Mr. Darcy; the latter of whom, however,
|
||
|
could not be prevailed on to join in their censure of _her_, in spite of
|
||
|
all Miss Bingley's witticisms on _fine eyes_.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 10
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The day passed much as the day before had done. Mrs. Hurst and Miss
|
||
|
Bingley had spent some hours of the morning with the invalid, who
|
||
|
continued, though slowly, to mend; and in the evening Elizabeth joined
|
||
|
their party in the drawing-room. The loo-table, however, did not appear.
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy was writing, and Miss Bingley, seated near him, was watching
|
||
|
the progress of his letter and repeatedly calling off his attention by
|
||
|
messages to his sister. Mr. Hurst and Mr. Bingley were at piquet, and
|
||
|
Mrs. Hurst was observing their game.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth took up some needlework, and was sufficiently amused in
|
||
|
attending to what passed between Darcy and his companion. The perpetual
|
||
|
commendations of the lady, either on his handwriting, or on the evenness
|
||
|
of his lines, or on the length of his letter, with the perfect unconcern
|
||
|
with which her praises were received, formed a curious dialogue, and was
|
||
|
exactly in union with her opinion of each.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How delighted Miss Darcy will be to receive such a letter!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He made no answer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You write uncommonly fast."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are mistaken. I write rather slowly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How many letters you must have occasion to write in the course of a
|
||
|
year! Letters of business, too! How odious I should think them!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is fortunate, then, that they fall to my lot instead of yours."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pray tell your sister that I long to see her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have already told her so once, by your desire."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am afraid you do not like your pen. Let me mend it for you. I mend
|
||
|
pens remarkably well."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thank you--but I always mend my own."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How can you contrive to write so even?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was silent.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tell your sister I am delighted to hear of her improvement on the harp;
|
||
|
and pray let her know that I am quite in raptures with her beautiful
|
||
|
little design for a table, and I think it infinitely superior to Miss
|
||
|
Grantley's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Will you give me leave to defer your raptures till I write again? At
|
||
|
present I have not room to do them justice."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! it is of no consequence. I shall see her in January. But do you
|
||
|
always write such charming long letters to her, Mr. Darcy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are generally long; but whether always charming it is not for me
|
||
|
to determine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a rule with me, that a person who can write a long letter with
|
||
|
ease, cannot write ill."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That will not do for a compliment to Darcy, Caroline," cried her
|
||
|
brother, "because he does _not_ write with ease. He studies too much for
|
||
|
words of four syllables. Do not you, Darcy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My style of writing is very different from yours."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh!" cried Miss Bingley, "Charles writes in the most careless way
|
||
|
imaginable. He leaves out half his words, and blots the rest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My ideas flow so rapidly that I have not time to express them--by which
|
||
|
means my letters sometimes convey no ideas at all to my correspondents."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your humility, Mr. Bingley," said Elizabeth, "must disarm reproof."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nothing is more deceitful," said Darcy, "than the appearance of
|
||
|
humility. It is often only carelessness of opinion, and sometimes an
|
||
|
indirect boast."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And which of the two do you call _my_ little recent piece of modesty?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The indirect boast; for you are really proud of your defects in
|
||
|
writing, because you consider them as proceeding from a rapidity of
|
||
|
thought and carelessness of execution, which, if not estimable, you
|
||
|
think at least highly interesting. The power of doing anything with
|
||
|
quickness is always prized much by the possessor, and often without any
|
||
|
attention to the imperfection of the performance. When you told Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet this morning that if you ever resolved upon quitting Netherfield
|
||
|
you should be gone in five minutes, you meant it to be a sort of
|
||
|
panegyric, of compliment to yourself--and yet what is there so very
|
||
|
laudable in a precipitance which must leave very necessary business
|
||
|
undone, and can be of no real advantage to yourself or anyone else?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nay," cried Bingley, "this is too much, to remember at night all the
|
||
|
foolish things that were said in the morning. And yet, upon my honour,
|
||
|
I believe what I said of myself to be true, and I believe it at this
|
||
|
moment. At least, therefore, I did not assume the character of needless
|
||
|
precipitance merely to show off before the ladies."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I dare say you believed it; but I am by no means convinced that
|
||
|
you would be gone with such celerity. Your conduct would be quite as
|
||
|
dependent on chance as that of any man I know; and if, as you were
|
||
|
mounting your horse, a friend were to say, 'Bingley, you had better
|
||
|
stay till next week,' you would probably do it, you would probably not
|
||
|
go--and at another word, might stay a month."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have only proved by this," cried Elizabeth, "that Mr. Bingley did
|
||
|
not do justice to his own disposition. You have shown him off now much
|
||
|
more than he did himself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am exceedingly gratified," said Bingley, "by your converting what my
|
||
|
friend says into a compliment on the sweetness of my temper. But I am
|
||
|
afraid you are giving it a turn which that gentleman did by no means
|
||
|
intend; for he would certainly think better of me, if under such a
|
||
|
circumstance I were to give a flat denial, and ride off as fast as I
|
||
|
could."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Would Mr. Darcy then consider the rashness of your original intentions
|
||
|
as atoned for by your obstinacy in adhering to it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Upon my word, I cannot exactly explain the matter; Darcy must speak for
|
||
|
himself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You expect me to account for opinions which you choose to call mine,
|
||
|
but which I have never acknowledged. Allowing the case, however, to
|
||
|
stand according to your representation, you must remember, Miss Bennet,
|
||
|
that the friend who is supposed to desire his return to the house, and
|
||
|
the delay of his plan, has merely desired it, asked it without offering
|
||
|
one argument in favour of its propriety."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To yield readily--easily--to the _persuasion_ of a friend is no merit
|
||
|
with you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To yield without conviction is no compliment to the understanding of
|
||
|
either."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You appear to me, Mr. Darcy, to allow nothing for the influence of
|
||
|
friendship and affection. A regard for the requester would often make
|
||
|
one readily yield to a request, without waiting for arguments to reason
|
||
|
one into it. I am not particularly speaking of such a case as you have
|
||
|
supposed about Mr. Bingley. We may as well wait, perhaps, till the
|
||
|
circumstance occurs before we discuss the discretion of his behaviour
|
||
|
thereupon. But in general and ordinary cases between friend and friend,
|
||
|
where one of them is desired by the other to change a resolution of no
|
||
|
very great moment, should you think ill of that person for complying
|
||
|
with the desire, without waiting to be argued into it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Will it not be advisable, before we proceed on this subject, to
|
||
|
arrange with rather more precision the degree of importance which is to
|
||
|
appertain to this request, as well as the degree of intimacy subsisting
|
||
|
between the parties?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By all means," cried Bingley; "let us hear all the particulars, not
|
||
|
forgetting their comparative height and size; for that will have more
|
||
|
weight in the argument, Miss Bennet, than you may be aware of. I assure
|
||
|
you, that if Darcy were not such a great tall fellow, in comparison with
|
||
|
myself, I should not pay him half so much deference. I declare I do not
|
||
|
know a more awful object than Darcy, on particular occasions, and in
|
||
|
particular places; at his own house especially, and of a Sunday evening,
|
||
|
when he has nothing to do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy smiled; but Elizabeth thought she could perceive that he was
|
||
|
rather offended, and therefore checked her laugh. Miss Bingley warmly
|
||
|
resented the indignity he had received, in an expostulation with her
|
||
|
brother for talking such nonsense.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I see your design, Bingley," said his friend. "You dislike an argument,
|
||
|
and want to silence this."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps I do. Arguments are too much like disputes. If you and Miss
|
||
|
Bennet will defer yours till I am out of the room, I shall be very
|
||
|
thankful; and then you may say whatever you like of me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What you ask," said Elizabeth, "is no sacrifice on my side; and Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy had much better finish his letter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy took her advice, and did finish his letter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When that business was over, he applied to Miss Bingley and Elizabeth
|
||
|
for an indulgence of some music. Miss Bingley moved with some alacrity
|
||
|
to the pianoforte; and, after a polite request that Elizabeth would lead
|
||
|
the way which the other as politely and more earnestly negatived, she
|
||
|
seated herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Hurst sang with her sister, and while they were thus employed,
|
||
|
Elizabeth could not help observing, as she turned over some music-books
|
||
|
that lay on the instrument, how frequently Mr. Darcy's eyes were fixed
|
||
|
on her. She hardly knew how to suppose that she could be an object of
|
||
|
admiration to so great a man; and yet that he should look at her
|
||
|
because he disliked her, was still more strange. She could only imagine,
|
||
|
however, at last that she drew his notice because there was something
|
||
|
more wrong and reprehensible, according to his ideas of right, than in
|
||
|
any other person present. The supposition did not pain her. She liked
|
||
|
him too little to care for his approbation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After playing some Italian songs, Miss Bingley varied the charm by
|
||
|
a lively Scotch air; and soon afterwards Mr. Darcy, drawing near
|
||
|
Elizabeth, said to her:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do not you feel a great inclination, Miss Bennet, to seize such an
|
||
|
opportunity of dancing a reel?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She smiled, but made no answer. He repeated the question, with some
|
||
|
surprise at her silence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh!" said she, "I heard you before, but I could not immediately
|
||
|
determine what to say in reply. You wanted me, I know, to say 'Yes,'
|
||
|
that you might have the pleasure of despising my taste; but I always
|
||
|
delight in overthrowing those kind of schemes, and cheating a person of
|
||
|
their premeditated contempt. I have, therefore, made up my mind to tell
|
||
|
you, that I do not want to dance a reel at all--and now despise me if
|
||
|
you dare."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed I do not dare."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, having rather expected to affront him, was amazed at his
|
||
|
gallantry; but there was a mixture of sweetness and archness in her
|
||
|
manner which made it difficult for her to affront anybody; and Darcy
|
||
|
had never been so bewitched by any woman as he was by her. He really
|
||
|
believed, that were it not for the inferiority of her connections, he
|
||
|
should be in some danger.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley saw, or suspected enough to be jealous; and her great
|
||
|
anxiety for the recovery of her dear friend Jane received some
|
||
|
assistance from her desire of getting rid of Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She often tried to provoke Darcy into disliking her guest, by talking of
|
||
|
their supposed marriage, and planning his happiness in such an alliance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope," said she, as they were walking together in the shrubbery
|
||
|
the next day, "you will give your mother-in-law a few hints, when this
|
||
|
desirable event takes place, as to the advantage of holding her tongue;
|
||
|
and if you can compass it, do cure the younger girls of running after
|
||
|
officers. And, if I may mention so delicate a subject, endeavour to
|
||
|
check that little something, bordering on conceit and impertinence,
|
||
|
which your lady possesses."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Have you anything else to propose for my domestic felicity?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! yes. Do let the portraits of your uncle and aunt Phillips be placed
|
||
|
in the gallery at Pemberley. Put them next to your great-uncle the
|
||
|
judge. They are in the same profession, you know, only in different
|
||
|
lines. As for your Elizabeth's picture, you must not have it taken, for
|
||
|
what painter could do justice to those beautiful eyes?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It would not be easy, indeed, to catch their expression, but their
|
||
|
colour and shape, and the eyelashes, so remarkably fine, might be
|
||
|
copied."
|
||
|
|
||
|
At that moment they were met from another walk by Mrs. Hurst and
|
||
|
Elizabeth herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I did not know that you intended to walk," said Miss Bingley, in some
|
||
|
confusion, lest they had been overheard.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You used us abominably ill," answered Mrs. Hurst, "running away without
|
||
|
telling us that you were coming out."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then taking the disengaged arm of Mr. Darcy, she left Elizabeth to walk
|
||
|
by herself. The path just admitted three. Mr. Darcy felt their rudeness,
|
||
|
and immediately said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This walk is not wide enough for our party. We had better go into the
|
||
|
avenue."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But Elizabeth, who had not the least inclination to remain with them,
|
||
|
laughingly answered:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, no; stay where you are. You are charmingly grouped, and appear
|
||
|
to uncommon advantage. The picturesque would be spoilt by admitting a
|
||
|
fourth. Good-bye."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She then ran gaily off, rejoicing as she rambled about, in the hope of
|
||
|
being at home again in a day or two. Jane was already so much recovered
|
||
|
as to intend leaving her room for a couple of hours that evening.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 11
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the ladies removed after dinner, Elizabeth ran up to her
|
||
|
sister, and seeing her well guarded from cold, attended her into the
|
||
|
drawing-room, where she was welcomed by her two friends with many
|
||
|
professions of pleasure; and Elizabeth had never seen them so agreeable
|
||
|
as they were during the hour which passed before the gentlemen appeared.
|
||
|
Their powers of conversation were considerable. They could describe an
|
||
|
entertainment with accuracy, relate an anecdote with humour, and laugh
|
||
|
at their acquaintance with spirit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But when the gentlemen entered, Jane was no longer the first object;
|
||
|
Miss Bingley's eyes were instantly turned toward Darcy, and she had
|
||
|
something to say to him before he had advanced many steps. He addressed
|
||
|
himself to Miss Bennet, with a polite congratulation; Mr. Hurst also
|
||
|
made her a slight bow, and said he was "very glad;" but diffuseness
|
||
|
and warmth remained for Bingley's salutation. He was full of joy and
|
||
|
attention. The first half-hour was spent in piling up the fire, lest she
|
||
|
should suffer from the change of room; and she removed at his desire
|
||
|
to the other side of the fireplace, that she might be further from
|
||
|
the door. He then sat down by her, and talked scarcely to anyone
|
||
|
else. Elizabeth, at work in the opposite corner, saw it all with great
|
||
|
delight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When tea was over, Mr. Hurst reminded his sister-in-law of the
|
||
|
card-table--but in vain. She had obtained private intelligence that Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy did not wish for cards; and Mr. Hurst soon found even his open
|
||
|
petition rejected. She assured him that no one intended to play, and
|
||
|
the silence of the whole party on the subject seemed to justify her. Mr.
|
||
|
Hurst had therefore nothing to do, but to stretch himself on one of the
|
||
|
sofas and go to sleep. Darcy took up a book; Miss Bingley did the same;
|
||
|
and Mrs. Hurst, principally occupied in playing with her bracelets
|
||
|
and rings, joined now and then in her brother's conversation with Miss
|
||
|
Bennet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley's attention was quite as much engaged in watching Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy's progress through _his_ book, as in reading her own; and she
|
||
|
was perpetually either making some inquiry, or looking at his page. She
|
||
|
could not win him, however, to any conversation; he merely answered her
|
||
|
question, and read on. At length, quite exhausted by the attempt to be
|
||
|
amused with her own book, which she had only chosen because it was the
|
||
|
second volume of his, she gave a great yawn and said, "How pleasant
|
||
|
it is to spend an evening in this way! I declare after all there is no
|
||
|
enjoyment like reading! How much sooner one tires of anything than of a
|
||
|
book! When I have a house of my own, I shall be miserable if I have not
|
||
|
an excellent library."
|
||
|
|
||
|
No one made any reply. She then yawned again, threw aside her book, and
|
||
|
cast her eyes round the room in quest for some amusement; when hearing
|
||
|
her brother mentioning a ball to Miss Bennet, she turned suddenly
|
||
|
towards him and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By the bye, Charles, are you really serious in meditating a dance at
|
||
|
Netherfield? I would advise you, before you determine on it, to consult
|
||
|
the wishes of the present party; I am much mistaken if there are
|
||
|
not some among us to whom a ball would be rather a punishment than a
|
||
|
pleasure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you mean Darcy," cried her brother, "he may go to bed, if he
|
||
|
chooses, before it begins--but as for the ball, it is quite a settled
|
||
|
thing; and as soon as Nicholls has made white soup enough, I shall send
|
||
|
round my cards."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should like balls infinitely better," she replied, "if they were
|
||
|
carried on in a different manner; but there is something insufferably
|
||
|
tedious in the usual process of such a meeting. It would surely be much
|
||
|
more rational if conversation instead of dancing were made the order of
|
||
|
the day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Much more rational, my dear Caroline, I dare say, but it would not be
|
||
|
near so much like a ball."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley made no answer, and soon afterwards she got up and walked
|
||
|
about the room. Her figure was elegant, and she walked well; but
|
||
|
Darcy, at whom it was all aimed, was still inflexibly studious. In
|
||
|
the desperation of her feelings, she resolved on one effort more, and,
|
||
|
turning to Elizabeth, said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Eliza Bennet, let me persuade you to follow my example, and take a
|
||
|
turn about the room. I assure you it is very refreshing after sitting so
|
||
|
long in one attitude."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was surprised, but agreed to it immediately. Miss Bingley
|
||
|
succeeded no less in the real object of her civility; Mr. Darcy looked
|
||
|
up. He was as much awake to the novelty of attention in that quarter as
|
||
|
Elizabeth herself could be, and unconsciously closed his book. He was
|
||
|
directly invited to join their party, but he declined it, observing that
|
||
|
he could imagine but two motives for their choosing to walk up and down
|
||
|
the room together, with either of which motives his joining them would
|
||
|
interfere. "What could he mean? She was dying to know what could be his
|
||
|
meaning?"--and asked Elizabeth whether she could at all understand him?
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not at all," was her answer; "but depend upon it, he means to be severe
|
||
|
on us, and our surest way of disappointing him will be to ask nothing
|
||
|
about it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley, however, was incapable of disappointing Mr. Darcy in
|
||
|
anything, and persevered therefore in requiring an explanation of his
|
||
|
two motives.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have not the smallest objection to explaining them," said he, as soon
|
||
|
as she allowed him to speak. "You either choose this method of passing
|
||
|
the evening because you are in each other's confidence, and have secret
|
||
|
affairs to discuss, or because you are conscious that your figures
|
||
|
appear to the greatest advantage in walking; if the first, I would be
|
||
|
completely in your way, and if the second, I can admire you much better
|
||
|
as I sit by the fire."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! shocking!" cried Miss Bingley. "I never heard anything so
|
||
|
abominable. How shall we punish him for such a speech?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nothing so easy, if you have but the inclination," said Elizabeth. "We
|
||
|
can all plague and punish one another. Tease him--laugh at him. Intimate
|
||
|
as you are, you must know how it is to be done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But upon my honour, I do _not_. I do assure you that my intimacy has
|
||
|
not yet taught me _that_. Tease calmness of manner and presence of
|
||
|
mind! No, no; I feel he may defy us there. And as to laughter, we will
|
||
|
not expose ourselves, if you please, by attempting to laugh without a
|
||
|
subject. Mr. Darcy may hug himself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Darcy is not to be laughed at!" cried Elizabeth. "That is an
|
||
|
uncommon advantage, and uncommon I hope it will continue, for it would
|
||
|
be a great loss to _me_ to have many such acquaintances. I dearly love a
|
||
|
laugh."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Bingley," said he, "has given me more credit than can be.
|
||
|
The wisest and the best of men--nay, the wisest and best of their
|
||
|
actions--may be rendered ridiculous by a person whose first object in
|
||
|
life is a joke."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Certainly," replied Elizabeth--"there are such people, but I hope I
|
||
|
am not one of _them_. I hope I never ridicule what is wise and good.
|
||
|
Follies and nonsense, whims and inconsistencies, _do_ divert me, I own,
|
||
|
and I laugh at them whenever I can. But these, I suppose, are precisely
|
||
|
what you are without."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps that is not possible for anyone. But it has been the study
|
||
|
of my life to avoid those weaknesses which often expose a strong
|
||
|
understanding to ridicule."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Such as vanity and pride."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, vanity is a weakness indeed. But pride--where there is a real
|
||
|
superiority of mind, pride will be always under good regulation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth turned away to hide a smile.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your examination of Mr. Darcy is over, I presume," said Miss Bingley;
|
||
|
"and pray what is the result?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am perfectly convinced by it that Mr. Darcy has no defect. He owns it
|
||
|
himself without disguise."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said Darcy, "I have made no such pretension. I have faults enough,
|
||
|
but they are not, I hope, of understanding. My temper I dare not vouch
|
||
|
for. It is, I believe, too little yielding--certainly too little for the
|
||
|
convenience of the world. I cannot forget the follies and vices of others
|
||
|
so soon as I ought, nor their offenses against myself. My feelings
|
||
|
are not puffed about with every attempt to move them. My temper
|
||
|
would perhaps be called resentful. My good opinion once lost, is lost
|
||
|
forever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_That_ is a failing indeed!" cried Elizabeth. "Implacable resentment
|
||
|
_is_ a shade in a character. But you have chosen your fault well. I
|
||
|
really cannot _laugh_ at it. You are safe from me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is, I believe, in every disposition a tendency to some particular
|
||
|
evil--a natural defect, which not even the best education can overcome."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And _your_ defect is to hate everybody."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And yours," he replied with a smile, "is willfully to misunderstand
|
||
|
them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do let us have a little music," cried Miss Bingley, tired of a
|
||
|
conversation in which she had no share. "Louisa, you will not mind my
|
||
|
waking Mr. Hurst?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her sister had not the smallest objection, and the pianoforte was
|
||
|
opened; and Darcy, after a few moments' recollection, was not sorry for
|
||
|
it. He began to feel the danger of paying Elizabeth too much attention.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 12
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
In consequence of an agreement between the sisters, Elizabeth wrote the
|
||
|
next morning to their mother, to beg that the carriage might be sent for
|
||
|
them in the course of the day. But Mrs. Bennet, who had calculated on
|
||
|
her daughters remaining at Netherfield till the following Tuesday, which
|
||
|
would exactly finish Jane's week, could not bring herself to receive
|
||
|
them with pleasure before. Her answer, therefore, was not propitious, at
|
||
|
least not to Elizabeth's wishes, for she was impatient to get home. Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet sent them word that they could not possibly have the carriage
|
||
|
before Tuesday; and in her postscript it was added, that if Mr. Bingley
|
||
|
and his sister pressed them to stay longer, she could spare them
|
||
|
very well. Against staying longer, however, Elizabeth was positively
|
||
|
resolved--nor did she much expect it would be asked; and fearful, on the
|
||
|
contrary, as being considered as intruding themselves needlessly long,
|
||
|
she urged Jane to borrow Mr. Bingley's carriage immediately, and at
|
||
|
length it was settled that their original design of leaving Netherfield
|
||
|
that morning should be mentioned, and the request made.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The communication excited many professions of concern; and enough was
|
||
|
said of wishing them to stay at least till the following day to work
|
||
|
on Jane; and till the morrow their going was deferred. Miss Bingley was
|
||
|
then sorry that she had proposed the delay, for her jealousy and dislike
|
||
|
of one sister much exceeded her affection for the other.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The master of the house heard with real sorrow that they were to go so
|
||
|
soon, and repeatedly tried to persuade Miss Bennet that it would not be
|
||
|
safe for her--that she was not enough recovered; but Jane was firm where
|
||
|
she felt herself to be right.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To Mr. Darcy it was welcome intelligence--Elizabeth had been at
|
||
|
Netherfield long enough. She attracted him more than he liked--and Miss
|
||
|
Bingley was uncivil to _her_, and more teasing than usual to himself.
|
||
|
He wisely resolved to be particularly careful that no sign of admiration
|
||
|
should _now_ escape him, nothing that could elevate her with the hope
|
||
|
of influencing his felicity; sensible that if such an idea had been
|
||
|
suggested, his behaviour during the last day must have material weight
|
||
|
in confirming or crushing it. Steady to his purpose, he scarcely spoke
|
||
|
ten words to her through the whole of Saturday, and though they were
|
||
|
at one time left by themselves for half-an-hour, he adhered most
|
||
|
conscientiously to his book, and would not even look at her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On Sunday, after morning service, the separation, so agreeable to almost
|
||
|
all, took place. Miss Bingley's civility to Elizabeth increased at last
|
||
|
very rapidly, as well as her affection for Jane; and when they parted,
|
||
|
after assuring the latter of the pleasure it would always give her
|
||
|
to see her either at Longbourn or Netherfield, and embracing her most
|
||
|
tenderly, she even shook hands with the former. Elizabeth took leave of
|
||
|
the whole party in the liveliest of spirits.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were not welcomed home very cordially by their mother. Mrs. Bennet
|
||
|
wondered at their coming, and thought them very wrong to give so much
|
||
|
trouble, and was sure Jane would have caught cold again. But their
|
||
|
father, though very laconic in his expressions of pleasure, was really
|
||
|
glad to see them; he had felt their importance in the family circle. The
|
||
|
evening conversation, when they were all assembled, had lost much of
|
||
|
its animation, and almost all its sense by the absence of Jane and
|
||
|
Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They found Mary, as usual, deep in the study of thorough-bass and human
|
||
|
nature; and had some extracts to admire, and some new observations of
|
||
|
threadbare morality to listen to. Catherine and Lydia had information
|
||
|
for them of a different sort. Much had been done and much had been said
|
||
|
in the regiment since the preceding Wednesday; several of the officers
|
||
|
had dined lately with their uncle, a private had been flogged, and it
|
||
|
had actually been hinted that Colonel Forster was going to be married.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 13
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope, my dear," said Mr. Bennet to his wife, as they were at
|
||
|
breakfast the next morning, "that you have ordered a good dinner to-day,
|
||
|
because I have reason to expect an addition to our family party."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who do you mean, my dear? I know of nobody that is coming, I am sure,
|
||
|
unless Charlotte Lucas should happen to call in--and I hope _my_ dinners
|
||
|
are good enough for her. I do not believe she often sees such at home."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The person of whom I speak is a gentleman, and a stranger."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet's eyes sparkled. "A gentleman and a stranger! It is Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley, I am sure! Well, I am sure I shall be extremely glad to see Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley. But--good Lord! how unlucky! There is not a bit of fish to be
|
||
|
got to-day. Lydia, my love, ring the bell--I must speak to Hill this
|
||
|
moment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is _not_ Mr. Bingley," said her husband; "it is a person whom I
|
||
|
never saw in the whole course of my life."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This roused a general astonishment; and he had the pleasure of being
|
||
|
eagerly questioned by his wife and his five daughters at once.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After amusing himself some time with their curiosity, he thus explained:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"About a month ago I received this letter; and about a fortnight ago
|
||
|
I answered it, for I thought it a case of some delicacy, and requiring
|
||
|
early attention. It is from my cousin, Mr. Collins, who, when I am dead,
|
||
|
may turn you all out of this house as soon as he pleases."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! my dear," cried his wife, "I cannot bear to hear that mentioned.
|
||
|
Pray do not talk of that odious man. I do think it is the hardest thing
|
||
|
in the world, that your estate should be entailed away from your own
|
||
|
children; and I am sure, if I had been you, I should have tried long ago
|
||
|
to do something or other about it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane and Elizabeth tried to explain to her the nature of an entail. They
|
||
|
had often attempted to do it before, but it was a subject on which
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet was beyond the reach of reason, and she continued to rail
|
||
|
bitterly against the cruelty of settling an estate away from a family of
|
||
|
five daughters, in favour of a man whom nobody cared anything about.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It certainly is a most iniquitous affair," said Mr. Bennet, "and
|
||
|
nothing can clear Mr. Collins from the guilt of inheriting Longbourn.
|
||
|
But if you will listen to his letter, you may perhaps be a little
|
||
|
softened by his manner of expressing himself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, that I am sure I shall not; and I think it is very impertinent of
|
||
|
him to write to you at all, and very hypocritical. I hate such false
|
||
|
friends. Why could he not keep on quarreling with you, as his father did
|
||
|
before him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, indeed; he does seem to have had some filial scruples on that
|
||
|
head, as you will hear."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hunsford, near Westerham, Kent, 15th October.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dear Sir,--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The disagreement subsisting between yourself and my late honoured
|
||
|
father always gave me much uneasiness, and since I have had the
|
||
|
misfortune to lose him, I have frequently wished to heal the breach; but
|
||
|
for some time I was kept back by my own doubts, fearing lest it might
|
||
|
seem disrespectful to his memory for me to be on good terms with anyone
|
||
|
with whom it had always pleased him to be at variance.--'There, Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet.'--My mind, however, is now made up on the subject, for having
|
||
|
received ordination at Easter, I have been so fortunate as to be
|
||
|
distinguished by the patronage of the Right Honourable Lady Catherine de
|
||
|
Bourgh, widow of Sir Lewis de Bourgh, whose bounty and beneficence has
|
||
|
preferred me to the valuable rectory of this parish, where it shall be
|
||
|
my earnest endeavour to demean myself with grateful respect towards her
|
||
|
ladyship, and be ever ready to perform those rites and ceremonies which
|
||
|
are instituted by the Church of England. As a clergyman, moreover, I
|
||
|
feel it my duty to promote and establish the blessing of peace in
|
||
|
all families within the reach of my influence; and on these grounds I
|
||
|
flatter myself that my present overtures are highly commendable, and
|
||
|
that the circumstance of my being next in the entail of Longbourn estate
|
||
|
will be kindly overlooked on your side, and not lead you to reject the
|
||
|
offered olive-branch. I cannot be otherwise than concerned at being the
|
||
|
means of injuring your amiable daughters, and beg leave to apologise for
|
||
|
it, as well as to assure you of my readiness to make them every possible
|
||
|
amends--but of this hereafter. If you should have no objection to
|
||
|
receive me into your house, I propose myself the satisfaction of waiting
|
||
|
on you and your family, Monday, November 18th, by four o'clock, and
|
||
|
shall probably trespass on your hospitality till the Saturday se'ennight
|
||
|
following, which I can do without any inconvenience, as Lady Catherine
|
||
|
is far from objecting to my occasional absence on a Sunday, provided
|
||
|
that some other clergyman is engaged to do the duty of the day.--I
|
||
|
remain, dear sir, with respectful compliments to your lady and
|
||
|
daughters, your well-wisher and friend,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"WILLIAM COLLINS"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At four o'clock, therefore, we may expect this peace-making gentleman,"
|
||
|
said Mr. Bennet, as he folded up the letter. "He seems to be a most
|
||
|
conscientious and polite young man, upon my word, and I doubt not will
|
||
|
prove a valuable acquaintance, especially if Lady Catherine should be so
|
||
|
indulgent as to let him come to us again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is some sense in what he says about the girls, however, and if
|
||
|
he is disposed to make them any amends, I shall not be the person to
|
||
|
discourage him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Though it is difficult," said Jane, "to guess in what way he can mean
|
||
|
to make us the atonement he thinks our due, the wish is certainly to his
|
||
|
credit."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was chiefly struck by his extraordinary deference for Lady
|
||
|
Catherine, and his kind intention of christening, marrying, and burying
|
||
|
his parishioners whenever it were required.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He must be an oddity, I think," said she. "I cannot make him
|
||
|
out.--There is something very pompous in his style.--And what can he
|
||
|
mean by apologising for being next in the entail?--We cannot suppose he
|
||
|
would help it if he could.--Could he be a sensible man, sir?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, my dear, I think not. I have great hopes of finding him quite the
|
||
|
reverse. There is a mixture of servility and self-importance in his
|
||
|
letter, which promises well. I am impatient to see him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In point of composition," said Mary, "the letter does not seem
|
||
|
defective. The idea of the olive-branch perhaps is not wholly new, yet I
|
||
|
think it is well expressed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
To Catherine and Lydia, neither the letter nor its writer were in any
|
||
|
degree interesting. It was next to impossible that their cousin should
|
||
|
come in a scarlet coat, and it was now some weeks since they had
|
||
|
received pleasure from the society of a man in any other colour. As for
|
||
|
their mother, Mr. Collins's letter had done away much of her ill-will,
|
||
|
and she was preparing to see him with a degree of composure which
|
||
|
astonished her husband and daughters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins was punctual to his time, and was received with great
|
||
|
politeness by the whole family. Mr. Bennet indeed said little; but the
|
||
|
ladies were ready enough to talk, and Mr. Collins seemed neither in
|
||
|
need of encouragement, nor inclined to be silent himself. He was a
|
||
|
tall, heavy-looking young man of five-and-twenty. His air was grave and
|
||
|
stately, and his manners were very formal. He had not been long seated
|
||
|
before he complimented Mrs. Bennet on having so fine a family of
|
||
|
daughters; said he had heard much of their beauty, but that in this
|
||
|
instance fame had fallen short of the truth; and added, that he did
|
||
|
not doubt her seeing them all in due time disposed of in marriage. This
|
||
|
gallantry was not much to the taste of some of his hearers; but Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet, who quarreled with no compliments, answered most readily.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are very kind, I am sure; and I wish with all my heart it may
|
||
|
prove so, for else they will be destitute enough. Things are settled so
|
||
|
oddly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You allude, perhaps, to the entail of this estate."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah! sir, I do indeed. It is a grievous affair to my poor girls, you
|
||
|
must confess. Not that I mean to find fault with _you_, for such things
|
||
|
I know are all chance in this world. There is no knowing how estates
|
||
|
will go when once they come to be entailed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am very sensible, madam, of the hardship to my fair cousins, and
|
||
|
could say much on the subject, but that I am cautious of appearing
|
||
|
forward and precipitate. But I can assure the young ladies that I come
|
||
|
prepared to admire them. At present I will not say more; but, perhaps,
|
||
|
when we are better acquainted--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was interrupted by a summons to dinner; and the girls smiled on each
|
||
|
other. They were not the only objects of Mr. Collins's admiration. The
|
||
|
hall, the dining-room, and all its furniture, were examined and praised;
|
||
|
and his commendation of everything would have touched Mrs. Bennet's
|
||
|
heart, but for the mortifying supposition of his viewing it all as his
|
||
|
own future property. The dinner too in its turn was highly admired; and
|
||
|
he begged to know to which of his fair cousins the excellency of its
|
||
|
cooking was owing. But he was set right there by Mrs. Bennet, who
|
||
|
assured him with some asperity that they were very well able to keep a
|
||
|
good cook, and that her daughters had nothing to do in the kitchen. He
|
||
|
begged pardon for having displeased her. In a softened tone she declared
|
||
|
herself not at all offended; but he continued to apologise for about a
|
||
|
quarter of an hour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 14
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
During dinner, Mr. Bennet scarcely spoke at all; but when the servants
|
||
|
were withdrawn, he thought it time to have some conversation with his
|
||
|
guest, and therefore started a subject in which he expected him to
|
||
|
shine, by observing that he seemed very fortunate in his patroness. Lady
|
||
|
Catherine de Bourgh's attention to his wishes, and consideration for
|
||
|
his comfort, appeared very remarkable. Mr. Bennet could not have chosen
|
||
|
better. Mr. Collins was eloquent in her praise. The subject elevated him
|
||
|
to more than usual solemnity of manner, and with a most important aspect
|
||
|
he protested that "he had never in his life witnessed such behaviour in
|
||
|
a person of rank--such affability and condescension, as he had himself
|
||
|
experienced from Lady Catherine. She had been graciously pleased to
|
||
|
approve of both of the discourses which he had already had the honour of
|
||
|
preaching before her. She had also asked him twice to dine at Rosings,
|
||
|
and had sent for him only the Saturday before, to make up her pool of
|
||
|
quadrille in the evening. Lady Catherine was reckoned proud by many
|
||
|
people he knew, but _he_ had never seen anything but affability in her.
|
||
|
She had always spoken to him as she would to any other gentleman; she
|
||
|
made not the smallest objection to his joining in the society of the
|
||
|
neighbourhood nor to his leaving the parish occasionally for a week or
|
||
|
two, to visit his relations. She had even condescended to advise him to
|
||
|
marry as soon as he could, provided he chose with discretion; and had
|
||
|
once paid him a visit in his humble parsonage, where she had perfectly
|
||
|
approved all the alterations he had been making, and had even vouchsafed
|
||
|
to suggest some herself--some shelves in the closet up stairs."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is all very proper and civil, I am sure," said Mrs. Bennet, "and
|
||
|
I dare say she is a very agreeable woman. It is a pity that great ladies
|
||
|
in general are not more like her. Does she live near you, sir?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The garden in which stands my humble abode is separated only by a lane
|
||
|
from Rosings Park, her ladyship's residence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think you said she was a widow, sir? Has she any family?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She has only one daughter, the heiress of Rosings, and of very
|
||
|
extensive property."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ah!" said Mrs. Bennet, shaking her head, "then she is better off than
|
||
|
many girls. And what sort of young lady is she? Is she handsome?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is a most charming young lady indeed. Lady Catherine herself says
|
||
|
that, in point of true beauty, Miss de Bourgh is far superior to the
|
||
|
handsomest of her sex, because there is that in her features which marks
|
||
|
the young lady of distinguished birth. She is unfortunately of a sickly
|
||
|
constitution, which has prevented her from making that progress in many
|
||
|
accomplishments which she could not have otherwise failed of, as I am
|
||
|
informed by the lady who superintended her education, and who still
|
||
|
resides with them. But she is perfectly amiable, and often condescends
|
||
|
to drive by my humble abode in her little phaeton and ponies."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Has she been presented? I do not remember her name among the ladies at
|
||
|
court."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Her indifferent state of health unhappily prevents her being in town;
|
||
|
and by that means, as I told Lady Catherine one day, has deprived the
|
||
|
British court of its brightest ornament. Her ladyship seemed pleased
|
||
|
with the idea; and you may imagine that I am happy on every occasion to
|
||
|
offer those little delicate compliments which are always acceptable
|
||
|
to ladies. I have more than once observed to Lady Catherine, that
|
||
|
her charming daughter seemed born to be a duchess, and that the most
|
||
|
elevated rank, instead of giving her consequence, would be adorned by
|
||
|
her. These are the kind of little things which please her ladyship, and
|
||
|
it is a sort of attention which I conceive myself peculiarly bound to
|
||
|
pay."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You judge very properly," said Mr. Bennet, "and it is happy for you
|
||
|
that you possess the talent of flattering with delicacy. May I ask
|
||
|
whether these pleasing attentions proceed from the impulse of the
|
||
|
moment, or are the result of previous study?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They arise chiefly from what is passing at the time, and though I
|
||
|
sometimes amuse myself with suggesting and arranging such little elegant
|
||
|
compliments as may be adapted to ordinary occasions, I always wish to
|
||
|
give them as unstudied an air as possible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet's expectations were fully answered. His cousin was as absurd
|
||
|
as he had hoped, and he listened to him with the keenest enjoyment,
|
||
|
maintaining at the same time the most resolute composure of countenance,
|
||
|
and, except in an occasional glance at Elizabeth, requiring no partner
|
||
|
in his pleasure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By tea-time, however, the dose had been enough, and Mr. Bennet was glad
|
||
|
to take his guest into the drawing-room again, and, when tea was over,
|
||
|
glad to invite him to read aloud to the ladies. Mr. Collins readily
|
||
|
assented, and a book was produced; but, on beholding it (for everything
|
||
|
announced it to be from a circulating library), he started back, and
|
||
|
begging pardon, protested that he never read novels. Kitty stared at
|
||
|
him, and Lydia exclaimed. Other books were produced, and after some
|
||
|
deliberation he chose Fordyce's Sermons. Lydia gaped as he opened the
|
||
|
volume, and before he had, with very monotonous solemnity, read three
|
||
|
pages, she interrupted him with:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you know, mamma, that my uncle Phillips talks of turning away
|
||
|
Richard; and if he does, Colonel Forster will hire him. My aunt told me
|
||
|
so herself on Saturday. I shall walk to Meryton to-morrow to hear more
|
||
|
about it, and to ask when Mr. Denny comes back from town."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lydia was bid by her two eldest sisters to hold her tongue; but Mr.
|
||
|
Collins, much offended, laid aside his book, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have often observed how little young ladies are interested by books
|
||
|
of a serious stamp, though written solely for their benefit. It amazes
|
||
|
me, I confess; for, certainly, there can be nothing so advantageous to
|
||
|
them as instruction. But I will no longer importune my young cousin."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then turning to Mr. Bennet, he offered himself as his antagonist at
|
||
|
backgammon. Mr. Bennet accepted the challenge, observing that he acted
|
||
|
very wisely in leaving the girls to their own trifling amusements.
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet and her daughters apologised most civilly for Lydia's
|
||
|
interruption, and promised that it should not occur again, if he would
|
||
|
resume his book; but Mr. Collins, after assuring them that he bore his
|
||
|
young cousin no ill-will, and should never resent her behaviour as any
|
||
|
affront, seated himself at another table with Mr. Bennet, and prepared
|
||
|
for backgammon.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 15
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins was not a sensible man, and the deficiency of nature had
|
||
|
been but little assisted by education or society; the greatest part
|
||
|
of his life having been spent under the guidance of an illiterate and
|
||
|
miserly father; and though he belonged to one of the universities, he
|
||
|
had merely kept the necessary terms, without forming at it any useful
|
||
|
acquaintance. The subjection in which his father had brought him up had
|
||
|
given him originally great humility of manner; but it was now a
|
||
|
good deal counteracted by the self-conceit of a weak head, living in
|
||
|
retirement, and the consequential feelings of early and unexpected
|
||
|
prosperity. A fortunate chance had recommended him to Lady Catherine de
|
||
|
Bourgh when the living of Hunsford was vacant; and the respect which
|
||
|
he felt for her high rank, and his veneration for her as his patroness,
|
||
|
mingling with a very good opinion of himself, of his authority as a
|
||
|
clergyman, and his right as a rector, made him altogether a mixture of
|
||
|
pride and obsequiousness, self-importance and humility.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Having now a good house and a very sufficient income, he intended to
|
||
|
marry; and in seeking a reconciliation with the Longbourn family he had
|
||
|
a wife in view, as he meant to choose one of the daughters, if he found
|
||
|
them as handsome and amiable as they were represented by common report.
|
||
|
This was his plan of amends--of atonement--for inheriting their father's
|
||
|
estate; and he thought it an excellent one, full of eligibility and
|
||
|
suitableness, and excessively generous and disinterested on his own
|
||
|
part.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His plan did not vary on seeing them. Miss Bennet's lovely face
|
||
|
confirmed his views, and established all his strictest notions of what
|
||
|
was due to seniority; and for the first evening _she_ was his settled
|
||
|
choice. The next morning, however, made an alteration; for in a
|
||
|
quarter of an hour's tete-a-tete with Mrs. Bennet before breakfast, a
|
||
|
conversation beginning with his parsonage-house, and leading naturally
|
||
|
to the avowal of his hopes, that a mistress might be found for it at
|
||
|
Longbourn, produced from her, amid very complaisant smiles and general
|
||
|
encouragement, a caution against the very Jane he had fixed on. "As to
|
||
|
her _younger_ daughters, she could not take upon her to say--she could
|
||
|
not positively answer--but she did not _know_ of any prepossession; her
|
||
|
_eldest_ daughter, she must just mention--she felt it incumbent on her
|
||
|
to hint, was likely to be very soon engaged."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins had only to change from Jane to Elizabeth--and it was soon
|
||
|
done--done while Mrs. Bennet was stirring the fire. Elizabeth, equally
|
||
|
next to Jane in birth and beauty, succeeded her of course.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet treasured up the hint, and trusted that she might soon have
|
||
|
two daughters married; and the man whom she could not bear to speak of
|
||
|
the day before was now high in her good graces.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lydia's intention of walking to Meryton was not forgotten; every sister
|
||
|
except Mary agreed to go with her; and Mr. Collins was to attend them,
|
||
|
at the request of Mr. Bennet, who was most anxious to get rid of him,
|
||
|
and have his library to himself; for thither Mr. Collins had followed
|
||
|
him after breakfast; and there he would continue, nominally engaged with
|
||
|
one of the largest folios in the collection, but really talking to Mr.
|
||
|
Bennet, with little cessation, of his house and garden at Hunsford. Such
|
||
|
doings discomposed Mr. Bennet exceedingly. In his library he had been
|
||
|
always sure of leisure and tranquillity; and though prepared, as he told
|
||
|
Elizabeth, to meet with folly and conceit in every other room of the
|
||
|
house, he was used to be free from them there; his civility, therefore,
|
||
|
was most prompt in inviting Mr. Collins to join his daughters in their
|
||
|
walk; and Mr. Collins, being in fact much better fitted for a walker
|
||
|
than a reader, was extremely pleased to close his large book, and go.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In pompous nothings on his side, and civil assents on that of his
|
||
|
cousins, their time passed till they entered Meryton. The attention of
|
||
|
the younger ones was then no longer to be gained by him. Their eyes were
|
||
|
immediately wandering up in the street in quest of the officers, and
|
||
|
nothing less than a very smart bonnet indeed, or a really new muslin in
|
||
|
a shop window, could recall them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But the attention of every lady was soon caught by a young man, whom
|
||
|
they had never seen before, of most gentlemanlike appearance, walking
|
||
|
with another officer on the other side of the way. The officer was
|
||
|
the very Mr. Denny concerning whose return from London Lydia came
|
||
|
to inquire, and he bowed as they passed. All were struck with the
|
||
|
stranger's air, all wondered who he could be; and Kitty and Lydia,
|
||
|
determined if possible to find out, led the way across the street, under
|
||
|
pretense of wanting something in an opposite shop, and fortunately
|
||
|
had just gained the pavement when the two gentlemen, turning back, had
|
||
|
reached the same spot. Mr. Denny addressed them directly, and entreated
|
||
|
permission to introduce his friend, Mr. Wickham, who had returned with
|
||
|
him the day before from town, and he was happy to say had accepted a
|
||
|
commission in their corps. This was exactly as it should be; for the
|
||
|
young man wanted only regimentals to make him completely charming.
|
||
|
His appearance was greatly in his favour; he had all the best part of
|
||
|
beauty, a fine countenance, a good figure, and very pleasing address.
|
||
|
The introduction was followed up on his side by a happy readiness
|
||
|
of conversation--a readiness at the same time perfectly correct and
|
||
|
unassuming; and the whole party were still standing and talking together
|
||
|
very agreeably, when the sound of horses drew their notice, and Darcy
|
||
|
and Bingley were seen riding down the street. On distinguishing the
|
||
|
ladies of the group, the two gentlemen came directly towards them, and
|
||
|
began the usual civilities. Bingley was the principal spokesman, and
|
||
|
Miss Bennet the principal object. He was then, he said, on his way to
|
||
|
Longbourn on purpose to inquire after her. Mr. Darcy corroborated
|
||
|
it with a bow, and was beginning to determine not to fix his eyes
|
||
|
on Elizabeth, when they were suddenly arrested by the sight of the
|
||
|
stranger, and Elizabeth happening to see the countenance of both as they
|
||
|
looked at each other, was all astonishment at the effect of the meeting.
|
||
|
Both changed colour, one looked white, the other red. Mr. Wickham,
|
||
|
after a few moments, touched his hat--a salutation which Mr. Darcy just
|
||
|
deigned to return. What could be the meaning of it? It was impossible to
|
||
|
imagine; it was impossible not to long to know.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In another minute, Mr. Bingley, but without seeming to have noticed what
|
||
|
passed, took leave and rode on with his friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Denny and Mr. Wickham walked with the young ladies to the door of
|
||
|
Mr. Phillip's house, and then made their bows, in spite of Miss Lydia's
|
||
|
pressing entreaties that they should come in, and even in spite of
|
||
|
Mrs. Phillips's throwing up the parlour window and loudly seconding the
|
||
|
invitation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Phillips was always glad to see her nieces; and the two eldest,
|
||
|
from their recent absence, were particularly welcome, and she was
|
||
|
eagerly expressing her surprise at their sudden return home, which, as
|
||
|
their own carriage had not fetched them, she should have known nothing
|
||
|
about, if she had not happened to see Mr. Jones's shop-boy in the
|
||
|
street, who had told her that they were not to send any more draughts to
|
||
|
Netherfield because the Miss Bennets were come away, when her civility
|
||
|
was claimed towards Mr. Collins by Jane's introduction of him. She
|
||
|
received him with her very best politeness, which he returned with
|
||
|
as much more, apologising for his intrusion, without any previous
|
||
|
acquaintance with her, which he could not help flattering himself,
|
||
|
however, might be justified by his relationship to the young ladies who
|
||
|
introduced him to her notice. Mrs. Phillips was quite awed by such an
|
||
|
excess of good breeding; but her contemplation of one stranger was soon
|
||
|
put to an end by exclamations and inquiries about the other; of whom,
|
||
|
however, she could only tell her nieces what they already knew, that
|
||
|
Mr. Denny had brought him from London, and that he was to have a
|
||
|
lieutenant's commission in the ----shire. She had been watching him the
|
||
|
last hour, she said, as he walked up and down the street, and had Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham appeared, Kitty and Lydia would certainly have continued the
|
||
|
occupation, but unluckily no one passed windows now except a few of the
|
||
|
officers, who, in comparison with the stranger, were become "stupid,
|
||
|
disagreeable fellows." Some of them were to dine with the Phillipses
|
||
|
the next day, and their aunt promised to make her husband call on Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham, and give him an invitation also, if the family from Longbourn
|
||
|
would come in the evening. This was agreed to, and Mrs. Phillips
|
||
|
protested that they would have a nice comfortable noisy game of lottery
|
||
|
tickets, and a little bit of hot supper afterwards. The prospect of such
|
||
|
delights was very cheering, and they parted in mutual good spirits. Mr.
|
||
|
Collins repeated his apologies in quitting the room, and was assured
|
||
|
with unwearying civility that they were perfectly needless.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As they walked home, Elizabeth related to Jane what she had seen pass
|
||
|
between the two gentlemen; but though Jane would have defended either
|
||
|
or both, had they appeared to be in the wrong, she could no more explain
|
||
|
such behaviour than her sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins on his return highly gratified Mrs. Bennet by admiring
|
||
|
Mrs. Phillips's manners and politeness. He protested that, except Lady
|
||
|
Catherine and her daughter, he had never seen a more elegant woman;
|
||
|
for she had not only received him with the utmost civility, but even
|
||
|
pointedly included him in her invitation for the next evening, although
|
||
|
utterly unknown to her before. Something, he supposed, might be
|
||
|
attributed to his connection with them, but yet he had never met with so
|
||
|
much attention in the whole course of his life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 16
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
As no objection was made to the young people's engagement with their
|
||
|
aunt, and all Mr. Collins's scruples of leaving Mr. and Mrs. Bennet for
|
||
|
a single evening during his visit were most steadily resisted, the coach
|
||
|
conveyed him and his five cousins at a suitable hour to Meryton; and
|
||
|
the girls had the pleasure of hearing, as they entered the drawing-room,
|
||
|
that Mr. Wickham had accepted their uncle's invitation, and was then in
|
||
|
the house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When this information was given, and they had all taken their seats, Mr.
|
||
|
Collins was at leisure to look around him and admire, and he was so much
|
||
|
struck with the size and furniture of the apartment, that he declared he
|
||
|
might almost have supposed himself in the small summer breakfast
|
||
|
parlour at Rosings; a comparison that did not at first convey much
|
||
|
gratification; but when Mrs. Phillips understood from him what
|
||
|
Rosings was, and who was its proprietor--when she had listened to the
|
||
|
description of only one of Lady Catherine's drawing-rooms, and found
|
||
|
that the chimney-piece alone had cost eight hundred pounds, she felt all
|
||
|
the force of the compliment, and would hardly have resented a comparison
|
||
|
with the housekeeper's room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In describing to her all the grandeur of Lady Catherine and her mansion,
|
||
|
with occasional digressions in praise of his own humble abode, and
|
||
|
the improvements it was receiving, he was happily employed until the
|
||
|
gentlemen joined them; and he found in Mrs. Phillips a very attentive
|
||
|
listener, whose opinion of his consequence increased with what she
|
||
|
heard, and who was resolving to retail it all among her neighbours as
|
||
|
soon as she could. To the girls, who could not listen to their cousin,
|
||
|
and who had nothing to do but to wish for an instrument, and examine
|
||
|
their own indifferent imitations of china on the mantelpiece, the
|
||
|
interval of waiting appeared very long. It was over at last, however.
|
||
|
The gentlemen did approach, and when Mr. Wickham walked into the room,
|
||
|
Elizabeth felt that she had neither been seeing him before, nor thinking
|
||
|
of him since, with the smallest degree of unreasonable admiration.
|
||
|
The officers of the ----shire were in general a very creditable,
|
||
|
gentlemanlike set, and the best of them were of the present party; but
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham was as far beyond them all in person, countenance, air, and
|
||
|
walk, as _they_ were superior to the broad-faced, stuffy uncle Phillips,
|
||
|
breathing port wine, who followed them into the room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham was the happy man towards whom almost every female eye was
|
||
|
turned, and Elizabeth was the happy woman by whom he finally seated
|
||
|
himself; and the agreeable manner in which he immediately fell into
|
||
|
conversation, though it was only on its being a wet night, made her feel
|
||
|
that the commonest, dullest, most threadbare topic might be rendered
|
||
|
interesting by the skill of the speaker.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With such rivals for the notice of the fair as Mr. Wickham and the
|
||
|
officers, Mr. Collins seemed to sink into insignificance; to the young
|
||
|
ladies he certainly was nothing; but he had still at intervals a kind
|
||
|
listener in Mrs. Phillips, and was by her watchfulness, most abundantly
|
||
|
supplied with coffee and muffin. When the card-tables were placed, he
|
||
|
had the opportunity of obliging her in turn, by sitting down to whist.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know little of the game at present," said he, "but I shall be glad
|
||
|
to improve myself, for in my situation in life--" Mrs. Phillips was very
|
||
|
glad for his compliance, but could not wait for his reason.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham did not play at whist, and with ready delight was he
|
||
|
received at the other table between Elizabeth and Lydia. At first there
|
||
|
seemed danger of Lydia's engrossing him entirely, for she was a most
|
||
|
determined talker; but being likewise extremely fond of lottery tickets,
|
||
|
she soon grew too much interested in the game, too eager in making bets
|
||
|
and exclaiming after prizes to have attention for anyone in particular.
|
||
|
Allowing for the common demands of the game, Mr. Wickham was therefore
|
||
|
at leisure to talk to Elizabeth, and she was very willing to hear
|
||
|
him, though what she chiefly wished to hear she could not hope to be
|
||
|
told--the history of his acquaintance with Mr. Darcy. She dared not
|
||
|
even mention that gentleman. Her curiosity, however, was unexpectedly
|
||
|
relieved. Mr. Wickham began the subject himself. He inquired how far
|
||
|
Netherfield was from Meryton; and, after receiving her answer, asked in
|
||
|
a hesitating manner how long Mr. Darcy had been staying there.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"About a month," said Elizabeth; and then, unwilling to let the subject
|
||
|
drop, added, "He is a man of very large property in Derbyshire, I
|
||
|
understand."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," replied Mr. Wickham; "his estate there is a noble one. A clear
|
||
|
ten thousand per annum. You could not have met with a person more
|
||
|
capable of giving you certain information on that head than myself, for
|
||
|
I have been connected with his family in a particular manner from my
|
||
|
infancy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could not but look surprised.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may well be surprised, Miss Bennet, at such an assertion, after
|
||
|
seeing, as you probably might, the very cold manner of our meeting
|
||
|
yesterday. Are you much acquainted with Mr. Darcy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As much as I ever wish to be," cried Elizabeth very warmly. "I have
|
||
|
spent four days in the same house with him, and I think him very
|
||
|
disagreeable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have no right to give _my_ opinion," said Wickham, "as to his being
|
||
|
agreeable or otherwise. I am not qualified to form one. I have known him
|
||
|
too long and too well to be a fair judge. It is impossible for _me_
|
||
|
to be impartial. But I believe your opinion of him would in general
|
||
|
astonish--and perhaps you would not express it quite so strongly
|
||
|
anywhere else. Here you are in your own family."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Upon my word, I say no more _here_ than I might say in any house in
|
||
|
the neighbourhood, except Netherfield. He is not at all liked in
|
||
|
Hertfordshire. Everybody is disgusted with his pride. You will not find
|
||
|
him more favourably spoken of by anyone."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot pretend to be sorry," said Wickham, after a short
|
||
|
interruption, "that he or that any man should not be estimated beyond
|
||
|
their deserts; but with _him_ I believe it does not often happen. The
|
||
|
world is blinded by his fortune and consequence, or frightened by his
|
||
|
high and imposing manners, and sees him only as he chooses to be seen."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should take him, even on _my_ slight acquaintance, to be an
|
||
|
ill-tempered man." Wickham only shook his head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I wonder," said he, at the next opportunity of speaking, "whether he is
|
||
|
likely to be in this country much longer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not at all know; but I _heard_ nothing of his going away when I
|
||
|
was at Netherfield. I hope your plans in favour of the ----shire will
|
||
|
not be affected by his being in the neighbourhood."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! no--it is not for _me_ to be driven away by Mr. Darcy. If _he_
|
||
|
wishes to avoid seeing _me_, he must go. We are not on friendly terms,
|
||
|
and it always gives me pain to meet him, but I have no reason for
|
||
|
avoiding _him_ but what I might proclaim before all the world, a sense
|
||
|
of very great ill-usage, and most painful regrets at his being what he
|
||
|
is. His father, Miss Bennet, the late Mr. Darcy, was one of the best men
|
||
|
that ever breathed, and the truest friend I ever had; and I can never
|
||
|
be in company with this Mr. Darcy without being grieved to the soul by
|
||
|
a thousand tender recollections. His behaviour to myself has been
|
||
|
scandalous; but I verily believe I could forgive him anything and
|
||
|
everything, rather than his disappointing the hopes and disgracing the
|
||
|
memory of his father."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth found the interest of the subject increase, and listened with
|
||
|
all her heart; but the delicacy of it prevented further inquiry.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham began to speak on more general topics, Meryton, the
|
||
|
neighbourhood, the society, appearing highly pleased with all that
|
||
|
he had yet seen, and speaking of the latter with gentle but very
|
||
|
intelligible gallantry.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was the prospect of constant society, and good society," he added,
|
||
|
"which was my chief inducement to enter the ----shire. I knew it to be
|
||
|
a most respectable, agreeable corps, and my friend Denny tempted me
|
||
|
further by his account of their present quarters, and the very great
|
||
|
attentions and excellent acquaintances Meryton had procured them.
|
||
|
Society, I own, is necessary to me. I have been a disappointed man, and
|
||
|
my spirits will not bear solitude. I _must_ have employment and society.
|
||
|
A military life is not what I was intended for, but circumstances have
|
||
|
now made it eligible. The church _ought_ to have been my profession--I
|
||
|
was brought up for the church, and I should at this time have been in
|
||
|
possession of a most valuable living, had it pleased the gentleman we
|
||
|
were speaking of just now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--the late Mr. Darcy bequeathed me the next presentation of the best
|
||
|
living in his gift. He was my godfather, and excessively attached to me.
|
||
|
I cannot do justice to his kindness. He meant to provide for me amply,
|
||
|
and thought he had done it; but when the living fell, it was given
|
||
|
elsewhere."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good heavens!" cried Elizabeth; "but how could _that_ be? How could his
|
||
|
will be disregarded? Why did you not seek legal redress?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There was just such an informality in the terms of the bequest as to
|
||
|
give me no hope from law. A man of honour could not have doubted the
|
||
|
intention, but Mr. Darcy chose to doubt it--or to treat it as a merely
|
||
|
conditional recommendation, and to assert that I had forfeited all claim
|
||
|
to it by extravagance, imprudence--in short anything or nothing. Certain
|
||
|
it is, that the living became vacant two years ago, exactly as I was
|
||
|
of an age to hold it, and that it was given to another man; and no
|
||
|
less certain is it, that I cannot accuse myself of having really done
|
||
|
anything to deserve to lose it. I have a warm, unguarded temper, and
|
||
|
I may have spoken my opinion _of_ him, and _to_ him, too freely. I can
|
||
|
recall nothing worse. But the fact is, that we are very different sort
|
||
|
of men, and that he hates me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is quite shocking! He deserves to be publicly disgraced."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Some time or other he _will_ be--but it shall not be by _me_. Till I
|
||
|
can forget his father, I can never defy or expose _him_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth honoured him for such feelings, and thought him handsomer than
|
||
|
ever as he expressed them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But what," said she, after a pause, "can have been his motive? What can
|
||
|
have induced him to behave so cruelly?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A thorough, determined dislike of me--a dislike which I cannot but
|
||
|
attribute in some measure to jealousy. Had the late Mr. Darcy liked me
|
||
|
less, his son might have borne with me better; but his father's uncommon
|
||
|
attachment to me irritated him, I believe, very early in life. He had
|
||
|
not a temper to bear the sort of competition in which we stood--the sort
|
||
|
of preference which was often given me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had not thought Mr. Darcy so bad as this--though I have never liked
|
||
|
him. I had not thought so very ill of him. I had supposed him to be
|
||
|
despising his fellow-creatures in general, but did not suspect him of
|
||
|
descending to such malicious revenge, such injustice, such inhumanity as
|
||
|
this."
|
||
|
|
||
|
After a few minutes' reflection, however, she continued, "I _do_
|
||
|
remember his boasting one day, at Netherfield, of the implacability of
|
||
|
his resentments, of his having an unforgiving temper. His disposition
|
||
|
must be dreadful."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will not trust myself on the subject," replied Wickham; "I can hardly
|
||
|
be just to him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was again deep in thought, and after a time exclaimed, "To
|
||
|
treat in such a manner the godson, the friend, the favourite of his
|
||
|
father!" She could have added, "A young man, too, like _you_, whose very
|
||
|
countenance may vouch for your being amiable"--but she contented herself
|
||
|
with, "and one, too, who had probably been his companion from childhood,
|
||
|
connected together, as I think you said, in the closest manner!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We were born in the same parish, within the same park; the greatest
|
||
|
part of our youth was passed together; inmates of the same house,
|
||
|
sharing the same amusements, objects of the same parental care. _My_
|
||
|
father began life in the profession which your uncle, Mr. Phillips,
|
||
|
appears to do so much credit to--but he gave up everything to be of
|
||
|
use to the late Mr. Darcy and devoted all his time to the care of the
|
||
|
Pemberley property. He was most highly esteemed by Mr. Darcy, a most
|
||
|
intimate, confidential friend. Mr. Darcy often acknowledged himself to
|
||
|
be under the greatest obligations to my father's active superintendence,
|
||
|
and when, immediately before my father's death, Mr. Darcy gave him a
|
||
|
voluntary promise of providing for me, I am convinced that he felt it to
|
||
|
be as much a debt of gratitude to _him_, as of his affection to myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How strange!" cried Elizabeth. "How abominable! I wonder that the very
|
||
|
pride of this Mr. Darcy has not made him just to you! If from no better
|
||
|
motive, that he should not have been too proud to be dishonest--for
|
||
|
dishonesty I must call it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It _is_ wonderful," replied Wickham, "for almost all his actions may
|
||
|
be traced to pride; and pride had often been his best friend. It has
|
||
|
connected him nearer with virtue than with any other feeling. But we are
|
||
|
none of us consistent, and in his behaviour to me there were stronger
|
||
|
impulses even than pride."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can such abominable pride as his have ever done him good?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes. It has often led him to be liberal and generous, to give his money
|
||
|
freely, to display hospitality, to assist his tenants, and relieve the
|
||
|
poor. Family pride, and _filial_ pride--for he is very proud of what
|
||
|
his father was--have done this. Not to appear to disgrace his family,
|
||
|
to degenerate from the popular qualities, or lose the influence of the
|
||
|
Pemberley House, is a powerful motive. He has also _brotherly_ pride,
|
||
|
which, with _some_ brotherly affection, makes him a very kind and
|
||
|
careful guardian of his sister, and you will hear him generally cried up
|
||
|
as the most attentive and best of brothers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What sort of girl is Miss Darcy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
He shook his head. "I wish I could call her amiable. It gives me pain to
|
||
|
speak ill of a Darcy. But she is too much like her brother--very, very
|
||
|
proud. As a child, she was affectionate and pleasing, and extremely fond
|
||
|
of me; and I have devoted hours and hours to her amusement. But she is
|
||
|
nothing to me now. She is a handsome girl, about fifteen or sixteen,
|
||
|
and, I understand, highly accomplished. Since her father's death, her
|
||
|
home has been London, where a lady lives with her, and superintends her
|
||
|
education."
|
||
|
|
||
|
After many pauses and many trials of other subjects, Elizabeth could not
|
||
|
help reverting once more to the first, and saying:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am astonished at his intimacy with Mr. Bingley! How can Mr. Bingley,
|
||
|
who seems good humour itself, and is, I really believe, truly amiable,
|
||
|
be in friendship with such a man? How can they suit each other? Do you
|
||
|
know Mr. Bingley?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not at all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is a sweet-tempered, amiable, charming man. He cannot know what Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy is."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Probably not; but Mr. Darcy can please where he chooses. He does not
|
||
|
want abilities. He can be a conversible companion if he thinks it worth
|
||
|
his while. Among those who are at all his equals in consequence, he is
|
||
|
a very different man from what he is to the less prosperous. His
|
||
|
pride never deserts him; but with the rich he is liberal-minded, just,
|
||
|
sincere, rational, honourable, and perhaps agreeable--allowing something
|
||
|
for fortune and figure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The whist party soon afterwards breaking up, the players gathered round
|
||
|
the other table and Mr. Collins took his station between his cousin
|
||
|
Elizabeth and Mrs. Phillips. The usual inquiries as to his success was
|
||
|
made by the latter. It had not been very great; he had lost every
|
||
|
point; but when Mrs. Phillips began to express her concern thereupon,
|
||
|
he assured her with much earnest gravity that it was not of the least
|
||
|
importance, that he considered the money as a mere trifle, and begged
|
||
|
that she would not make herself uneasy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know very well, madam," said he, "that when persons sit down to a
|
||
|
card-table, they must take their chances of these things, and happily I
|
||
|
am not in such circumstances as to make five shillings any object. There
|
||
|
are undoubtedly many who could not say the same, but thanks to Lady
|
||
|
Catherine de Bourgh, I am removed far beyond the necessity of regarding
|
||
|
little matters."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham's attention was caught; and after observing Mr. Collins for
|
||
|
a few moments, he asked Elizabeth in a low voice whether her relation
|
||
|
was very intimately acquainted with the family of de Bourgh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lady Catherine de Bourgh," she replied, "has very lately given him
|
||
|
a living. I hardly know how Mr. Collins was first introduced to her
|
||
|
notice, but he certainly has not known her long."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know of course that Lady Catherine de Bourgh and Lady Anne Darcy
|
||
|
were sisters; consequently that she is aunt to the present Mr. Darcy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, indeed, I did not. I knew nothing at all of Lady Catherine's
|
||
|
connections. I never heard of her existence till the day before
|
||
|
yesterday."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Her daughter, Miss de Bourgh, will have a very large fortune, and it is
|
||
|
believed that she and her cousin will unite the two estates."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This information made Elizabeth smile, as she thought of poor Miss
|
||
|
Bingley. Vain indeed must be all her attentions, vain and useless her
|
||
|
affection for his sister and her praise of himself, if he were already
|
||
|
self-destined for another.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Collins," said she, "speaks highly both of Lady Catherine and her
|
||
|
daughter; but from some particulars that he has related of her ladyship,
|
||
|
I suspect his gratitude misleads him, and that in spite of her being his
|
||
|
patroness, she is an arrogant, conceited woman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I believe her to be both in a great degree," replied Wickham; "I have
|
||
|
not seen her for many years, but I very well remember that I never liked
|
||
|
her, and that her manners were dictatorial and insolent. She has the
|
||
|
reputation of being remarkably sensible and clever; but I rather believe
|
||
|
she derives part of her abilities from her rank and fortune, part from
|
||
|
her authoritative manner, and the rest from the pride for her
|
||
|
nephew, who chooses that everyone connected with him should have an
|
||
|
understanding of the first class."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth allowed that he had given a very rational account of it, and
|
||
|
they continued talking together, with mutual satisfaction till supper
|
||
|
put an end to cards, and gave the rest of the ladies their share of Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham's attentions. There could be no conversation in the noise
|
||
|
of Mrs. Phillips's supper party, but his manners recommended him to
|
||
|
everybody. Whatever he said, was said well; and whatever he did, done
|
||
|
gracefully. Elizabeth went away with her head full of him. She could
|
||
|
think of nothing but of Mr. Wickham, and of what he had told her, all
|
||
|
the way home; but there was not time for her even to mention his name
|
||
|
as they went, for neither Lydia nor Mr. Collins were once silent. Lydia
|
||
|
talked incessantly of lottery tickets, of the fish she had lost and the
|
||
|
fish she had won; and Mr. Collins in describing the civility of Mr. and
|
||
|
Mrs. Phillips, protesting that he did not in the least regard his losses
|
||
|
at whist, enumerating all the dishes at supper, and repeatedly fearing
|
||
|
that he crowded his cousins, had more to say than he could well manage
|
||
|
before the carriage stopped at Longbourn House.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 17
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth related to Jane the next day what had passed between Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham and herself. Jane listened with astonishment and concern; she
|
||
|
knew not how to believe that Mr. Darcy could be so unworthy of Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley's regard; and yet, it was not in her nature to question the
|
||
|
veracity of a young man of such amiable appearance as Wickham. The
|
||
|
possibility of his having endured such unkindness, was enough to
|
||
|
interest all her tender feelings; and nothing remained therefore to be
|
||
|
done, but to think well of them both, to defend the conduct of each,
|
||
|
and throw into the account of accident or mistake whatever could not be
|
||
|
otherwise explained.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They have both," said she, "been deceived, I dare say, in some way
|
||
|
or other, of which we can form no idea. Interested people have perhaps
|
||
|
misrepresented each to the other. It is, in short, impossible for us to
|
||
|
conjecture the causes or circumstances which may have alienated them,
|
||
|
without actual blame on either side."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very true, indeed; and now, my dear Jane, what have you got to say on
|
||
|
behalf of the interested people who have probably been concerned in the
|
||
|
business? Do clear _them_ too, or we shall be obliged to think ill of
|
||
|
somebody."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Laugh as much as you choose, but you will not laugh me out of my
|
||
|
opinion. My dearest Lizzy, do but consider in what a disgraceful light
|
||
|
it places Mr. Darcy, to be treating his father's favourite in such
|
||
|
a manner, one whom his father had promised to provide for. It is
|
||
|
impossible. No man of common humanity, no man who had any value for his
|
||
|
character, could be capable of it. Can his most intimate friends be so
|
||
|
excessively deceived in him? Oh! no."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can much more easily believe Mr. Bingley's being imposed on, than
|
||
|
that Mr. Wickham should invent such a history of himself as he gave me
|
||
|
last night; names, facts, everything mentioned without ceremony. If it
|
||
|
be not so, let Mr. Darcy contradict it. Besides, there was truth in his
|
||
|
looks."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is difficult indeed--it is distressing. One does not know what to
|
||
|
think."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I beg your pardon; one knows exactly what to think."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But Jane could think with certainty on only one point--that Mr. Bingley,
|
||
|
if he _had_ been imposed on, would have much to suffer when the affair
|
||
|
became public.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The two young ladies were summoned from the shrubbery, where this
|
||
|
conversation passed, by the arrival of the very persons of whom they had
|
||
|
been speaking; Mr. Bingley and his sisters came to give their personal
|
||
|
invitation for the long-expected ball at Netherfield, which was fixed
|
||
|
for the following Tuesday. The two ladies were delighted to see their
|
||
|
dear friend again, called it an age since they had met, and repeatedly
|
||
|
asked what she had been doing with herself since their separation. To
|
||
|
the rest of the family they paid little attention; avoiding Mrs. Bennet
|
||
|
as much as possible, saying not much to Elizabeth, and nothing at all to
|
||
|
the others. They were soon gone again, rising from their seats with an
|
||
|
activity which took their brother by surprise, and hurrying off as if
|
||
|
eager to escape from Mrs. Bennet's civilities.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The prospect of the Netherfield ball was extremely agreeable to every
|
||
|
female of the family. Mrs. Bennet chose to consider it as given in
|
||
|
compliment to her eldest daughter, and was particularly flattered
|
||
|
by receiving the invitation from Mr. Bingley himself, instead of a
|
||
|
ceremonious card. Jane pictured to herself a happy evening in the
|
||
|
society of her two friends, and the attentions of her brother; and
|
||
|
Elizabeth thought with pleasure of dancing a great deal with Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham, and of seeing a confirmation of everything in Mr. Darcy's look
|
||
|
and behaviour. The happiness anticipated by Catherine and Lydia depended
|
||
|
less on any single event, or any particular person, for though they
|
||
|
each, like Elizabeth, meant to dance half the evening with Mr. Wickham,
|
||
|
he was by no means the only partner who could satisfy them, and a ball
|
||
|
was, at any rate, a ball. And even Mary could assure her family that she
|
||
|
had no disinclination for it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"While I can have my mornings to myself," said she, "it is enough--I
|
||
|
think it is no sacrifice to join occasionally in evening engagements.
|
||
|
Society has claims on us all; and I profess myself one of those
|
||
|
who consider intervals of recreation and amusement as desirable for
|
||
|
everybody."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's spirits were so high on this occasion, that though she did
|
||
|
not often speak unnecessarily to Mr. Collins, she could not help asking
|
||
|
him whether he intended to accept Mr. Bingley's invitation, and if
|
||
|
he did, whether he would think it proper to join in the evening's
|
||
|
amusement; and she was rather surprised to find that he entertained no
|
||
|
scruple whatever on that head, and was very far from dreading a rebuke
|
||
|
either from the Archbishop, or Lady Catherine de Bourgh, by venturing to
|
||
|
dance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am by no means of the opinion, I assure you," said he, "that a ball
|
||
|
of this kind, given by a young man of character, to respectable people,
|
||
|
can have any evil tendency; and I am so far from objecting to dancing
|
||
|
myself, that I shall hope to be honoured with the hands of all my fair
|
||
|
cousins in the course of the evening; and I take this opportunity of
|
||
|
soliciting yours, Miss Elizabeth, for the two first dances especially,
|
||
|
a preference which I trust my cousin Jane will attribute to the right
|
||
|
cause, and not to any disrespect for her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth felt herself completely taken in. She had fully proposed being
|
||
|
engaged by Mr. Wickham for those very dances; and to have Mr. Collins
|
||
|
instead! her liveliness had never been worse timed. There was no help
|
||
|
for it, however. Mr. Wickham's happiness and her own were perforce
|
||
|
delayed a little longer, and Mr. Collins's proposal accepted with as
|
||
|
good a grace as she could. She was not the better pleased with his
|
||
|
gallantry from the idea it suggested of something more. It now first
|
||
|
struck her, that _she_ was selected from among her sisters as worthy
|
||
|
of being mistress of Hunsford Parsonage, and of assisting to form a
|
||
|
quadrille table at Rosings, in the absence of more eligible visitors.
|
||
|
The idea soon reached to conviction, as she observed his increasing
|
||
|
civilities toward herself, and heard his frequent attempt at a
|
||
|
compliment on her wit and vivacity; and though more astonished than
|
||
|
gratified herself by this effect of her charms, it was not long before
|
||
|
her mother gave her to understand that the probability of their marriage
|
||
|
was extremely agreeable to _her_. Elizabeth, however, did not choose
|
||
|
to take the hint, being well aware that a serious dispute must be the
|
||
|
consequence of any reply. Mr. Collins might never make the offer, and
|
||
|
till he did, it was useless to quarrel about him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If there had not been a Netherfield ball to prepare for and talk of, the
|
||
|
younger Miss Bennets would have been in a very pitiable state at this
|
||
|
time, for from the day of the invitation, to the day of the ball, there
|
||
|
was such a succession of rain as prevented their walking to Meryton
|
||
|
once. No aunt, no officers, no news could be sought after--the very
|
||
|
shoe-roses for Netherfield were got by proxy. Even Elizabeth might have
|
||
|
found some trial of her patience in weather which totally suspended the
|
||
|
improvement of her acquaintance with Mr. Wickham; and nothing less than
|
||
|
a dance on Tuesday, could have made such a Friday, Saturday, Sunday, and
|
||
|
Monday endurable to Kitty and Lydia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 18
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Till Elizabeth entered the drawing-room at Netherfield, and looked in
|
||
|
vain for Mr. Wickham among the cluster of red coats there assembled, a
|
||
|
doubt of his being present had never occurred to her. The certainty
|
||
|
of meeting him had not been checked by any of those recollections that
|
||
|
might not unreasonably have alarmed her. She had dressed with more than
|
||
|
usual care, and prepared in the highest spirits for the conquest of all
|
||
|
that remained unsubdued of his heart, trusting that it was not more than
|
||
|
might be won in the course of the evening. But in an instant arose
|
||
|
the dreadful suspicion of his being purposely omitted for Mr. Darcy's
|
||
|
pleasure in the Bingleys' invitation to the officers; and though
|
||
|
this was not exactly the case, the absolute fact of his absence was
|
||
|
pronounced by his friend Denny, to whom Lydia eagerly applied, and who
|
||
|
told them that Wickham had been obliged to go to town on business the
|
||
|
day before, and was not yet returned; adding, with a significant smile,
|
||
|
"I do not imagine his business would have called him away just now, if
|
||
|
he had not wanted to avoid a certain gentleman here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This part of his intelligence, though unheard by Lydia, was caught by
|
||
|
Elizabeth, and, as it assured her that Darcy was not less answerable for
|
||
|
Wickham's absence than if her first surmise had been just, every
|
||
|
feeling of displeasure against the former was so sharpened by immediate
|
||
|
disappointment, that she could hardly reply with tolerable civility to
|
||
|
the polite inquiries which he directly afterwards approached to make.
|
||
|
Attendance, forbearance, patience with Darcy, was injury to Wickham. She
|
||
|
was resolved against any sort of conversation with him, and turned away
|
||
|
with a degree of ill-humour which she could not wholly surmount even in
|
||
|
speaking to Mr. Bingley, whose blind partiality provoked her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But Elizabeth was not formed for ill-humour; and though every prospect
|
||
|
of her own was destroyed for the evening, it could not dwell long on her
|
||
|
spirits; and having told all her griefs to Charlotte Lucas, whom she had
|
||
|
not seen for a week, she was soon able to make a voluntary transition
|
||
|
to the oddities of her cousin, and to point him out to her particular
|
||
|
notice. The first two dances, however, brought a return of distress;
|
||
|
they were dances of mortification. Mr. Collins, awkward and solemn,
|
||
|
apologising instead of attending, and often moving wrong without being
|
||
|
aware of it, gave her all the shame and misery which a disagreeable
|
||
|
partner for a couple of dances can give. The moment of her release from
|
||
|
him was ecstasy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She danced next with an officer, and had the refreshment of talking of
|
||
|
Wickham, and of hearing that he was universally liked. When those dances
|
||
|
were over, she returned to Charlotte Lucas, and was in conversation with
|
||
|
her, when she found herself suddenly addressed by Mr. Darcy who took
|
||
|
her so much by surprise in his application for her hand, that,
|
||
|
without knowing what she did, she accepted him. He walked away again
|
||
|
immediately, and she was left to fret over her own want of presence of
|
||
|
mind; Charlotte tried to console her:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I dare say you will find him very agreeable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Heaven forbid! _That_ would be the greatest misfortune of all! To find
|
||
|
a man agreeable whom one is determined to hate! Do not wish me such an
|
||
|
evil."
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the dancing recommenced, however, and Darcy approached to claim her
|
||
|
hand, Charlotte could not help cautioning her in a whisper, not to be a
|
||
|
simpleton, and allow her fancy for Wickham to make her appear unpleasant
|
||
|
in the eyes of a man ten times his consequence. Elizabeth made no
|
||
|
answer, and took her place in the set, amazed at the dignity to which
|
||
|
she was arrived in being allowed to stand opposite to Mr. Darcy, and
|
||
|
reading in her neighbours' looks, their equal amazement in beholding
|
||
|
it. They stood for some time without speaking a word; and she began to
|
||
|
imagine that their silence was to last through the two dances, and at
|
||
|
first was resolved not to break it; till suddenly fancying that it would
|
||
|
be the greater punishment to her partner to oblige him to talk, she made
|
||
|
some slight observation on the dance. He replied, and was again
|
||
|
silent. After a pause of some minutes, she addressed him a second time
|
||
|
with:--"It is _your_ turn to say something now, Mr. Darcy. I talked
|
||
|
about the dance, and _you_ ought to make some sort of remark on the size
|
||
|
of the room, or the number of couples."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He smiled, and assured her that whatever she wished him to say should be
|
||
|
said.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very well. That reply will do for the present. Perhaps by and by I may
|
||
|
observe that private balls are much pleasanter than public ones. But
|
||
|
_now_ we may be silent."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you talk by rule, then, while you are dancing?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sometimes. One must speak a little, you know. It would look odd to be
|
||
|
entirely silent for half an hour together; and yet for the advantage of
|
||
|
_some_, conversation ought to be so arranged, as that they may have the
|
||
|
trouble of saying as little as possible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you consulting your own feelings in the present case, or do you
|
||
|
imagine that you are gratifying mine?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Both," replied Elizabeth archly; "for I have always seen a great
|
||
|
similarity in the turn of our minds. We are each of an unsocial,
|
||
|
taciturn disposition, unwilling to speak, unless we expect to say
|
||
|
something that will amaze the whole room, and be handed down to
|
||
|
posterity with all the eclat of a proverb."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is no very striking resemblance of your own character, I am sure,"
|
||
|
said he. "How near it may be to _mine_, I cannot pretend to say. _You_
|
||
|
think it a faithful portrait undoubtedly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I must not decide on my own performance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He made no answer, and they were again silent till they had gone down
|
||
|
the dance, when he asked her if she and her sisters did not very often
|
||
|
walk to Meryton. She answered in the affirmative, and, unable to resist
|
||
|
the temptation, added, "When you met us there the other day, we had just
|
||
|
been forming a new acquaintance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The effect was immediate. A deeper shade of _hauteur_ overspread his
|
||
|
features, but he said not a word, and Elizabeth, though blaming herself
|
||
|
for her own weakness, could not go on. At length Darcy spoke, and in a
|
||
|
constrained manner said, "Mr. Wickham is blessed with such happy manners
|
||
|
as may ensure his _making_ friends--whether he may be equally capable of
|
||
|
_retaining_ them, is less certain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He has been so unlucky as to lose _your_ friendship," replied Elizabeth
|
||
|
with emphasis, "and in a manner which he is likely to suffer from all
|
||
|
his life."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy made no answer, and seemed desirous of changing the subject. At
|
||
|
that moment, Sir William Lucas appeared close to them, meaning to pass
|
||
|
through the set to the other side of the room; but on perceiving Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy, he stopped with a bow of superior courtesy to compliment him on
|
||
|
his dancing and his partner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been most highly gratified indeed, my dear sir. Such very
|
||
|
superior dancing is not often seen. It is evident that you belong to the
|
||
|
first circles. Allow me to say, however, that your fair partner does not
|
||
|
disgrace you, and that I must hope to have this pleasure often repeated,
|
||
|
especially when a certain desirable event, my dear Eliza (glancing at
|
||
|
her sister and Bingley) shall take place. What congratulations will then
|
||
|
flow in! I appeal to Mr. Darcy:--but let me not interrupt you, sir. You
|
||
|
will not thank me for detaining you from the bewitching converse of that
|
||
|
young lady, whose bright eyes are also upbraiding me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The latter part of this address was scarcely heard by Darcy; but Sir
|
||
|
William's allusion to his friend seemed to strike him forcibly, and his
|
||
|
eyes were directed with a very serious expression towards Bingley and
|
||
|
Jane, who were dancing together. Recovering himself, however, shortly,
|
||
|
he turned to his partner, and said, "Sir William's interruption has made
|
||
|
me forget what we were talking of."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not think we were speaking at all. Sir William could not have
|
||
|
interrupted two people in the room who had less to say for themselves.
|
||
|
We have tried two or three subjects already without success, and what we
|
||
|
are to talk of next I cannot imagine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What think you of books?" said he, smiling.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Books--oh! no. I am sure we never read the same, or not with the same
|
||
|
feelings."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sorry you think so; but if that be the case, there can at least be
|
||
|
no want of subject. We may compare our different opinions."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No--I cannot talk of books in a ball-room; my head is always full of
|
||
|
something else."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The _present_ always occupies you in such scenes--does it?" said he,
|
||
|
with a look of doubt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, always," she replied, without knowing what she said, for her
|
||
|
thoughts had wandered far from the subject, as soon afterwards appeared
|
||
|
by her suddenly exclaiming, "I remember hearing you once say, Mr. Darcy,
|
||
|
that you hardly ever forgave, that your resentment once created was
|
||
|
unappeasable. You are very cautious, I suppose, as to its _being
|
||
|
created_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am," said he, with a firm voice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And never allow yourself to be blinded by prejudice?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is particularly incumbent on those who never change their opinion,
|
||
|
to be secure of judging properly at first."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"May I ask to what these questions tend?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Merely to the illustration of _your_ character," said she, endeavouring
|
||
|
to shake off her gravity. "I am trying to make it out."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what is your success?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She shook her head. "I do not get on at all. I hear such different
|
||
|
accounts of you as puzzle me exceedingly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can readily believe," answered he gravely, "that reports may vary
|
||
|
greatly with respect to me; and I could wish, Miss Bennet, that you were
|
||
|
not to sketch my character at the present moment, as there is reason to
|
||
|
fear that the performance would reflect no credit on either."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But if I do not take your likeness now, I may never have another
|
||
|
opportunity."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would by no means suspend any pleasure of yours," he coldly replied.
|
||
|
She said no more, and they went down the other dance and parted in
|
||
|
silence; and on each side dissatisfied, though not to an equal degree,
|
||
|
for in Darcy's breast there was a tolerable powerful feeling towards
|
||
|
her, which soon procured her pardon, and directed all his anger against
|
||
|
another.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They had not long separated, when Miss Bingley came towards her, and
|
||
|
with an expression of civil disdain accosted her:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So, Miss Eliza, I hear you are quite delighted with George Wickham!
|
||
|
Your sister has been talking to me about him, and asking me a thousand
|
||
|
questions; and I find that the young man quite forgot to tell you, among
|
||
|
his other communication, that he was the son of old Wickham, the late
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy's steward. Let me recommend you, however, as a friend, not to
|
||
|
give implicit confidence to all his assertions; for as to Mr. Darcy's
|
||
|
using him ill, it is perfectly false; for, on the contrary, he has
|
||
|
always been remarkably kind to him, though George Wickham has treated
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy in a most infamous manner. I do not know the particulars, but
|
||
|
I know very well that Mr. Darcy is not in the least to blame, that he
|
||
|
cannot bear to hear George Wickham mentioned, and that though my brother
|
||
|
thought that he could not well avoid including him in his invitation to
|
||
|
the officers, he was excessively glad to find that he had taken himself
|
||
|
out of the way. His coming into the country at all is a most insolent
|
||
|
thing, indeed, and I wonder how he could presume to do it. I pity you,
|
||
|
Miss Eliza, for this discovery of your favourite's guilt; but really,
|
||
|
considering his descent, one could not expect much better."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"His guilt and his descent appear by your account to be the same," said
|
||
|
Elizabeth angrily; "for I have heard you accuse him of nothing worse
|
||
|
than of being the son of Mr. Darcy's steward, and of _that_, I can
|
||
|
assure you, he informed me himself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I beg your pardon," replied Miss Bingley, turning away with a sneer.
|
||
|
"Excuse my interference--it was kindly meant."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Insolent girl!" said Elizabeth to herself. "You are much mistaken
|
||
|
if you expect to influence me by such a paltry attack as this. I see
|
||
|
nothing in it but your own wilful ignorance and the malice of Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy." She then sought her eldest sister, who has undertaken to make
|
||
|
inquiries on the same subject of Bingley. Jane met her with a smile of
|
||
|
such sweet complacency, a glow of such happy expression, as sufficiently
|
||
|
marked how well she was satisfied with the occurrences of the evening.
|
||
|
Elizabeth instantly read her feelings, and at that moment solicitude for
|
||
|
Wickham, resentment against his enemies, and everything else, gave way
|
||
|
before the hope of Jane's being in the fairest way for happiness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I want to know," said she, with a countenance no less smiling than her
|
||
|
sister's, "what you have learnt about Mr. Wickham. But perhaps you have
|
||
|
been too pleasantly engaged to think of any third person; in which case
|
||
|
you may be sure of my pardon."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," replied Jane, "I have not forgotten him; but I have nothing
|
||
|
satisfactory to tell you. Mr. Bingley does not know the whole of
|
||
|
his history, and is quite ignorant of the circumstances which have
|
||
|
principally offended Mr. Darcy; but he will vouch for the good conduct,
|
||
|
the probity, and honour of his friend, and is perfectly convinced that
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham has deserved much less attention from Mr. Darcy than he has
|
||
|
received; and I am sorry to say by his account as well as his sister's,
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham is by no means a respectable young man. I am afraid he has
|
||
|
been very imprudent, and has deserved to lose Mr. Darcy's regard."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Bingley does not know Mr. Wickham himself?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No; he never saw him till the other morning at Meryton."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This account then is what he has received from Mr. Darcy. I am
|
||
|
satisfied. But what does he say of the living?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He does not exactly recollect the circumstances, though he has heard
|
||
|
them from Mr. Darcy more than once, but he believes that it was left to
|
||
|
him _conditionally_ only."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have not a doubt of Mr. Bingley's sincerity," said Elizabeth warmly;
|
||
|
"but you must excuse my not being convinced by assurances only. Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley's defense of his friend was a very able one, I dare say; but
|
||
|
since he is unacquainted with several parts of the story, and has learnt
|
||
|
the rest from that friend himself, I shall venture to still think of
|
||
|
both gentlemen as I did before."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She then changed the discourse to one more gratifying to each, and on
|
||
|
which there could be no difference of sentiment. Elizabeth listened with
|
||
|
delight to the happy, though modest hopes which Jane entertained of Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley's regard, and said all in her power to heighten her confidence
|
||
|
in it. On their being joined by Mr. Bingley himself, Elizabeth withdrew
|
||
|
to Miss Lucas; to whose inquiry after the pleasantness of her last
|
||
|
partner she had scarcely replied, before Mr. Collins came up to them,
|
||
|
and told her with great exultation that he had just been so fortunate as
|
||
|
to make a most important discovery.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have found out," said he, "by a singular accident, that there is now
|
||
|
in the room a near relation of my patroness. I happened to overhear the
|
||
|
gentleman himself mentioning to the young lady who does the honours of
|
||
|
the house the names of his cousin Miss de Bourgh, and of her mother Lady
|
||
|
Catherine. How wonderfully these sort of things occur! Who would have
|
||
|
thought of my meeting with, perhaps, a nephew of Lady Catherine de
|
||
|
Bourgh in this assembly! I am most thankful that the discovery is made
|
||
|
in time for me to pay my respects to him, which I am now going to
|
||
|
do, and trust he will excuse my not having done it before. My total
|
||
|
ignorance of the connection must plead my apology."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are not going to introduce yourself to Mr. Darcy!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed I am. I shall entreat his pardon for not having done it earlier.
|
||
|
I believe him to be Lady Catherine's _nephew_. It will be in my power to
|
||
|
assure him that her ladyship was quite well yesterday se'nnight."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth tried hard to dissuade him from such a scheme, assuring him
|
||
|
that Mr. Darcy would consider his addressing him without introduction
|
||
|
as an impertinent freedom, rather than a compliment to his aunt; that
|
||
|
it was not in the least necessary there should be any notice on either
|
||
|
side; and that if it were, it must belong to Mr. Darcy, the superior in
|
||
|
consequence, to begin the acquaintance. Mr. Collins listened to her
|
||
|
with the determined air of following his own inclination, and, when she
|
||
|
ceased speaking, replied thus:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Miss Elizabeth, I have the highest opinion in the world in
|
||
|
your excellent judgement in all matters within the scope of your
|
||
|
understanding; but permit me to say, that there must be a wide
|
||
|
difference between the established forms of ceremony amongst the laity,
|
||
|
and those which regulate the clergy; for, give me leave to observe that
|
||
|
I consider the clerical office as equal in point of dignity with
|
||
|
the highest rank in the kingdom--provided that a proper humility of
|
||
|
behaviour is at the same time maintained. You must therefore allow me to
|
||
|
follow the dictates of my conscience on this occasion, which leads me to
|
||
|
perform what I look on as a point of duty. Pardon me for neglecting to
|
||
|
profit by your advice, which on every other subject shall be my constant
|
||
|
guide, though in the case before us I consider myself more fitted by
|
||
|
education and habitual study to decide on what is right than a young
|
||
|
lady like yourself." And with a low bow he left her to attack Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy, whose reception of his advances she eagerly watched, and whose
|
||
|
astonishment at being so addressed was very evident. Her cousin prefaced
|
||
|
his speech with a solemn bow and though she could not hear a word of
|
||
|
it, she felt as if hearing it all, and saw in the motion of his lips the
|
||
|
words "apology," "Hunsford," and "Lady Catherine de Bourgh." It vexed
|
||
|
her to see him expose himself to such a man. Mr. Darcy was eyeing him
|
||
|
with unrestrained wonder, and when at last Mr. Collins allowed him time
|
||
|
to speak, replied with an air of distant civility. Mr. Collins, however,
|
||
|
was not discouraged from speaking again, and Mr. Darcy's contempt seemed
|
||
|
abundantly increasing with the length of his second speech, and at the
|
||
|
end of it he only made him a slight bow, and moved another way. Mr.
|
||
|
Collins then returned to Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have no reason, I assure you," said he, "to be dissatisfied with my
|
||
|
reception. Mr. Darcy seemed much pleased with the attention. He answered
|
||
|
me with the utmost civility, and even paid me the compliment of saying
|
||
|
that he was so well convinced of Lady Catherine's discernment as to be
|
||
|
certain she could never bestow a favour unworthily. It was really a very
|
||
|
handsome thought. Upon the whole, I am much pleased with him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As Elizabeth had no longer any interest of her own to pursue, she turned
|
||
|
her attention almost entirely on her sister and Mr. Bingley; and the
|
||
|
train of agreeable reflections which her observations gave birth to,
|
||
|
made her perhaps almost as happy as Jane. She saw her in idea settled in
|
||
|
that very house, in all the felicity which a marriage of true affection
|
||
|
could bestow; and she felt capable, under such circumstances, of
|
||
|
endeavouring even to like Bingley's two sisters. Her mother's thoughts
|
||
|
she plainly saw were bent the same way, and she determined not to
|
||
|
venture near her, lest she might hear too much. When they sat down to
|
||
|
supper, therefore, she considered it a most unlucky perverseness which
|
||
|
placed them within one of each other; and deeply was she vexed to find
|
||
|
that her mother was talking to that one person (Lady Lucas) freely,
|
||
|
openly, and of nothing else but her expectation that Jane would soon
|
||
|
be married to Mr. Bingley. It was an animating subject, and Mrs. Bennet
|
||
|
seemed incapable of fatigue while enumerating the advantages of the
|
||
|
match. His being such a charming young man, and so rich, and living but
|
||
|
three miles from them, were the first points of self-gratulation; and
|
||
|
then it was such a comfort to think how fond the two sisters were of
|
||
|
Jane, and to be certain that they must desire the connection as much as
|
||
|
she could do. It was, moreover, such a promising thing for her younger
|
||
|
daughters, as Jane's marrying so greatly must throw them in the way of
|
||
|
other rich men; and lastly, it was so pleasant at her time of life to be
|
||
|
able to consign her single daughters to the care of their sister, that
|
||
|
she might not be obliged to go into company more than she liked. It was
|
||
|
necessary to make this circumstance a matter of pleasure, because on
|
||
|
such occasions it is the etiquette; but no one was less likely than Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet to find comfort in staying home at any period of her life. She
|
||
|
concluded with many good wishes that Lady Lucas might soon be equally
|
||
|
fortunate, though evidently and triumphantly believing there was no
|
||
|
chance of it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In vain did Elizabeth endeavour to check the rapidity of her mother's
|
||
|
words, or persuade her to describe her felicity in a less audible
|
||
|
whisper; for, to her inexpressible vexation, she could perceive that the
|
||
|
chief of it was overheard by Mr. Darcy, who sat opposite to them. Her
|
||
|
mother only scolded her for being nonsensical.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is Mr. Darcy to me, pray, that I should be afraid of him? I am
|
||
|
sure we owe him no such particular civility as to be obliged to say
|
||
|
nothing _he_ may not like to hear."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For heaven's sake, madam, speak lower. What advantage can it be for you
|
||
|
to offend Mr. Darcy? You will never recommend yourself to his friend by
|
||
|
so doing!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nothing that she could say, however, had any influence. Her mother would
|
||
|
talk of her views in the same intelligible tone. Elizabeth blushed and
|
||
|
blushed again with shame and vexation. She could not help frequently
|
||
|
glancing her eye at Mr. Darcy, though every glance convinced her of what
|
||
|
she dreaded; for though he was not always looking at her mother, she was
|
||
|
convinced that his attention was invariably fixed by her. The expression
|
||
|
of his face changed gradually from indignant contempt to a composed and
|
||
|
steady gravity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length, however, Mrs. Bennet had no more to say; and Lady Lucas, who
|
||
|
had been long yawning at the repetition of delights which she saw no
|
||
|
likelihood of sharing, was left to the comforts of cold ham and
|
||
|
chicken. Elizabeth now began to revive. But not long was the interval of
|
||
|
tranquillity; for, when supper was over, singing was talked of, and
|
||
|
she had the mortification of seeing Mary, after very little entreaty,
|
||
|
preparing to oblige the company. By many significant looks and silent
|
||
|
entreaties, did she endeavour to prevent such a proof of complaisance,
|
||
|
but in vain; Mary would not understand them; such an opportunity of
|
||
|
exhibiting was delightful to her, and she began her song. Elizabeth's
|
||
|
eyes were fixed on her with most painful sensations, and she watched her
|
||
|
progress through the several stanzas with an impatience which was very
|
||
|
ill rewarded at their close; for Mary, on receiving, amongst the thanks
|
||
|
of the table, the hint of a hope that she might be prevailed on to
|
||
|
favour them again, after the pause of half a minute began another.
|
||
|
Mary's powers were by no means fitted for such a display; her voice was
|
||
|
weak, and her manner affected. Elizabeth was in agonies. She looked at
|
||
|
Jane, to see how she bore it; but Jane was very composedly talking to
|
||
|
Bingley. She looked at his two sisters, and saw them making signs
|
||
|
of derision at each other, and at Darcy, who continued, however,
|
||
|
imperturbably grave. She looked at her father to entreat his
|
||
|
interference, lest Mary should be singing all night. He took the hint,
|
||
|
and when Mary had finished her second song, said aloud, "That will do
|
||
|
extremely well, child. You have delighted us long enough. Let the other
|
||
|
young ladies have time to exhibit."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mary, though pretending not to hear, was somewhat disconcerted; and
|
||
|
Elizabeth, sorry for her, and sorry for her father's speech, was afraid
|
||
|
her anxiety had done no good. Others of the party were now applied to.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I," said Mr. Collins, "were so fortunate as to be able to sing, I
|
||
|
should have great pleasure, I am sure, in obliging the company with an
|
||
|
air; for I consider music as a very innocent diversion, and perfectly
|
||
|
compatible with the profession of a clergyman. I do not mean, however,
|
||
|
to assert that we can be justified in devoting too much of our time
|
||
|
to music, for there are certainly other things to be attended to. The
|
||
|
rector of a parish has much to do. In the first place, he must make
|
||
|
such an agreement for tithes as may be beneficial to himself and not
|
||
|
offensive to his patron. He must write his own sermons; and the time
|
||
|
that remains will not be too much for his parish duties, and the care
|
||
|
and improvement of his dwelling, which he cannot be excused from making
|
||
|
as comfortable as possible. And I do not think it of light importance
|
||
|
that he should have attentive and conciliatory manners towards everybody,
|
||
|
especially towards those to whom he owes his preferment. I cannot acquit
|
||
|
him of that duty; nor could I think well of the man who should omit an
|
||
|
occasion of testifying his respect towards anybody connected with the
|
||
|
family." And with a bow to Mr. Darcy, he concluded his speech, which had
|
||
|
been spoken so loud as to be heard by half the room. Many stared--many
|
||
|
smiled; but no one looked more amused than Mr. Bennet himself, while his
|
||
|
wife seriously commended Mr. Collins for having spoken so sensibly,
|
||
|
and observed in a half-whisper to Lady Lucas, that he was a remarkably
|
||
|
clever, good kind of young man.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To Elizabeth it appeared that, had her family made an agreement to
|
||
|
expose themselves as much as they could during the evening, it would
|
||
|
have been impossible for them to play their parts with more spirit or
|
||
|
finer success; and happy did she think it for Bingley and her sister
|
||
|
that some of the exhibition had escaped his notice, and that his
|
||
|
feelings were not of a sort to be much distressed by the folly which he
|
||
|
must have witnessed. That his two sisters and Mr. Darcy, however, should
|
||
|
have such an opportunity of ridiculing her relations, was bad enough,
|
||
|
and she could not determine whether the silent contempt of the
|
||
|
gentleman, or the insolent smiles of the ladies, were more intolerable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The rest of the evening brought her little amusement. She was teased by
|
||
|
Mr. Collins, who continued most perseveringly by her side, and though
|
||
|
he could not prevail on her to dance with him again, put it out of her
|
||
|
power to dance with others. In vain did she entreat him to stand up with
|
||
|
somebody else, and offer to introduce him to any young lady in the room.
|
||
|
He assured her, that as to dancing, he was perfectly indifferent to it;
|
||
|
that his chief object was by delicate attentions to recommend himself to
|
||
|
her and that he should therefore make a point of remaining close to her
|
||
|
the whole evening. There was no arguing upon such a project. She owed
|
||
|
her greatest relief to her friend Miss Lucas, who often joined them, and
|
||
|
good-naturedly engaged Mr. Collins's conversation to herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was at least free from the offense of Mr. Darcy's further notice;
|
||
|
though often standing within a very short distance of her, quite
|
||
|
disengaged, he never came near enough to speak. She felt it to be the
|
||
|
probable consequence of her allusions to Mr. Wickham, and rejoiced in
|
||
|
it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Longbourn party were the last of all the company to depart, and, by
|
||
|
a manoeuvre of Mrs. Bennet, had to wait for their carriage a quarter of
|
||
|
an hour after everybody else was gone, which gave them time to see how
|
||
|
heartily they were wished away by some of the family. Mrs. Hurst and her
|
||
|
sister scarcely opened their mouths, except to complain of fatigue, and
|
||
|
were evidently impatient to have the house to themselves. They repulsed
|
||
|
every attempt of Mrs. Bennet at conversation, and by so doing threw a
|
||
|
languor over the whole party, which was very little relieved by the
|
||
|
long speeches of Mr. Collins, who was complimenting Mr. Bingley and his
|
||
|
sisters on the elegance of their entertainment, and the hospitality and
|
||
|
politeness which had marked their behaviour to their guests. Darcy said
|
||
|
nothing at all. Mr. Bennet, in equal silence, was enjoying the scene.
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley and Jane were standing together, a little detached from the
|
||
|
rest, and talked only to each other. Elizabeth preserved as steady a
|
||
|
silence as either Mrs. Hurst or Miss Bingley; and even Lydia was too
|
||
|
much fatigued to utter more than the occasional exclamation of "Lord,
|
||
|
how tired I am!" accompanied by a violent yawn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When at length they arose to take leave, Mrs. Bennet was most pressingly
|
||
|
civil in her hope of seeing the whole family soon at Longbourn, and
|
||
|
addressed herself especially to Mr. Bingley, to assure him how happy he
|
||
|
would make them by eating a family dinner with them at any time, without
|
||
|
the ceremony of a formal invitation. Bingley was all grateful pleasure,
|
||
|
and he readily engaged for taking the earliest opportunity of waiting on
|
||
|
her, after his return from London, whither he was obliged to go the next
|
||
|
day for a short time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet was perfectly satisfied, and quitted the house under the
|
||
|
delightful persuasion that, allowing for the necessary preparations of
|
||
|
settlements, new carriages, and wedding clothes, she should undoubtedly
|
||
|
see her daughter settled at Netherfield in the course of three or four
|
||
|
months. Of having another daughter married to Mr. Collins, she thought
|
||
|
with equal certainty, and with considerable, though not equal, pleasure.
|
||
|
Elizabeth was the least dear to her of all her children; and though the
|
||
|
man and the match were quite good enough for _her_, the worth of each
|
||
|
was eclipsed by Mr. Bingley and Netherfield.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 19
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next day opened a new scene at Longbourn. Mr. Collins made his
|
||
|
declaration in form. Having resolved to do it without loss of time, as
|
||
|
his leave of absence extended only to the following Saturday, and having
|
||
|
no feelings of diffidence to make it distressing to himself even at
|
||
|
the moment, he set about it in a very orderly manner, with all the
|
||
|
observances, which he supposed a regular part of the business. On
|
||
|
finding Mrs. Bennet, Elizabeth, and one of the younger girls together,
|
||
|
soon after breakfast, he addressed the mother in these words:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"May I hope, madam, for your interest with your fair daughter Elizabeth,
|
||
|
when I solicit for the honour of a private audience with her in the
|
||
|
course of this morning?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Before Elizabeth had time for anything but a blush of surprise, Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet answered instantly, "Oh dear!--yes--certainly. I am sure Lizzy
|
||
|
will be very happy--I am sure she can have no objection. Come, Kitty, I
|
||
|
want you up stairs." And, gathering her work together, she was hastening
|
||
|
away, when Elizabeth called out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dear madam, do not go. I beg you will not go. Mr. Collins must excuse
|
||
|
me. He can have nothing to say to me that anybody need not hear. I am
|
||
|
going away myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, no, nonsense, Lizzy. I desire you to stay where you are." And upon
|
||
|
Elizabeth's seeming really, with vexed and embarrassed looks, about to
|
||
|
escape, she added: "Lizzy, I _insist_ upon your staying and hearing Mr.
|
||
|
Collins."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth would not oppose such an injunction--and a moment's
|
||
|
consideration making her also sensible that it would be wisest to get it
|
||
|
over as soon and as quietly as possible, she sat down again and tried to
|
||
|
conceal, by incessant employment the feelings which were divided between
|
||
|
distress and diversion. Mrs. Bennet and Kitty walked off, and as soon as
|
||
|
they were gone, Mr. Collins began.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Believe me, my dear Miss Elizabeth, that your modesty, so far from
|
||
|
doing you any disservice, rather adds to your other perfections. You
|
||
|
would have been less amiable in my eyes had there _not_ been this little
|
||
|
unwillingness; but allow me to assure you, that I have your respected
|
||
|
mother's permission for this address. You can hardly doubt the
|
||
|
purport of my discourse, however your natural delicacy may lead you to
|
||
|
dissemble; my attentions have been too marked to be mistaken. Almost as
|
||
|
soon as I entered the house, I singled you out as the companion of
|
||
|
my future life. But before I am run away with by my feelings on this
|
||
|
subject, perhaps it would be advisable for me to state my reasons for
|
||
|
marrying--and, moreover, for coming into Hertfordshire with the design
|
||
|
of selecting a wife, as I certainly did."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The idea of Mr. Collins, with all his solemn composure, being run away
|
||
|
with by his feelings, made Elizabeth so near laughing, that she could
|
||
|
not use the short pause he allowed in any attempt to stop him further,
|
||
|
and he continued:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My reasons for marrying are, first, that I think it a right thing for
|
||
|
every clergyman in easy circumstances (like myself) to set the example
|
||
|
of matrimony in his parish; secondly, that I am convinced that it will
|
||
|
add very greatly to my happiness; and thirdly--which perhaps I ought
|
||
|
to have mentioned earlier, that it is the particular advice and
|
||
|
recommendation of the very noble lady whom I have the honour of calling
|
||
|
patroness. Twice has she condescended to give me her opinion (unasked
|
||
|
too!) on this subject; and it was but the very Saturday night before I
|
||
|
left Hunsford--between our pools at quadrille, while Mrs. Jenkinson was
|
||
|
arranging Miss de Bourgh's footstool, that she said, 'Mr. Collins, you
|
||
|
must marry. A clergyman like you must marry. Choose properly, choose
|
||
|
a gentlewoman for _my_ sake; and for your _own_, let her be an active,
|
||
|
useful sort of person, not brought up high, but able to make a small
|
||
|
income go a good way. This is my advice. Find such a woman as soon as
|
||
|
you can, bring her to Hunsford, and I will visit her.' Allow me, by the
|
||
|
way, to observe, my fair cousin, that I do not reckon the notice
|
||
|
and kindness of Lady Catherine de Bourgh as among the least of the
|
||
|
advantages in my power to offer. You will find her manners beyond
|
||
|
anything I can describe; and your wit and vivacity, I think, must be
|
||
|
acceptable to her, especially when tempered with the silence and
|
||
|
respect which her rank will inevitably excite. Thus much for my general
|
||
|
intention in favour of matrimony; it remains to be told why my views
|
||
|
were directed towards Longbourn instead of my own neighbourhood, where I
|
||
|
can assure you there are many amiable young women. But the fact is, that
|
||
|
being, as I am, to inherit this estate after the death of your honoured
|
||
|
father (who, however, may live many years longer), I could not satisfy
|
||
|
myself without resolving to choose a wife from among his daughters, that
|
||
|
the loss to them might be as little as possible, when the melancholy
|
||
|
event takes place--which, however, as I have already said, may not
|
||
|
be for several years. This has been my motive, my fair cousin, and
|
||
|
I flatter myself it will not sink me in your esteem. And now nothing
|
||
|
remains for me but to assure you in the most animated language of the
|
||
|
violence of my affection. To fortune I am perfectly indifferent, and
|
||
|
shall make no demand of that nature on your father, since I am well
|
||
|
aware that it could not be complied with; and that one thousand pounds
|
||
|
in the four per cents, which will not be yours till after your mother's
|
||
|
decease, is all that you may ever be entitled to. On that head,
|
||
|
therefore, I shall be uniformly silent; and you may assure yourself that
|
||
|
no ungenerous reproach shall ever pass my lips when we are married."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was absolutely necessary to interrupt him now.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are too hasty, sir," she cried. "You forget that I have made no
|
||
|
answer. Let me do it without further loss of time. Accept my thanks for
|
||
|
the compliment you are paying me. I am very sensible of the honour of
|
||
|
your proposals, but it is impossible for me to do otherwise than to
|
||
|
decline them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am not now to learn," replied Mr. Collins, with a formal wave of the
|
||
|
hand, "that it is usual with young ladies to reject the addresses of the
|
||
|
man whom they secretly mean to accept, when he first applies for their
|
||
|
favour; and that sometimes the refusal is repeated a second, or even a
|
||
|
third time. I am therefore by no means discouraged by what you have just
|
||
|
said, and shall hope to lead you to the altar ere long."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Upon my word, sir," cried Elizabeth, "your hope is a rather
|
||
|
extraordinary one after my declaration. I do assure you that I am not
|
||
|
one of those young ladies (if such young ladies there are) who are so
|
||
|
daring as to risk their happiness on the chance of being asked a second
|
||
|
time. I am perfectly serious in my refusal. You could not make _me_
|
||
|
happy, and I am convinced that I am the last woman in the world who
|
||
|
could make you so. Nay, were your friend Lady Catherine to know me, I
|
||
|
am persuaded she would find me in every respect ill qualified for the
|
||
|
situation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Were it certain that Lady Catherine would think so," said Mr. Collins
|
||
|
very gravely--"but I cannot imagine that her ladyship would at all
|
||
|
disapprove of you. And you may be certain when I have the honour of
|
||
|
seeing her again, I shall speak in the very highest terms of your
|
||
|
modesty, economy, and other amiable qualification."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, Mr. Collins, all praise of me will be unnecessary. You
|
||
|
must give me leave to judge for myself, and pay me the compliment
|
||
|
of believing what I say. I wish you very happy and very rich, and by
|
||
|
refusing your hand, do all in my power to prevent your being otherwise.
|
||
|
In making me the offer, you must have satisfied the delicacy of your
|
||
|
feelings with regard to my family, and may take possession of Longbourn
|
||
|
estate whenever it falls, without any self-reproach. This matter may
|
||
|
be considered, therefore, as finally settled." And rising as she
|
||
|
thus spoke, she would have quitted the room, had Mr. Collins not thus
|
||
|
addressed her:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When I do myself the honour of speaking to you next on the subject, I
|
||
|
shall hope to receive a more favourable answer than you have now given
|
||
|
me; though I am far from accusing you of cruelty at present, because I
|
||
|
know it to be the established custom of your sex to reject a man on
|
||
|
the first application, and perhaps you have even now said as much to
|
||
|
encourage my suit as would be consistent with the true delicacy of the
|
||
|
female character."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Really, Mr. Collins," cried Elizabeth with some warmth, "you puzzle me
|
||
|
exceedingly. If what I have hitherto said can appear to you in the form
|
||
|
of encouragement, I know not how to express my refusal in such a way as
|
||
|
to convince you of its being one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You must give me leave to flatter myself, my dear cousin, that your
|
||
|
refusal of my addresses is merely words of course. My reasons for
|
||
|
believing it are briefly these: It does not appear to me that my hand is
|
||
|
unworthy your acceptance, or that the establishment I can offer would
|
||
|
be any other than highly desirable. My situation in life, my connections
|
||
|
with the family of de Bourgh, and my relationship to your own, are
|
||
|
circumstances highly in my favour; and you should take it into further
|
||
|
consideration, that in spite of your manifold attractions, it is by no
|
||
|
means certain that another offer of marriage may ever be made you. Your
|
||
|
portion is unhappily so small that it will in all likelihood undo
|
||
|
the effects of your loveliness and amiable qualifications. As I must
|
||
|
therefore conclude that you are not serious in your rejection of me,
|
||
|
I shall choose to attribute it to your wish of increasing my love by
|
||
|
suspense, according to the usual practice of elegant females."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do assure you, sir, that I have no pretensions whatever to that kind
|
||
|
of elegance which consists in tormenting a respectable man. I would
|
||
|
rather be paid the compliment of being believed sincere. I thank you
|
||
|
again and again for the honour you have done me in your proposals, but
|
||
|
to accept them is absolutely impossible. My feelings in every respect
|
||
|
forbid it. Can I speak plainer? Do not consider me now as an elegant
|
||
|
female, intending to plague you, but as a rational creature, speaking
|
||
|
the truth from her heart."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are uniformly charming!" cried he, with an air of awkward
|
||
|
gallantry; "and I am persuaded that when sanctioned by the express
|
||
|
authority of both your excellent parents, my proposals will not fail of
|
||
|
being acceptable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
To such perseverance in wilful self-deception Elizabeth would make
|
||
|
no reply, and immediately and in silence withdrew; determined, if
|
||
|
he persisted in considering her repeated refusals as flattering
|
||
|
encouragement, to apply to her father, whose negative might be uttered
|
||
|
in such a manner as to be decisive, and whose behaviour at least could
|
||
|
not be mistaken for the affectation and coquetry of an elegant female.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 20
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins was not left long to the silent contemplation of his
|
||
|
successful love; for Mrs. Bennet, having dawdled about in the vestibule
|
||
|
to watch for the end of the conference, no sooner saw Elizabeth open
|
||
|
the door and with quick step pass her towards the staircase, than she
|
||
|
entered the breakfast-room, and congratulated both him and herself in
|
||
|
warm terms on the happy prospect or their nearer connection. Mr. Collins
|
||
|
received and returned these felicitations with equal pleasure, and then
|
||
|
proceeded to relate the particulars of their interview, with the result
|
||
|
of which he trusted he had every reason to be satisfied, since the
|
||
|
refusal which his cousin had steadfastly given him would naturally flow
|
||
|
from her bashful modesty and the genuine delicacy of her character.
|
||
|
|
||
|
This information, however, startled Mrs. Bennet; she would have been
|
||
|
glad to be equally satisfied that her daughter had meant to encourage
|
||
|
him by protesting against his proposals, but she dared not believe it,
|
||
|
and could not help saying so.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But, depend upon it, Mr. Collins," she added, "that Lizzy shall be
|
||
|
brought to reason. I will speak to her about it directly. She is a very
|
||
|
headstrong, foolish girl, and does not know her own interest but I will
|
||
|
_make_ her know it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pardon me for interrupting you, madam," cried Mr. Collins; "but if
|
||
|
she is really headstrong and foolish, I know not whether she would
|
||
|
altogether be a very desirable wife to a man in my situation, who
|
||
|
naturally looks for happiness in the marriage state. If therefore she
|
||
|
actually persists in rejecting my suit, perhaps it were better not
|
||
|
to force her into accepting me, because if liable to such defects of
|
||
|
temper, she could not contribute much to my felicity."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Sir, you quite misunderstand me," said Mrs. Bennet, alarmed. "Lizzy is
|
||
|
only headstrong in such matters as these. In everything else she is as
|
||
|
good-natured a girl as ever lived. I will go directly to Mr. Bennet, and
|
||
|
we shall very soon settle it with her, I am sure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She would not give him time to reply, but hurrying instantly to her
|
||
|
husband, called out as she entered the library, "Oh! Mr. Bennet, you
|
||
|
are wanted immediately; we are all in an uproar. You must come and make
|
||
|
Lizzy marry Mr. Collins, for she vows she will not have him, and if you
|
||
|
do not make haste he will change his mind and not have _her_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet raised his eyes from his book as she entered, and fixed them
|
||
|
on her face with a calm unconcern which was not in the least altered by
|
||
|
her communication.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have not the pleasure of understanding you," said he, when she had
|
||
|
finished her speech. "Of what are you talking?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of Mr. Collins and Lizzy. Lizzy declares she will not have Mr. Collins,
|
||
|
and Mr. Collins begins to say that he will not have Lizzy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what am I to do on the occasion? It seems an hopeless business."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Speak to Lizzy about it yourself. Tell her that you insist upon her
|
||
|
marrying him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let her be called down. She shall hear my opinion."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet rang the bell, and Miss Elizabeth was summoned to the
|
||
|
library.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come here, child," cried her father as she appeared. "I have sent for
|
||
|
you on an affair of importance. I understand that Mr. Collins has made
|
||
|
you an offer of marriage. Is it true?" Elizabeth replied that it was.
|
||
|
"Very well--and this offer of marriage you have refused?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have, sir."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very well. We now come to the point. Your mother insists upon your
|
||
|
accepting it. Is it not so, Mrs. Bennet?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, or I will never see her again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An unhappy alternative is before you, Elizabeth. From this day you must
|
||
|
be a stranger to one of your parents. Your mother will never see you
|
||
|
again if you do _not_ marry Mr. Collins, and I will never see you again
|
||
|
if you _do_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could not but smile at such a conclusion of such a beginning,
|
||
|
but Mrs. Bennet, who had persuaded herself that her husband regarded the
|
||
|
affair as she wished, was excessively disappointed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean, Mr. Bennet, in talking this way? You promised me to
|
||
|
_insist_ upon her marrying him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear," replied her husband, "I have two small favours to request.
|
||
|
First, that you will allow me the free use of my understanding on the
|
||
|
present occasion; and secondly, of my room. I shall be glad to have the
|
||
|
library to myself as soon as may be."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Not yet, however, in spite of her disappointment in her husband, did
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet give up the point. She talked to Elizabeth again and again;
|
||
|
coaxed and threatened her by turns. She endeavoured to secure Jane
|
||
|
in her interest; but Jane, with all possible mildness, declined
|
||
|
interfering; and Elizabeth, sometimes with real earnestness, and
|
||
|
sometimes with playful gaiety, replied to her attacks. Though her manner
|
||
|
varied, however, her determination never did.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins, meanwhile, was meditating in solitude on what had passed.
|
||
|
He thought too well of himself to comprehend on what motives his cousin
|
||
|
could refuse him; and though his pride was hurt, he suffered in no other
|
||
|
way. His regard for her was quite imaginary; and the possibility of her
|
||
|
deserving her mother's reproach prevented his feeling any regret.
|
||
|
|
||
|
While the family were in this confusion, Charlotte Lucas came to spend
|
||
|
the day with them. She was met in the vestibule by Lydia, who, flying to
|
||
|
her, cried in a half whisper, "I am glad you are come, for there is such
|
||
|
fun here! What do you think has happened this morning? Mr. Collins has
|
||
|
made an offer to Lizzy, and she will not have him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Charlotte hardly had time to answer, before they were joined by Kitty,
|
||
|
who came to tell the same news; and no sooner had they entered the
|
||
|
breakfast-room, where Mrs. Bennet was alone, than she likewise began on
|
||
|
the subject, calling on Miss Lucas for her compassion, and entreating
|
||
|
her to persuade her friend Lizzy to comply with the wishes of all her
|
||
|
family. "Pray do, my dear Miss Lucas," she added in a melancholy tone,
|
||
|
"for nobody is on my side, nobody takes part with me. I am cruelly used,
|
||
|
nobody feels for my poor nerves."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Charlotte's reply was spared by the entrance of Jane and Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Aye, there she comes," continued Mrs. Bennet, "looking as unconcerned
|
||
|
as may be, and caring no more for us than if we were at York, provided
|
||
|
she can have her own way. But I tell you, Miss Lizzy--if you take it
|
||
|
into your head to go on refusing every offer of marriage in this way,
|
||
|
you will never get a husband at all--and I am sure I do not know who is
|
||
|
to maintain you when your father is dead. I shall not be able to keep
|
||
|
you--and so I warn you. I have done with you from this very day. I told
|
||
|
you in the library, you know, that I should never speak to you again,
|
||
|
and you will find me as good as my word. I have no pleasure in talking
|
||
|
to undutiful children. Not that I have much pleasure, indeed, in talking
|
||
|
to anybody. People who suffer as I do from nervous complaints can have
|
||
|
no great inclination for talking. Nobody can tell what I suffer! But it
|
||
|
is always so. Those who do not complain are never pitied."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her daughters listened in silence to this effusion, sensible that
|
||
|
any attempt to reason with her or soothe her would only increase the
|
||
|
irritation. She talked on, therefore, without interruption from any of
|
||
|
them, till they were joined by Mr. Collins, who entered the room with
|
||
|
an air more stately than usual, and on perceiving whom, she said to
|
||
|
the girls, "Now, I do insist upon it, that you, all of you, hold
|
||
|
your tongues, and let me and Mr. Collins have a little conversation
|
||
|
together."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth passed quietly out of the room, Jane and Kitty followed, but
|
||
|
Lydia stood her ground, determined to hear all she could; and Charlotte,
|
||
|
detained first by the civility of Mr. Collins, whose inquiries after
|
||
|
herself and all her family were very minute, and then by a little
|
||
|
curiosity, satisfied herself with walking to the window and pretending
|
||
|
not to hear. In a doleful voice Mrs. Bennet began the projected
|
||
|
conversation: "Oh! Mr. Collins!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear madam," replied he, "let us be for ever silent on this point.
|
||
|
Far be it from me," he presently continued, in a voice that marked his
|
||
|
displeasure, "to resent the behaviour of your daughter. Resignation
|
||
|
to inevitable evils is the duty of us all; the peculiar duty of a
|
||
|
young man who has been so fortunate as I have been in early preferment;
|
||
|
and I trust I am resigned. Perhaps not the less so from feeling a doubt
|
||
|
of my positive happiness had my fair cousin honoured me with her hand;
|
||
|
for I have often observed that resignation is never so perfect as
|
||
|
when the blessing denied begins to lose somewhat of its value in our
|
||
|
estimation. You will not, I hope, consider me as showing any disrespect
|
||
|
to your family, my dear madam, by thus withdrawing my pretensions to
|
||
|
your daughter's favour, without having paid yourself and Mr. Bennet the
|
||
|
compliment of requesting you to interpose your authority in my
|
||
|
behalf. My conduct may, I fear, be objectionable in having accepted my
|
||
|
dismission from your daughter's lips instead of your own. But we are all
|
||
|
liable to error. I have certainly meant well through the whole affair.
|
||
|
My object has been to secure an amiable companion for myself, with due
|
||
|
consideration for the advantage of all your family, and if my _manner_
|
||
|
has been at all reprehensible, I here beg leave to apologise."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 21
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The discussion of Mr. Collins's offer was now nearly at an end, and
|
||
|
Elizabeth had only to suffer from the uncomfortable feelings necessarily
|
||
|
attending it, and occasionally from some peevish allusions of her
|
||
|
mother. As for the gentleman himself, _his_ feelings were chiefly
|
||
|
expressed, not by embarrassment or dejection, or by trying to avoid her,
|
||
|
but by stiffness of manner and resentful silence. He scarcely ever spoke
|
||
|
to her, and the assiduous attentions which he had been so sensible of
|
||
|
himself were transferred for the rest of the day to Miss Lucas, whose
|
||
|
civility in listening to him was a seasonable relief to them all, and
|
||
|
especially to her friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The morrow produced no abatement of Mrs. Bennet's ill-humour or ill
|
||
|
health. Mr. Collins was also in the same state of angry pride. Elizabeth
|
||
|
had hoped that his resentment might shorten his visit, but his plan did
|
||
|
not appear in the least affected by it. He was always to have gone on
|
||
|
Saturday, and to Saturday he meant to stay.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After breakfast, the girls walked to Meryton to inquire if Mr. Wickham
|
||
|
were returned, and to lament over his absence from the Netherfield ball.
|
||
|
He joined them on their entering the town, and attended them to their
|
||
|
aunt's where his regret and vexation, and the concern of everybody, was
|
||
|
well talked over. To Elizabeth, however, he voluntarily acknowledged
|
||
|
that the necessity of his absence _had_ been self-imposed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I found," said he, "as the time drew near that I had better not meet
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy; that to be in the same room, the same party with him for so
|
||
|
many hours together, might be more than I could bear, and that scenes
|
||
|
might arise unpleasant to more than myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She highly approved his forbearance, and they had leisure for a full
|
||
|
discussion of it, and for all the commendation which they civilly
|
||
|
bestowed on each other, as Wickham and another officer walked back with
|
||
|
them to Longbourn, and during the walk he particularly attended to
|
||
|
her. His accompanying them was a double advantage; she felt all the
|
||
|
compliment it offered to herself, and it was most acceptable as an
|
||
|
occasion of introducing him to her father and mother.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Soon after their return, a letter was delivered to Miss Bennet; it came
|
||
|
from Netherfield. The envelope contained a sheet of elegant, little,
|
||
|
hot-pressed paper, well covered with a lady's fair, flowing hand; and
|
||
|
Elizabeth saw her sister's countenance change as she read it, and saw
|
||
|
her dwelling intently on some particular passages. Jane recollected
|
||
|
herself soon, and putting the letter away, tried to join with her usual
|
||
|
cheerfulness in the general conversation; but Elizabeth felt an anxiety
|
||
|
on the subject which drew off her attention even from Wickham; and no
|
||
|
sooner had he and his companion taken leave, than a glance from Jane
|
||
|
invited her to follow her up stairs. When they had gained their own room,
|
||
|
Jane, taking out the letter, said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is from Caroline Bingley; what it contains has surprised me a good
|
||
|
deal. The whole party have left Netherfield by this time, and are on
|
||
|
their way to town--and without any intention of coming back again. You
|
||
|
shall hear what she says."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She then read the first sentence aloud, which comprised the information
|
||
|
of their having just resolved to follow their brother to town directly,
|
||
|
and of their meaning to dine in Grosvenor Street, where Mr. Hurst had a
|
||
|
house. The next was in these words: "I do not pretend to regret anything
|
||
|
I shall leave in Hertfordshire, except your society, my dearest friend;
|
||
|
but we will hope, at some future period, to enjoy many returns of that
|
||
|
delightful intercourse we have known, and in the meanwhile may
|
||
|
lessen the pain of separation by a very frequent and most unreserved
|
||
|
correspondence. I depend on you for that." To these highflown
|
||
|
expressions Elizabeth listened with all the insensibility of distrust;
|
||
|
and though the suddenness of their removal surprised her, she saw
|
||
|
nothing in it really to lament; it was not to be supposed that their
|
||
|
absence from Netherfield would prevent Mr. Bingley's being there; and as
|
||
|
to the loss of their society, she was persuaded that Jane must cease to
|
||
|
regard it, in the enjoyment of his.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is unlucky," said she, after a short pause, "that you should not be
|
||
|
able to see your friends before they leave the country. But may we not
|
||
|
hope that the period of future happiness to which Miss Bingley looks
|
||
|
forward may arrive earlier than she is aware, and that the delightful
|
||
|
intercourse you have known as friends will be renewed with yet greater
|
||
|
satisfaction as sisters? Mr. Bingley will not be detained in London by
|
||
|
them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Caroline decidedly says that none of the party will return into
|
||
|
Hertfordshire this winter. I will read it to you:"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When my brother left us yesterday, he imagined that the business which
|
||
|
took him to London might be concluded in three or four days; but as we
|
||
|
are certain it cannot be so, and at the same time convinced that when
|
||
|
Charles gets to town he will be in no hurry to leave it again, we have
|
||
|
determined on following him thither, that he may not be obliged to spend
|
||
|
his vacant hours in a comfortless hotel. Many of my acquaintances are
|
||
|
already there for the winter; I wish that I could hear that you, my
|
||
|
dearest friend, had any intention of making one of the crowd--but of
|
||
|
that I despair. I sincerely hope your Christmas in Hertfordshire may
|
||
|
abound in the gaieties which that season generally brings, and that your
|
||
|
beaux will be so numerous as to prevent your feeling the loss of the
|
||
|
three of whom we shall deprive you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is evident by this," added Jane, "that he comes back no more this
|
||
|
winter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is only evident that Miss Bingley does not mean that he _should_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why will you think so? It must be his own doing. He is his own
|
||
|
master. But you do not know _all_. I _will_ read you the passage which
|
||
|
particularly hurts me. I will have no reserves from _you_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Darcy is impatient to see his sister; and, to confess the truth,
|
||
|
_we_ are scarcely less eager to meet her again. I really do not think
|
||
|
Georgiana Darcy has her equal for beauty, elegance, and accomplishments;
|
||
|
and the affection she inspires in Louisa and myself is heightened into
|
||
|
something still more interesting, from the hope we dare entertain of
|
||
|
her being hereafter our sister. I do not know whether I ever before
|
||
|
mentioned to you my feelings on this subject; but I will not leave the
|
||
|
country without confiding them, and I trust you will not esteem them
|
||
|
unreasonable. My brother admires her greatly already; he will have
|
||
|
frequent opportunity now of seeing her on the most intimate footing;
|
||
|
her relations all wish the connection as much as his own; and a sister's
|
||
|
partiality is not misleading me, I think, when I call Charles most
|
||
|
capable of engaging any woman's heart. With all these circumstances to
|
||
|
favour an attachment, and nothing to prevent it, am I wrong, my dearest
|
||
|
Jane, in indulging the hope of an event which will secure the happiness
|
||
|
of so many?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you think of _this_ sentence, my dear Lizzy?" said Jane as she
|
||
|
finished it. "Is it not clear enough? Does it not expressly declare that
|
||
|
Caroline neither expects nor wishes me to be her sister; that she is
|
||
|
perfectly convinced of her brother's indifference; and that if she
|
||
|
suspects the nature of my feelings for him, she means (most kindly!) to
|
||
|
put me on my guard? Can there be any other opinion on the subject?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, there can; for mine is totally different. Will you hear it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Most willingly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You shall have it in a few words. Miss Bingley sees that her brother is
|
||
|
in love with you, and wants him to marry Miss Darcy. She follows him
|
||
|
to town in hope of keeping him there, and tries to persuade you that he
|
||
|
does not care about you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane shook her head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, Jane, you ought to believe me. No one who has ever seen you
|
||
|
together can doubt his affection. Miss Bingley, I am sure, cannot. She
|
||
|
is not such a simpleton. Could she have seen half as much love in Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy for herself, she would have ordered her wedding clothes. But the
|
||
|
case is this: We are not rich enough or grand enough for them; and she
|
||
|
is the more anxious to get Miss Darcy for her brother, from the notion
|
||
|
that when there has been _one_ intermarriage, she may have less trouble
|
||
|
in achieving a second; in which there is certainly some ingenuity, and
|
||
|
I dare say it would succeed, if Miss de Bourgh were out of the way. But,
|
||
|
my dearest Jane, you cannot seriously imagine that because Miss Bingley
|
||
|
tells you her brother greatly admires Miss Darcy, he is in the smallest
|
||
|
degree less sensible of _your_ merit than when he took leave of you on
|
||
|
Tuesday, or that it will be in her power to persuade him that, instead
|
||
|
of being in love with you, he is very much in love with her friend."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If we thought alike of Miss Bingley," replied Jane, "your
|
||
|
representation of all this might make me quite easy. But I know the
|
||
|
foundation is unjust. Caroline is incapable of wilfully deceiving
|
||
|
anyone; and all that I can hope in this case is that she is deceiving
|
||
|
herself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is right. You could not have started a more happy idea, since you
|
||
|
will not take comfort in mine. Believe her to be deceived, by all means.
|
||
|
You have now done your duty by her, and must fret no longer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But, my dear sister, can I be happy, even supposing the best, in
|
||
|
accepting a man whose sisters and friends are all wishing him to marry
|
||
|
elsewhere?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You must decide for yourself," said Elizabeth; "and if, upon mature
|
||
|
deliberation, you find that the misery of disobliging his two sisters is
|
||
|
more than equivalent to the happiness of being his wife, I advise you by
|
||
|
all means to refuse him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How can you talk so?" said Jane, faintly smiling. "You must know that
|
||
|
though I should be exceedingly grieved at their disapprobation, I could
|
||
|
not hesitate."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I did not think you would; and that being the case, I cannot consider
|
||
|
your situation with much compassion."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But if he returns no more this winter, my choice will never be
|
||
|
required. A thousand things may arise in six months!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The idea of his returning no more Elizabeth treated with the utmost
|
||
|
contempt. It appeared to her merely the suggestion of Caroline's
|
||
|
interested wishes, and she could not for a moment suppose that those
|
||
|
wishes, however openly or artfully spoken, could influence a young man
|
||
|
so totally independent of everyone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She represented to her sister as forcibly as possible what she felt
|
||
|
on the subject, and had soon the pleasure of seeing its happy effect.
|
||
|
Jane's temper was not desponding, and she was gradually led to hope,
|
||
|
though the diffidence of affection sometimes overcame the hope, that
|
||
|
Bingley would return to Netherfield and answer every wish of her heart.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They agreed that Mrs. Bennet should only hear of the departure of the
|
||
|
family, without being alarmed on the score of the gentleman's conduct;
|
||
|
but even this partial communication gave her a great deal of concern,
|
||
|
and she bewailed it as exceedingly unlucky that the ladies should happen
|
||
|
to go away just as they were all getting so intimate together. After
|
||
|
lamenting it, however, at some length, she had the consolation that Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley would be soon down again and soon dining at Longbourn, and the
|
||
|
conclusion of all was the comfortable declaration, that though he had
|
||
|
been invited only to a family dinner, she would take care to have two
|
||
|
full courses.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 22
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Bennets were engaged to dine with the Lucases and again during the
|
||
|
chief of the day was Miss Lucas so kind as to listen to Mr. Collins.
|
||
|
Elizabeth took an opportunity of thanking her. "It keeps him in good
|
||
|
humour," said she, "and I am more obliged to you than I can express."
|
||
|
Charlotte assured her friend of her satisfaction in being useful, and
|
||
|
that it amply repaid her for the little sacrifice of her time. This was
|
||
|
very amiable, but Charlotte's kindness extended farther than Elizabeth
|
||
|
had any conception of; its object was nothing else than to secure her
|
||
|
from any return of Mr. Collins's addresses, by engaging them towards
|
||
|
herself. Such was Miss Lucas's scheme; and appearances were so
|
||
|
favourable, that when they parted at night, she would have felt almost
|
||
|
secure of success if he had not been to leave Hertfordshire so very
|
||
|
soon. But here she did injustice to the fire and independence of his
|
||
|
character, for it led him to escape out of Longbourn House the next
|
||
|
morning with admirable slyness, and hasten to Lucas Lodge to throw
|
||
|
himself at her feet. He was anxious to avoid the notice of his cousins,
|
||
|
from a conviction that if they saw him depart, they could not fail to
|
||
|
conjecture his design, and he was not willing to have the attempt known
|
||
|
till its success might be known likewise; for though feeling almost
|
||
|
secure, and with reason, for Charlotte had been tolerably encouraging,
|
||
|
he was comparatively diffident since the adventure of Wednesday.
|
||
|
His reception, however, was of the most flattering kind. Miss Lucas
|
||
|
perceived him from an upper window as he walked towards the house, and
|
||
|
instantly set out to meet him accidentally in the lane. But little had
|
||
|
she dared to hope that so much love and eloquence awaited her there.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In as short a time as Mr. Collins's long speeches would allow,
|
||
|
everything was settled between them to the satisfaction of both; and as
|
||
|
they entered the house he earnestly entreated her to name the day that
|
||
|
was to make him the happiest of men; and though such a solicitation must
|
||
|
be waived for the present, the lady felt no inclination to trifle with
|
||
|
his happiness. The stupidity with which he was favoured by nature must
|
||
|
guard his courtship from any charm that could make a woman wish for its
|
||
|
continuance; and Miss Lucas, who accepted him solely from the pure
|
||
|
and disinterested desire of an establishment, cared not how soon that
|
||
|
establishment were gained.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sir William and Lady Lucas were speedily applied to for their consent;
|
||
|
and it was bestowed with a most joyful alacrity. Mr. Collins's present
|
||
|
circumstances made it a most eligible match for their daughter, to whom
|
||
|
they could give little fortune; and his prospects of future wealth were
|
||
|
exceedingly fair. Lady Lucas began directly to calculate, with more
|
||
|
interest than the matter had ever excited before, how many years longer
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet was likely to live; and Sir William gave it as his decided
|
||
|
opinion, that whenever Mr. Collins should be in possession of the
|
||
|
Longbourn estate, it would be highly expedient that both he and his wife
|
||
|
should make their appearance at St. James's. The whole family, in short,
|
||
|
were properly overjoyed on the occasion. The younger girls formed hopes
|
||
|
of _coming out_ a year or two sooner than they might otherwise have
|
||
|
done; and the boys were relieved from their apprehension of Charlotte's
|
||
|
dying an old maid. Charlotte herself was tolerably composed. She had
|
||
|
gained her point, and had time to consider of it. Her reflections were
|
||
|
in general satisfactory. Mr. Collins, to be sure, was neither sensible
|
||
|
nor agreeable; his society was irksome, and his attachment to her must
|
||
|
be imaginary. But still he would be her husband. Without thinking highly
|
||
|
either of men or matrimony, marriage had always been her object; it was
|
||
|
the only provision for well-educated young women of small fortune,
|
||
|
and however uncertain of giving happiness, must be their pleasantest
|
||
|
preservative from want. This preservative she had now obtained; and at
|
||
|
the age of twenty-seven, without having ever been handsome, she felt all
|
||
|
the good luck of it. The least agreeable circumstance in the business
|
||
|
was the surprise it must occasion to Elizabeth Bennet, whose friendship
|
||
|
she valued beyond that of any other person. Elizabeth would wonder,
|
||
|
and probably would blame her; and though her resolution was not to be
|
||
|
shaken, her feelings must be hurt by such a disapprobation. She resolved
|
||
|
to give her the information herself, and therefore charged Mr. Collins,
|
||
|
when he returned to Longbourn to dinner, to drop no hint of what had
|
||
|
passed before any of the family. A promise of secrecy was of course very
|
||
|
dutifully given, but it could not be kept without difficulty; for the
|
||
|
curiosity excited by his long absence burst forth in such very direct
|
||
|
questions on his return as required some ingenuity to evade, and he was
|
||
|
at the same time exercising great self-denial, for he was longing to
|
||
|
publish his prosperous love.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he was to begin his journey too early on the morrow to see any of the
|
||
|
family, the ceremony of leave-taking was performed when the ladies moved
|
||
|
for the night; and Mrs. Bennet, with great politeness and cordiality,
|
||
|
said how happy they should be to see him at Longbourn again, whenever
|
||
|
his engagements might allow him to visit them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear madam," he replied, "this invitation is particularly
|
||
|
gratifying, because it is what I have been hoping to receive; and
|
||
|
you may be very certain that I shall avail myself of it as soon as
|
||
|
possible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were all astonished; and Mr. Bennet, who could by no means wish for
|
||
|
so speedy a return, immediately said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But is there not danger of Lady Catherine's disapprobation here, my
|
||
|
good sir? You had better neglect your relations than run the risk of
|
||
|
offending your patroness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear sir," replied Mr. Collins, "I am particularly obliged to you
|
||
|
for this friendly caution, and you may depend upon my not taking so
|
||
|
material a step without her ladyship's concurrence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You cannot be too much upon your guard. Risk anything rather than her
|
||
|
displeasure; and if you find it likely to be raised by your coming to us
|
||
|
again, which I should think exceedingly probable, stay quietly at home,
|
||
|
and be satisfied that _we_ shall take no offence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Believe me, my dear sir, my gratitude is warmly excited by such
|
||
|
affectionate attention; and depend upon it, you will speedily receive
|
||
|
from me a letter of thanks for this, and for every other mark of your
|
||
|
regard during my stay in Hertfordshire. As for my fair cousins, though
|
||
|
my absence may not be long enough to render it necessary, I shall now
|
||
|
take the liberty of wishing them health and happiness, not excepting my
|
||
|
cousin Elizabeth."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With proper civilities the ladies then withdrew; all of them equally
|
||
|
surprised that he meditated a quick return. Mrs. Bennet wished to
|
||
|
understand by it that he thought of paying his addresses to one of her
|
||
|
younger girls, and Mary might have been prevailed on to accept him.
|
||
|
She rated his abilities much higher than any of the others; there was
|
||
|
a solidity in his reflections which often struck her, and though by no
|
||
|
means so clever as herself, she thought that if encouraged to read
|
||
|
and improve himself by such an example as hers, he might become a very
|
||
|
agreeable companion. But on the following morning, every hope of this
|
||
|
kind was done away. Miss Lucas called soon after breakfast, and in a
|
||
|
private conference with Elizabeth related the event of the day before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The possibility of Mr. Collins's fancying himself in love with her
|
||
|
friend had once occurred to Elizabeth within the last day or two; but
|
||
|
that Charlotte could encourage him seemed almost as far from
|
||
|
possibility as she could encourage him herself, and her astonishment was
|
||
|
consequently so great as to overcome at first the bounds of decorum, and
|
||
|
she could not help crying out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Engaged to Mr. Collins! My dear Charlotte--impossible!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The steady countenance which Miss Lucas had commanded in telling her
|
||
|
story, gave way to a momentary confusion here on receiving so direct a
|
||
|
reproach; though, as it was no more than she expected, she soon regained
|
||
|
her composure, and calmly replied:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why should you be surprised, my dear Eliza? Do you think it incredible
|
||
|
that Mr. Collins should be able to procure any woman's good opinion,
|
||
|
because he was not so happy as to succeed with you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
But Elizabeth had now recollected herself, and making a strong effort
|
||
|
for it, was able to assure with tolerable firmness that the prospect of
|
||
|
their relationship was highly grateful to her, and that she wished her
|
||
|
all imaginable happiness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I see what you are feeling," replied Charlotte. "You must be surprised,
|
||
|
very much surprised--so lately as Mr. Collins was wishing to marry
|
||
|
you. But when you have had time to think it over, I hope you will be
|
||
|
satisfied with what I have done. I am not romantic, you know; I never
|
||
|
was. I ask only a comfortable home; and considering Mr. Collins's
|
||
|
character, connection, and situation in life, I am convinced that my
|
||
|
chance of happiness with him is as fair as most people can boast on
|
||
|
entering the marriage state."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth quietly answered "Undoubtedly;" and after an awkward pause,
|
||
|
they returned to the rest of the family. Charlotte did not stay much
|
||
|
longer, and Elizabeth was then left to reflect on what she had heard.
|
||
|
It was a long time before she became at all reconciled to the idea of so
|
||
|
unsuitable a match. The strangeness of Mr. Collins's making two offers
|
||
|
of marriage within three days was nothing in comparison of his being now
|
||
|
accepted. She had always felt that Charlotte's opinion of matrimony was
|
||
|
not exactly like her own, but she had not supposed it to be possible
|
||
|
that, when called into action, she would have sacrificed every better
|
||
|
feeling to worldly advantage. Charlotte the wife of Mr. Collins was a
|
||
|
most humiliating picture! And to the pang of a friend disgracing herself
|
||
|
and sunk in her esteem, was added the distressing conviction that it
|
||
|
was impossible for that friend to be tolerably happy in the lot she had
|
||
|
chosen.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 23
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was sitting with her mother and sisters, reflecting on what
|
||
|
she had heard, and doubting whether she was authorised to mention
|
||
|
it, when Sir William Lucas himself appeared, sent by his daughter, to
|
||
|
announce her engagement to the family. With many compliments to them,
|
||
|
and much self-gratulation on the prospect of a connection between the
|
||
|
houses, he unfolded the matter--to an audience not merely wondering, but
|
||
|
incredulous; for Mrs. Bennet, with more perseverance than politeness,
|
||
|
protested he must be entirely mistaken; and Lydia, always unguarded and
|
||
|
often uncivil, boisterously exclaimed:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good Lord! Sir William, how can you tell such a story? Do not you know
|
||
|
that Mr. Collins wants to marry Lizzy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Nothing less than the complaisance of a courtier could have borne
|
||
|
without anger such treatment; but Sir William's good breeding carried
|
||
|
him through it all; and though he begged leave to be positive as to the
|
||
|
truth of his information, he listened to all their impertinence with the
|
||
|
most forbearing courtesy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, feeling it incumbent on her to relieve him from so unpleasant
|
||
|
a situation, now put herself forward to confirm his account, by
|
||
|
mentioning her prior knowledge of it from Charlotte herself; and
|
||
|
endeavoured to put a stop to the exclamations of her mother and sisters
|
||
|
by the earnestness of her congratulations to Sir William, in which she
|
||
|
was readily joined by Jane, and by making a variety of remarks on the
|
||
|
happiness that might be expected from the match, the excellent character
|
||
|
of Mr. Collins, and the convenient distance of Hunsford from London.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet was in fact too much overpowered to say a great deal while
|
||
|
Sir William remained; but no sooner had he left them than her feelings
|
||
|
found a rapid vent. In the first place, she persisted in disbelieving
|
||
|
the whole of the matter; secondly, she was very sure that Mr. Collins
|
||
|
had been taken in; thirdly, she trusted that they would never be
|
||
|
happy together; and fourthly, that the match might be broken off. Two
|
||
|
inferences, however, were plainly deduced from the whole: one, that
|
||
|
Elizabeth was the real cause of the mischief; and the other that she
|
||
|
herself had been barbarously misused by them all; and on these two
|
||
|
points she principally dwelt during the rest of the day. Nothing could
|
||
|
console and nothing could appease her. Nor did that day wear out her
|
||
|
resentment. A week elapsed before she could see Elizabeth without
|
||
|
scolding her, a month passed away before she could speak to Sir William
|
||
|
or Lady Lucas without being rude, and many months were gone before she
|
||
|
could at all forgive their daughter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet's emotions were much more tranquil on the occasion, and such
|
||
|
as he did experience he pronounced to be of a most agreeable sort; for
|
||
|
it gratified him, he said, to discover that Charlotte Lucas, whom he had
|
||
|
been used to think tolerably sensible, was as foolish as his wife, and
|
||
|
more foolish than his daughter!
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane confessed herself a little surprised at the match; but she said
|
||
|
less of her astonishment than of her earnest desire for their happiness;
|
||
|
nor could Elizabeth persuade her to consider it as improbable. Kitty
|
||
|
and Lydia were far from envying Miss Lucas, for Mr. Collins was only a
|
||
|
clergyman; and it affected them in no other way than as a piece of news
|
||
|
to spread at Meryton.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Lucas could not be insensible of triumph on being able to retort
|
||
|
on Mrs. Bennet the comfort of having a daughter well married; and she
|
||
|
called at Longbourn rather oftener than usual to say how happy she was,
|
||
|
though Mrs. Bennet's sour looks and ill-natured remarks might have been
|
||
|
enough to drive happiness away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Between Elizabeth and Charlotte there was a restraint which kept them
|
||
|
mutually silent on the subject; and Elizabeth felt persuaded that
|
||
|
no real confidence could ever subsist between them again. Her
|
||
|
disappointment in Charlotte made her turn with fonder regard to her
|
||
|
sister, of whose rectitude and delicacy she was sure her opinion could
|
||
|
never be shaken, and for whose happiness she grew daily more anxious,
|
||
|
as Bingley had now been gone a week and nothing more was heard of his
|
||
|
return.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane had sent Caroline an early answer to her letter, and was counting
|
||
|
the days till she might reasonably hope to hear again. The promised
|
||
|
letter of thanks from Mr. Collins arrived on Tuesday, addressed to
|
||
|
their father, and written with all the solemnity of gratitude which a
|
||
|
twelvemonth's abode in the family might have prompted. After discharging
|
||
|
his conscience on that head, he proceeded to inform them, with many
|
||
|
rapturous expressions, of his happiness in having obtained the affection
|
||
|
of their amiable neighbour, Miss Lucas, and then explained that it was
|
||
|
merely with the view of enjoying her society that he had been so ready
|
||
|
to close with their kind wish of seeing him again at Longbourn, whither
|
||
|
he hoped to be able to return on Monday fortnight; for Lady Catherine,
|
||
|
he added, so heartily approved his marriage, that she wished it to take
|
||
|
place as soon as possible, which he trusted would be an unanswerable
|
||
|
argument with his amiable Charlotte to name an early day for making him
|
||
|
the happiest of men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins's return into Hertfordshire was no longer a matter of
|
||
|
pleasure to Mrs. Bennet. On the contrary, she was as much disposed to
|
||
|
complain of it as her husband. It was very strange that he should come
|
||
|
to Longbourn instead of to Lucas Lodge; it was also very inconvenient
|
||
|
and exceedingly troublesome. She hated having visitors in the house
|
||
|
while her health was so indifferent, and lovers were of all people the
|
||
|
most disagreeable. Such were the gentle murmurs of Mrs. Bennet, and
|
||
|
they gave way only to the greater distress of Mr. Bingley's continued
|
||
|
absence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Neither Jane nor Elizabeth were comfortable on this subject. Day after
|
||
|
day passed away without bringing any other tidings of him than the
|
||
|
report which shortly prevailed in Meryton of his coming no more to
|
||
|
Netherfield the whole winter; a report which highly incensed Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet, and which she never failed to contradict as a most scandalous
|
||
|
falsehood.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Even Elizabeth began to fear--not that Bingley was indifferent--but that
|
||
|
his sisters would be successful in keeping him away. Unwilling as
|
||
|
she was to admit an idea so destructive of Jane's happiness, and so
|
||
|
dishonorable to the stability of her lover, she could not prevent its
|
||
|
frequently occurring. The united efforts of his two unfeeling sisters
|
||
|
and of his overpowering friend, assisted by the attractions of Miss
|
||
|
Darcy and the amusements of London might be too much, she feared, for
|
||
|
the strength of his attachment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As for Jane, _her_ anxiety under this suspense was, of course, more
|
||
|
painful than Elizabeth's, but whatever she felt she was desirous of
|
||
|
concealing, and between herself and Elizabeth, therefore, the subject
|
||
|
was never alluded to. But as no such delicacy restrained her mother,
|
||
|
an hour seldom passed in which she did not talk of Bingley, express her
|
||
|
impatience for his arrival, or even require Jane to confess that if he
|
||
|
did not come back she would think herself very ill used. It needed
|
||
|
all Jane's steady mildness to bear these attacks with tolerable
|
||
|
tranquillity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins returned most punctually on Monday fortnight, but his
|
||
|
reception at Longbourn was not quite so gracious as it had been on his
|
||
|
first introduction. He was too happy, however, to need much attention;
|
||
|
and luckily for the others, the business of love-making relieved them
|
||
|
from a great deal of his company. The chief of every day was spent by
|
||
|
him at Lucas Lodge, and he sometimes returned to Longbourn only in time
|
||
|
to make an apology for his absence before the family went to bed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet was really in a most pitiable state. The very mention of
|
||
|
anything concerning the match threw her into an agony of ill-humour,
|
||
|
and wherever she went she was sure of hearing it talked of. The sight
|
||
|
of Miss Lucas was odious to her. As her successor in that house, she
|
||
|
regarded her with jealous abhorrence. Whenever Charlotte came to see
|
||
|
them, she concluded her to be anticipating the hour of possession; and
|
||
|
whenever she spoke in a low voice to Mr. Collins, was convinced that
|
||
|
they were talking of the Longbourn estate, and resolving to turn herself
|
||
|
and her daughters out of the house, as soon as Mr. Bennet were dead. She
|
||
|
complained bitterly of all this to her husband.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, Mr. Bennet," said she, "it is very hard to think that Charlotte
|
||
|
Lucas should ever be mistress of this house, that I should be forced to
|
||
|
make way for _her_, and live to see her take her place in it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear, do not give way to such gloomy thoughts. Let us hope for
|
||
|
better things. Let us flatter ourselves that I may be the survivor."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was not very consoling to Mrs. Bennet, and therefore, instead of
|
||
|
making any answer, she went on as before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot bear to think that they should have all this estate. If it was
|
||
|
not for the entail, I should not mind it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What should not you mind?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should not mind anything at all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let us be thankful that you are preserved from a state of such
|
||
|
insensibility."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never can be thankful, Mr. Bennet, for anything about the entail. How
|
||
|
anyone could have the conscience to entail away an estate from one's own
|
||
|
daughters, I cannot understand; and all for the sake of Mr. Collins too!
|
||
|
Why should _he_ have it more than anybody else?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I leave it to yourself to determine," said Mr. Bennet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 24
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley's letter arrived, and put an end to doubt. The very first
|
||
|
sentence conveyed the assurance of their being all settled in London for
|
||
|
the winter, and concluded with her brother's regret at not having had
|
||
|
time to pay his respects to his friends in Hertfordshire before he left
|
||
|
the country.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Hope was over, entirely over; and when Jane could attend to the rest
|
||
|
of the letter, she found little, except the professed affection of the
|
||
|
writer, that could give her any comfort. Miss Darcy's praise occupied
|
||
|
the chief of it. Her many attractions were again dwelt on, and Caroline
|
||
|
boasted joyfully of their increasing intimacy, and ventured to predict
|
||
|
the accomplishment of the wishes which had been unfolded in her former
|
||
|
letter. She wrote also with great pleasure of her brother's being an
|
||
|
inmate of Mr. Darcy's house, and mentioned with raptures some plans of
|
||
|
the latter with regard to new furniture.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, to whom Jane very soon communicated the chief of all this,
|
||
|
heard it in silent indignation. Her heart was divided between concern
|
||
|
for her sister, and resentment against all others. To Caroline's
|
||
|
assertion of her brother's being partial to Miss Darcy she paid no
|
||
|
credit. That he was really fond of Jane, she doubted no more than she
|
||
|
had ever done; and much as she had always been disposed to like him, she
|
||
|
could not think without anger, hardly without contempt, on that easiness
|
||
|
of temper, that want of proper resolution, which now made him the slave
|
||
|
of his designing friends, and led him to sacrifice of his own happiness
|
||
|
to the caprice of their inclination. Had his own happiness, however,
|
||
|
been the only sacrifice, he might have been allowed to sport with it in
|
||
|
whatever manner he thought best, but her sister's was involved in it, as
|
||
|
she thought he must be sensible himself. It was a subject, in short,
|
||
|
on which reflection would be long indulged, and must be unavailing. She
|
||
|
could think of nothing else; and yet whether Bingley's regard had really
|
||
|
died away, or were suppressed by his friends' interference; whether
|
||
|
he had been aware of Jane's attachment, or whether it had escaped his
|
||
|
observation; whatever were the case, though her opinion of him must be
|
||
|
materially affected by the difference, her sister's situation remained
|
||
|
the same, her peace equally wounded.
|
||
|
|
||
|
A day or two passed before Jane had courage to speak of her feelings to
|
||
|
Elizabeth; but at last, on Mrs. Bennet's leaving them together, after a
|
||
|
longer irritation than usual about Netherfield and its master, she could
|
||
|
not help saying:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, that my dear mother had more command over herself! She can have no
|
||
|
idea of the pain she gives me by her continual reflections on him. But
|
||
|
I will not repine. It cannot last long. He will be forgot, and we shall
|
||
|
all be as we were before."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth looked at her sister with incredulous solicitude, but said
|
||
|
nothing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You doubt me," cried Jane, slightly colouring; "indeed, you have
|
||
|
no reason. He may live in my memory as the most amiable man of my
|
||
|
acquaintance, but that is all. I have nothing either to hope or fear,
|
||
|
and nothing to reproach him with. Thank God! I have not _that_ pain. A
|
||
|
little time, therefore--I shall certainly try to get the better."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With a stronger voice she soon added, "I have this comfort immediately,
|
||
|
that it has not been more than an error of fancy on my side, and that it
|
||
|
has done no harm to anyone but myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Jane!" exclaimed Elizabeth, "you are too good. Your sweetness
|
||
|
and disinterestedness are really angelic; I do not know what to say
|
||
|
to you. I feel as if I had never done you justice, or loved you as you
|
||
|
deserve."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bennet eagerly disclaimed all extraordinary merit, and threw back
|
||
|
the praise on her sister's warm affection.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nay," said Elizabeth, "this is not fair. _You_ wish to think all the
|
||
|
world respectable, and are hurt if I speak ill of anybody. I only want
|
||
|
to think _you_ perfect, and you set yourself against it. Do not
|
||
|
be afraid of my running into any excess, of my encroaching on your
|
||
|
privilege of universal good-will. You need not. There are few people
|
||
|
whom I really love, and still fewer of whom I think well. The more I see
|
||
|
of the world, the more am I dissatisfied with it; and every day confirms
|
||
|
my belief of the inconsistency of all human characters, and of the
|
||
|
little dependence that can be placed on the appearance of merit or
|
||
|
sense. I have met with two instances lately, one I will not mention; the
|
||
|
other is Charlotte's marriage. It is unaccountable! In every view it is
|
||
|
unaccountable!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Lizzy, do not give way to such feelings as these. They will
|
||
|
ruin your happiness. You do not make allowance enough for difference
|
||
|
of situation and temper. Consider Mr. Collins's respectability, and
|
||
|
Charlotte's steady, prudent character. Remember that she is one of a
|
||
|
large family; that as to fortune, it is a most eligible match; and be
|
||
|
ready to believe, for everybody's sake, that she may feel something like
|
||
|
regard and esteem for our cousin."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To oblige you, I would try to believe almost anything, but no one else
|
||
|
could be benefited by such a belief as this; for were I persuaded that
|
||
|
Charlotte had any regard for him, I should only think worse of her
|
||
|
understanding than I now do of her heart. My dear Jane, Mr. Collins is a
|
||
|
conceited, pompous, narrow-minded, silly man; you know he is, as well as
|
||
|
I do; and you must feel, as well as I do, that the woman who married him
|
||
|
cannot have a proper way of thinking. You shall not defend her, though
|
||
|
it is Charlotte Lucas. You shall not, for the sake of one individual,
|
||
|
change the meaning of principle and integrity, nor endeavour to persuade
|
||
|
yourself or me, that selfishness is prudence, and insensibility of
|
||
|
danger security for happiness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I must think your language too strong in speaking of both," replied
|
||
|
Jane; "and I hope you will be convinced of it by seeing them happy
|
||
|
together. But enough of this. You alluded to something else. You
|
||
|
mentioned _two_ instances. I cannot misunderstand you, but I entreat
|
||
|
you, dear Lizzy, not to pain me by thinking _that person_ to blame, and
|
||
|
saying your opinion of him is sunk. We must not be so ready to fancy
|
||
|
ourselves intentionally injured. We must not expect a lively young man
|
||
|
to be always so guarded and circumspect. It is very often nothing but
|
||
|
our own vanity that deceives us. Women fancy admiration means more than
|
||
|
it does."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And men take care that they should."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If it is designedly done, they cannot be justified; but I have no idea
|
||
|
of there being so much design in the world as some persons imagine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am far from attributing any part of Mr. Bingley's conduct to design,"
|
||
|
said Elizabeth; "but without scheming to do wrong, or to make others
|
||
|
unhappy, there may be error, and there may be misery. Thoughtlessness,
|
||
|
want of attention to other people's feelings, and want of resolution,
|
||
|
will do the business."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And do you impute it to either of those?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; to the last. But if I go on, I shall displease you by saying what
|
||
|
I think of persons you esteem. Stop me whilst you can."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You persist, then, in supposing his sisters influence him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, in conjunction with his friend."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot believe it. Why should they try to influence him? They can
|
||
|
only wish his happiness; and if he is attached to me, no other woman can
|
||
|
secure it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your first position is false. They may wish many things besides his
|
||
|
happiness; they may wish his increase of wealth and consequence; they
|
||
|
may wish him to marry a girl who has all the importance of money, great
|
||
|
connections, and pride."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Beyond a doubt, they _do_ wish him to choose Miss Darcy," replied Jane;
|
||
|
"but this may be from better feelings than you are supposing. They have
|
||
|
known her much longer than they have known me; no wonder if they love
|
||
|
her better. But, whatever may be their own wishes, it is very unlikely
|
||
|
they should have opposed their brother's. What sister would think
|
||
|
herself at liberty to do it, unless there were something very
|
||
|
objectionable? If they believed him attached to me, they would not try
|
||
|
to part us; if he were so, they could not succeed. By supposing such an
|
||
|
affection, you make everybody acting unnaturally and wrong, and me most
|
||
|
unhappy. Do not distress me by the idea. I am not ashamed of having been
|
||
|
mistaken--or, at least, it is light, it is nothing in comparison of what
|
||
|
I should feel in thinking ill of him or his sisters. Let me take it in
|
||
|
the best light, in the light in which it may be understood."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could not oppose such a wish; and from this time Mr. Bingley's
|
||
|
name was scarcely ever mentioned between them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet still continued to wonder and repine at his returning no
|
||
|
more, and though a day seldom passed in which Elizabeth did not account
|
||
|
for it clearly, there was little chance of her ever considering it with
|
||
|
less perplexity. Her daughter endeavoured to convince her of what she
|
||
|
did not believe herself, that his attentions to Jane had been merely the
|
||
|
effect of a common and transient liking, which ceased when he saw her
|
||
|
no more; but though the probability of the statement was admitted at
|
||
|
the time, she had the same story to repeat every day. Mrs. Bennet's best
|
||
|
comfort was that Mr. Bingley must be down again in the summer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet treated the matter differently. "So, Lizzy," said he one day,
|
||
|
"your sister is crossed in love, I find. I congratulate her. Next to
|
||
|
being married, a girl likes to be crossed a little in love now and then.
|
||
|
It is something to think of, and it gives her a sort of distinction
|
||
|
among her companions. When is your turn to come? You will hardly bear to
|
||
|
be long outdone by Jane. Now is your time. Here are officers enough in
|
||
|
Meryton to disappoint all the young ladies in the country. Let Wickham
|
||
|
be _your_ man. He is a pleasant fellow, and would jilt you creditably."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thank you, sir, but a less agreeable man would satisfy me. We must not
|
||
|
all expect Jane's good fortune."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True," said Mr. Bennet, "but it is a comfort to think that whatever of
|
||
|
that kind may befall you, you have an affectionate mother who will make
|
||
|
the most of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham's society was of material service in dispelling the gloom
|
||
|
which the late perverse occurrences had thrown on many of the Longbourn
|
||
|
family. They saw him often, and to his other recommendations was now
|
||
|
added that of general unreserve. The whole of what Elizabeth had already
|
||
|
heard, his claims on Mr. Darcy, and all that he had suffered from him,
|
||
|
was now openly acknowledged and publicly canvassed; and everybody was
|
||
|
pleased to know how much they had always disliked Mr. Darcy before they
|
||
|
had known anything of the matter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bennet was the only creature who could suppose there might be
|
||
|
any extenuating circumstances in the case, unknown to the society
|
||
|
of Hertfordshire; her mild and steady candour always pleaded for
|
||
|
allowances, and urged the possibility of mistakes--but by everybody else
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy was condemned as the worst of men.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 25
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
After a week spent in professions of love and schemes of felicity,
|
||
|
Mr. Collins was called from his amiable Charlotte by the arrival of
|
||
|
Saturday. The pain of separation, however, might be alleviated on his
|
||
|
side, by preparations for the reception of his bride; as he had reason
|
||
|
to hope, that shortly after his return into Hertfordshire, the day would
|
||
|
be fixed that was to make him the happiest of men. He took leave of his
|
||
|
relations at Longbourn with as much solemnity as before; wished his fair
|
||
|
cousins health and happiness again, and promised their father another
|
||
|
letter of thanks.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On the following Monday, Mrs. Bennet had the pleasure of receiving
|
||
|
her brother and his wife, who came as usual to spend the Christmas
|
||
|
at Longbourn. Mr. Gardiner was a sensible, gentlemanlike man, greatly
|
||
|
superior to his sister, as well by nature as education. The Netherfield
|
||
|
ladies would have had difficulty in believing that a man who lived
|
||
|
by trade, and within view of his own warehouses, could have been so
|
||
|
well-bred and agreeable. Mrs. Gardiner, who was several years younger
|
||
|
than Mrs. Bennet and Mrs. Phillips, was an amiable, intelligent, elegant
|
||
|
woman, and a great favourite with all her Longbourn nieces. Between the
|
||
|
two eldest and herself especially, there subsisted a particular regard.
|
||
|
They had frequently been staying with her in town.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The first part of Mrs. Gardiner's business on her arrival was to
|
||
|
distribute her presents and describe the newest fashions. When this was
|
||
|
done she had a less active part to play. It became her turn to listen.
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet had many grievances to relate, and much to complain of. They
|
||
|
had all been very ill-used since she last saw her sister. Two of her
|
||
|
girls had been upon the point of marriage, and after all there was
|
||
|
nothing in it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not blame Jane," she continued, "for Jane would have got Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley if she could. But Lizzy! Oh, sister! It is very hard to think
|
||
|
that she might have been Mr. Collins's wife by this time, had it not
|
||
|
been for her own perverseness. He made her an offer in this very room,
|
||
|
and she refused him. The consequence of it is, that Lady Lucas will have
|
||
|
a daughter married before I have, and that the Longbourn estate is just
|
||
|
as much entailed as ever. The Lucases are very artful people indeed,
|
||
|
sister. They are all for what they can get. I am sorry to say it of
|
||
|
them, but so it is. It makes me very nervous and poorly, to be thwarted
|
||
|
so in my own family, and to have neighbours who think of themselves
|
||
|
before anybody else. However, your coming just at this time is the
|
||
|
greatest of comforts, and I am very glad to hear what you tell us, of
|
||
|
long sleeves."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner, to whom the chief of this news had been given before,
|
||
|
in the course of Jane and Elizabeth's correspondence with her, made her
|
||
|
sister a slight answer, and, in compassion to her nieces, turned the
|
||
|
conversation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When alone with Elizabeth afterwards, she spoke more on the subject. "It
|
||
|
seems likely to have been a desirable match for Jane," said she. "I am
|
||
|
sorry it went off. But these things happen so often! A young man, such
|
||
|
as you describe Mr. Bingley, so easily falls in love with a pretty girl
|
||
|
for a few weeks, and when accident separates them, so easily forgets
|
||
|
her, that these sort of inconsistencies are very frequent."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An excellent consolation in its way," said Elizabeth, "but it will not
|
||
|
do for _us_. We do not suffer by _accident_. It does not often
|
||
|
happen that the interference of friends will persuade a young man of
|
||
|
independent fortune to think no more of a girl whom he was violently in
|
||
|
love with only a few days before."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But that expression of 'violently in love' is so hackneyed, so
|
||
|
doubtful, so indefinite, that it gives me very little idea. It is as
|
||
|
often applied to feelings which arise from a half-hour's acquaintance,
|
||
|
as to a real, strong attachment. Pray, how _violent was_ Mr. Bingley's
|
||
|
love?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never saw a more promising inclination; he was growing quite
|
||
|
inattentive to other people, and wholly engrossed by her. Every time
|
||
|
they met, it was more decided and remarkable. At his own ball he
|
||
|
offended two or three young ladies, by not asking them to dance; and I
|
||
|
spoke to him twice myself, without receiving an answer. Could there be
|
||
|
finer symptoms? Is not general incivility the very essence of love?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, yes!--of that kind of love which I suppose him to have felt. Poor
|
||
|
Jane! I am sorry for her, because, with her disposition, she may not get
|
||
|
over it immediately. It had better have happened to _you_, Lizzy; you
|
||
|
would have laughed yourself out of it sooner. But do you think she
|
||
|
would be prevailed upon to go back with us? Change of scene might be
|
||
|
of service--and perhaps a little relief from home may be as useful as
|
||
|
anything."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was exceedingly pleased with this proposal, and felt persuaded
|
||
|
of her sister's ready acquiescence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope," added Mrs. Gardiner, "that no consideration with regard to
|
||
|
this young man will influence her. We live in so different a part of
|
||
|
town, all our connections are so different, and, as you well know, we go
|
||
|
out so little, that it is very improbable that they should meet at all,
|
||
|
unless he really comes to see her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And _that_ is quite impossible; for he is now in the custody of his
|
||
|
friend, and Mr. Darcy would no more suffer him to call on Jane in such
|
||
|
a part of London! My dear aunt, how could you think of it? Mr. Darcy may
|
||
|
perhaps have _heard_ of such a place as Gracechurch Street, but he
|
||
|
would hardly think a month's ablution enough to cleanse him from its
|
||
|
impurities, were he once to enter it; and depend upon it, Mr. Bingley
|
||
|
never stirs without him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So much the better. I hope they will not meet at all. But does not Jane
|
||
|
correspond with his sister? _She_ will not be able to help calling."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She will drop the acquaintance entirely."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But in spite of the certainty in which Elizabeth affected to place this
|
||
|
point, as well as the still more interesting one of Bingley's being
|
||
|
withheld from seeing Jane, she felt a solicitude on the subject which
|
||
|
convinced her, on examination, that she did not consider it entirely
|
||
|
hopeless. It was possible, and sometimes she thought it probable, that
|
||
|
his affection might be reanimated, and the influence of his friends
|
||
|
successfully combated by the more natural influence of Jane's
|
||
|
attractions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bennet accepted her aunt's invitation with pleasure; and the
|
||
|
Bingleys were no otherwise in her thoughts at the same time, than as she
|
||
|
hoped by Caroline's not living in the same house with her brother,
|
||
|
she might occasionally spend a morning with her, without any danger of
|
||
|
seeing him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Gardiners stayed a week at Longbourn; and what with the Phillipses,
|
||
|
the Lucases, and the officers, there was not a day without its
|
||
|
engagement. Mrs. Bennet had so carefully provided for the entertainment
|
||
|
of her brother and sister, that they did not once sit down to a family
|
||
|
dinner. When the engagement was for home, some of the officers always
|
||
|
made part of it--of which officers Mr. Wickham was sure to be one; and
|
||
|
on these occasions, Mrs. Gardiner, rendered suspicious by Elizabeth's
|
||
|
warm commendation, narrowly observed them both. Without supposing them,
|
||
|
from what she saw, to be very seriously in love, their preference
|
||
|
of each other was plain enough to make her a little uneasy; and
|
||
|
she resolved to speak to Elizabeth on the subject before she left
|
||
|
Hertfordshire, and represent to her the imprudence of encouraging such
|
||
|
an attachment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To Mrs. Gardiner, Wickham had one means of affording pleasure,
|
||
|
unconnected with his general powers. About ten or a dozen years ago,
|
||
|
before her marriage, she had spent a considerable time in that very
|
||
|
part of Derbyshire to which he belonged. They had, therefore, many
|
||
|
acquaintances in common; and though Wickham had been little there since
|
||
|
the death of Darcy's father, it was yet in his power to give her fresher
|
||
|
intelligence of her former friends than she had been in the way of
|
||
|
procuring.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner had seen Pemberley, and known the late Mr. Darcy by
|
||
|
character perfectly well. Here consequently was an inexhaustible subject
|
||
|
of discourse. In comparing her recollection of Pemberley with the minute
|
||
|
description which Wickham could give, and in bestowing her tribute of
|
||
|
praise on the character of its late possessor, she was delighting both
|
||
|
him and herself. On being made acquainted with the present Mr. Darcy's
|
||
|
treatment of him, she tried to remember some of that gentleman's
|
||
|
reputed disposition when quite a lad which might agree with it, and
|
||
|
was confident at last that she recollected having heard Mr. Fitzwilliam
|
||
|
Darcy formerly spoken of as a very proud, ill-natured boy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 26
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner's caution to Elizabeth was punctually and kindly given
|
||
|
on the first favourable opportunity of speaking to her alone; after
|
||
|
honestly telling her what she thought, she thus went on:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are too sensible a girl, Lizzy, to fall in love merely because
|
||
|
you are warned against it; and, therefore, I am not afraid of speaking
|
||
|
openly. Seriously, I would have you be on your guard. Do not involve
|
||
|
yourself or endeavour to involve him in an affection which the want
|
||
|
of fortune would make so very imprudent. I have nothing to say against
|
||
|
_him_; he is a most interesting young man; and if he had the fortune he
|
||
|
ought to have, I should think you could not do better. But as it is, you
|
||
|
must not let your fancy run away with you. You have sense, and we all
|
||
|
expect you to use it. Your father would depend on _your_ resolution and
|
||
|
good conduct, I am sure. You must not disappoint your father."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear aunt, this is being serious indeed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, and I hope to engage you to be serious likewise."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then, you need not be under any alarm. I will take care of
|
||
|
myself, and of Mr. Wickham too. He shall not be in love with me, if I
|
||
|
can prevent it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Elizabeth, you are not serious now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I beg your pardon, I will try again. At present I am not in love with
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham; no, I certainly am not. But he is, beyond all comparison,
|
||
|
the most agreeable man I ever saw--and if he becomes really attached to
|
||
|
me--I believe it will be better that he should not. I see the imprudence
|
||
|
of it. Oh! _that_ abominable Mr. Darcy! My father's opinion of me does
|
||
|
me the greatest honour, and I should be miserable to forfeit it. My
|
||
|
father, however, is partial to Mr. Wickham. In short, my dear aunt, I
|
||
|
should be very sorry to be the means of making any of you unhappy; but
|
||
|
since we see every day that where there is affection, young people
|
||
|
are seldom withheld by immediate want of fortune from entering into
|
||
|
engagements with each other, how can I promise to be wiser than so many
|
||
|
of my fellow-creatures if I am tempted, or how am I even to know that it
|
||
|
would be wisdom to resist? All that I can promise you, therefore, is not
|
||
|
to be in a hurry. I will not be in a hurry to believe myself his first
|
||
|
object. When I am in company with him, I will not be wishing. In short,
|
||
|
I will do my best."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps it will be as well if you discourage his coming here so very
|
||
|
often. At least, you should not _remind_ your mother of inviting him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As I did the other day," said Elizabeth with a conscious smile: "very
|
||
|
true, it will be wise in me to refrain from _that_. But do not imagine
|
||
|
that he is always here so often. It is on your account that he has been
|
||
|
so frequently invited this week. You know my mother's ideas as to the
|
||
|
necessity of constant company for her friends. But really, and upon my
|
||
|
honour, I will try to do what I think to be the wisest; and now I hope
|
||
|
you are satisfied."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her aunt assured her that she was, and Elizabeth having thanked her for
|
||
|
the kindness of her hints, they parted; a wonderful instance of advice
|
||
|
being given on such a point, without being resented.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins returned into Hertfordshire soon after it had been quitted
|
||
|
by the Gardiners and Jane; but as he took up his abode with the Lucases,
|
||
|
his arrival was no great inconvenience to Mrs. Bennet. His marriage was
|
||
|
now fast approaching, and she was at length so far resigned as to think
|
||
|
it inevitable, and even repeatedly to say, in an ill-natured tone, that
|
||
|
she "_wished_ they might be happy." Thursday was to be the wedding day,
|
||
|
and on Wednesday Miss Lucas paid her farewell visit; and when she
|
||
|
rose to take leave, Elizabeth, ashamed of her mother's ungracious and
|
||
|
reluctant good wishes, and sincerely affected herself, accompanied her
|
||
|
out of the room. As they went downstairs together, Charlotte said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I shall depend on hearing from you very often, Eliza."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_That_ you certainly shall."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I have another favour to ask you. Will you come and see me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We shall often meet, I hope, in Hertfordshire."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am not likely to leave Kent for some time. Promise me, therefore, to
|
||
|
come to Hunsford."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could not refuse, though she foresaw little pleasure in the
|
||
|
visit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My father and Maria are coming to me in March," added Charlotte, "and I
|
||
|
hope you will consent to be of the party. Indeed, Eliza, you will be as
|
||
|
welcome as either of them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The wedding took place; the bride and bridegroom set off for Kent from
|
||
|
the church door, and everybody had as much to say, or to hear, on
|
||
|
the subject as usual. Elizabeth soon heard from her friend; and their
|
||
|
correspondence was as regular and frequent as it had ever been; that
|
||
|
it should be equally unreserved was impossible. Elizabeth could never
|
||
|
address her without feeling that all the comfort of intimacy was over,
|
||
|
and though determined not to slacken as a correspondent, it was for the
|
||
|
sake of what had been, rather than what was. Charlotte's first letters
|
||
|
were received with a good deal of eagerness; there could not but be
|
||
|
curiosity to know how she would speak of her new home, how she would
|
||
|
like Lady Catherine, and how happy she would dare pronounce herself to
|
||
|
be; though, when the letters were read, Elizabeth felt that Charlotte
|
||
|
expressed herself on every point exactly as she might have foreseen. She
|
||
|
wrote cheerfully, seemed surrounded with comforts, and mentioned nothing
|
||
|
which she could not praise. The house, furniture, neighbourhood, and
|
||
|
roads, were all to her taste, and Lady Catherine's behaviour was most
|
||
|
friendly and obliging. It was Mr. Collins's picture of Hunsford and
|
||
|
Rosings rationally softened; and Elizabeth perceived that she must wait
|
||
|
for her own visit there to know the rest.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane had already written a few lines to her sister to announce their
|
||
|
safe arrival in London; and when she wrote again, Elizabeth hoped it
|
||
|
would be in her power to say something of the Bingleys.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her impatience for this second letter was as well rewarded as impatience
|
||
|
generally is. Jane had been a week in town without either seeing or
|
||
|
hearing from Caroline. She accounted for it, however, by supposing that
|
||
|
her last letter to her friend from Longbourn had by some accident been
|
||
|
lost.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My aunt," she continued, "is going to-morrow into that part of the
|
||
|
town, and I shall take the opportunity of calling in Grosvenor Street."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She wrote again when the visit was paid, and she had seen Miss Bingley.
|
||
|
"I did not think Caroline in spirits," were her words, "but she was very
|
||
|
glad to see me, and reproached me for giving her no notice of my coming
|
||
|
to London. I was right, therefore, my last letter had never reached
|
||
|
her. I inquired after their brother, of course. He was well, but so much
|
||
|
engaged with Mr. Darcy that they scarcely ever saw him. I found that
|
||
|
Miss Darcy was expected to dinner. I wish I could see her. My visit was
|
||
|
not long, as Caroline and Mrs. Hurst were going out. I dare say I shall
|
||
|
see them soon here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth shook her head over this letter. It convinced her that
|
||
|
accident only could discover to Mr. Bingley her sister's being in town.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Four weeks passed away, and Jane saw nothing of him. She endeavoured to
|
||
|
persuade herself that she did not regret it; but she could no longer be
|
||
|
blind to Miss Bingley's inattention. After waiting at home every morning
|
||
|
for a fortnight, and inventing every evening a fresh excuse for her, the
|
||
|
visitor did at last appear; but the shortness of her stay, and yet more,
|
||
|
the alteration of her manner would allow Jane to deceive herself no
|
||
|
longer. The letter which she wrote on this occasion to her sister will
|
||
|
prove what she felt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dearest Lizzy will, I am sure, be incapable of triumphing in her
|
||
|
better judgement, at my expense, when I confess myself to have been
|
||
|
entirely deceived in Miss Bingley's regard for me. But, my dear sister,
|
||
|
though the event has proved you right, do not think me obstinate if I
|
||
|
still assert that, considering what her behaviour was, my confidence was
|
||
|
as natural as your suspicion. I do not at all comprehend her reason for
|
||
|
wishing to be intimate with me; but if the same circumstances were to
|
||
|
happen again, I am sure I should be deceived again. Caroline did not
|
||
|
return my visit till yesterday; and not a note, not a line, did I
|
||
|
receive in the meantime. When she did come, it was very evident that
|
||
|
she had no pleasure in it; she made a slight, formal apology, for not
|
||
|
calling before, said not a word of wishing to see me again, and was
|
||
|
in every respect so altered a creature, that when she went away I was
|
||
|
perfectly resolved to continue the acquaintance no longer. I pity,
|
||
|
though I cannot help blaming her. She was very wrong in singling me out
|
||
|
as she did; I can safely say that every advance to intimacy began on
|
||
|
her side. But I pity her, because she must feel that she has been acting
|
||
|
wrong, and because I am very sure that anxiety for her brother is the
|
||
|
cause of it. I need not explain myself farther; and though _we_ know
|
||
|
this anxiety to be quite needless, yet if she feels it, it will easily
|
||
|
account for her behaviour to me; and so deservedly dear as he is to
|
||
|
his sister, whatever anxiety she must feel on his behalf is natural and
|
||
|
amiable. I cannot but wonder, however, at her having any such fears now,
|
||
|
because, if he had at all cared about me, we must have met, long ago.
|
||
|
He knows of my being in town, I am certain, from something she said
|
||
|
herself; and yet it would seem, by her manner of talking, as if she
|
||
|
wanted to persuade herself that he is really partial to Miss Darcy. I
|
||
|
cannot understand it. If I were not afraid of judging harshly, I should
|
||
|
be almost tempted to say that there is a strong appearance of duplicity
|
||
|
in all this. But I will endeavour to banish every painful thought,
|
||
|
and think only of what will make me happy--your affection, and the
|
||
|
invariable kindness of my dear uncle and aunt. Let me hear from you very
|
||
|
soon. Miss Bingley said something of his never returning to Netherfield
|
||
|
again, of giving up the house, but not with any certainty. We had better
|
||
|
not mention it. I am extremely glad that you have such pleasant accounts
|
||
|
from our friends at Hunsford. Pray go to see them, with Sir William and
|
||
|
Maria. I am sure you will be very comfortable there.--Yours, etc."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This letter gave Elizabeth some pain; but her spirits returned as she
|
||
|
considered that Jane would no longer be duped, by the sister at least.
|
||
|
All expectation from the brother was now absolutely over. She would not
|
||
|
even wish for a renewal of his attentions. His character sunk on
|
||
|
every review of it; and as a punishment for him, as well as a possible
|
||
|
advantage to Jane, she seriously hoped he might really soon marry Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy's sister, as by Wickham's account, she would make him abundantly
|
||
|
regret what he had thrown away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner about this time reminded Elizabeth of her promise
|
||
|
concerning that gentleman, and required information; and Elizabeth
|
||
|
had such to send as might rather give contentment to her aunt than to
|
||
|
herself. His apparent partiality had subsided, his attentions were over,
|
||
|
he was the admirer of some one else. Elizabeth was watchful enough to
|
||
|
see it all, but she could see it and write of it without material pain.
|
||
|
Her heart had been but slightly touched, and her vanity was satisfied
|
||
|
with believing that _she_ would have been his only choice, had fortune
|
||
|
permitted it. The sudden acquisition of ten thousand pounds was the most
|
||
|
remarkable charm of the young lady to whom he was now rendering himself
|
||
|
agreeable; but Elizabeth, less clear-sighted perhaps in this case than
|
||
|
in Charlotte's, did not quarrel with him for his wish of independence.
|
||
|
Nothing, on the contrary, could be more natural; and while able to
|
||
|
suppose that it cost him a few struggles to relinquish her, she was
|
||
|
ready to allow it a wise and desirable measure for both, and could very
|
||
|
sincerely wish him happy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All this was acknowledged to Mrs. Gardiner; and after relating the
|
||
|
circumstances, she thus went on: "I am now convinced, my dear aunt, that
|
||
|
I have never been much in love; for had I really experienced that pure
|
||
|
and elevating passion, I should at present detest his very name, and
|
||
|
wish him all manner of evil. But my feelings are not only cordial
|
||
|
towards _him_; they are even impartial towards Miss King. I cannot find
|
||
|
out that I hate her at all, or that I am in the least unwilling to
|
||
|
think her a very good sort of girl. There can be no love in all this. My
|
||
|
watchfulness has been effectual; and though I certainly should be a more
|
||
|
interesting object to all my acquaintances were I distractedly in love
|
||
|
with him, I cannot say that I regret my comparative insignificance.
|
||
|
Importance may sometimes be purchased too dearly. Kitty and Lydia take
|
||
|
his defection much more to heart than I do. They are young in the
|
||
|
ways of the world, and not yet open to the mortifying conviction that
|
||
|
handsome young men must have something to live on as well as the plain."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 27
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
With no greater events than these in the Longbourn family, and otherwise
|
||
|
diversified by little beyond the walks to Meryton, sometimes dirty and
|
||
|
sometimes cold, did January and February pass away. March was to take
|
||
|
Elizabeth to Hunsford. She had not at first thought very seriously of
|
||
|
going thither; but Charlotte, she soon found, was depending on the plan
|
||
|
and she gradually learned to consider it herself with greater pleasure
|
||
|
as well as greater certainty. Absence had increased her desire of seeing
|
||
|
Charlotte again, and weakened her disgust of Mr. Collins. There
|
||
|
was novelty in the scheme, and as, with such a mother and such
|
||
|
uncompanionable sisters, home could not be faultless, a little change
|
||
|
was not unwelcome for its own sake. The journey would moreover give her
|
||
|
a peep at Jane; and, in short, as the time drew near, she would have
|
||
|
been very sorry for any delay. Everything, however, went on smoothly,
|
||
|
and was finally settled according to Charlotte's first sketch. She was
|
||
|
to accompany Sir William and his second daughter. The improvement
|
||
|
of spending a night in London was added in time, and the plan became
|
||
|
perfect as plan could be.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The only pain was in leaving her father, who would certainly miss her,
|
||
|
and who, when it came to the point, so little liked her going, that he
|
||
|
told her to write to him, and almost promised to answer her letter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The farewell between herself and Mr. Wickham was perfectly friendly; on
|
||
|
his side even more. His present pursuit could not make him forget that
|
||
|
Elizabeth had been the first to excite and to deserve his attention, the
|
||
|
first to listen and to pity, the first to be admired; and in his manner
|
||
|
of bidding her adieu, wishing her every enjoyment, reminding her of
|
||
|
what she was to expect in Lady Catherine de Bourgh, and trusting their
|
||
|
opinion of her--their opinion of everybody--would always coincide, there
|
||
|
was a solicitude, an interest which she felt must ever attach her to
|
||
|
him with a most sincere regard; and she parted from him convinced that,
|
||
|
whether married or single, he must always be her model of the amiable
|
||
|
and pleasing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her fellow-travellers the next day were not of a kind to make her
|
||
|
think him less agreeable. Sir William Lucas, and his daughter Maria, a
|
||
|
good-humoured girl, but as empty-headed as himself, had nothing to say
|
||
|
that could be worth hearing, and were listened to with about as much
|
||
|
delight as the rattle of the chaise. Elizabeth loved absurdities, but
|
||
|
she had known Sir William's too long. He could tell her nothing new of
|
||
|
the wonders of his presentation and knighthood; and his civilities were
|
||
|
worn out, like his information.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a journey of only twenty-four miles, and they began it so early
|
||
|
as to be in Gracechurch Street by noon. As they drove to Mr. Gardiner's
|
||
|
door, Jane was at a drawing-room window watching their arrival; when
|
||
|
they entered the passage she was there to welcome them, and Elizabeth,
|
||
|
looking earnestly in her face, was pleased to see it healthful and
|
||
|
lovely as ever. On the stairs were a troop of little boys and girls,
|
||
|
whose eagerness for their cousin's appearance would not allow them to
|
||
|
wait in the drawing-room, and whose shyness, as they had not seen
|
||
|
her for a twelvemonth, prevented their coming lower. All was joy and
|
||
|
kindness. The day passed most pleasantly away; the morning in bustle and
|
||
|
shopping, and the evening at one of the theatres.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth then contrived to sit by her aunt. Their first object was her
|
||
|
sister; and she was more grieved than astonished to hear, in reply to
|
||
|
her minute inquiries, that though Jane always struggled to support her
|
||
|
spirits, there were periods of dejection. It was reasonable, however,
|
||
|
to hope that they would not continue long. Mrs. Gardiner gave her the
|
||
|
particulars also of Miss Bingley's visit in Gracechurch Street, and
|
||
|
repeated conversations occurring at different times between Jane and
|
||
|
herself, which proved that the former had, from her heart, given up the
|
||
|
acquaintance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner then rallied her niece on Wickham's desertion, and
|
||
|
complimented her on bearing it so well.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But my dear Elizabeth," she added, "what sort of girl is Miss King? I
|
||
|
should be sorry to think our friend mercenary."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pray, my dear aunt, what is the difference in matrimonial affairs,
|
||
|
between the mercenary and the prudent motive? Where does discretion end,
|
||
|
and avarice begin? Last Christmas you were afraid of his marrying me,
|
||
|
because it would be imprudent; and now, because he is trying to get
|
||
|
a girl with only ten thousand pounds, you want to find out that he is
|
||
|
mercenary."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you will only tell me what sort of girl Miss King is, I shall know
|
||
|
what to think."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is a very good kind of girl, I believe. I know no harm of her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But he paid her not the smallest attention till her grandfather's death
|
||
|
made her mistress of this fortune."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No--why should he? If it were not allowable for him to gain _my_
|
||
|
affections because I had no money, what occasion could there be for
|
||
|
making love to a girl whom he did not care about, and who was equally
|
||
|
poor?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But there seems an indelicacy in directing his attentions towards her
|
||
|
so soon after this event."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A man in distressed circumstances has not time for all those elegant
|
||
|
decorums which other people may observe. If _she_ does not object to it,
|
||
|
why should _we_?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_Her_ not objecting does not justify _him_. It only shows her being
|
||
|
deficient in something herself--sense or feeling."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," cried Elizabeth, "have it as you choose. _He_ shall be
|
||
|
mercenary, and _she_ shall be foolish."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, Lizzy, that is what I do _not_ choose. I should be sorry, you know,
|
||
|
to think ill of a young man who has lived so long in Derbyshire."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! if that is all, I have a very poor opinion of young men who live in
|
||
|
Derbyshire; and their intimate friends who live in Hertfordshire are not
|
||
|
much better. I am sick of them all. Thank Heaven! I am going to-morrow
|
||
|
where I shall find a man who has not one agreeable quality, who has
|
||
|
neither manner nor sense to recommend him. Stupid men are the only ones
|
||
|
worth knowing, after all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Take care, Lizzy; that speech savours strongly of disappointment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Before they were separated by the conclusion of the play, she had the
|
||
|
unexpected happiness of an invitation to accompany her uncle and aunt in
|
||
|
a tour of pleasure which they proposed taking in the summer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We have not determined how far it shall carry us," said Mrs. Gardiner,
|
||
|
"but, perhaps, to the Lakes."
|
||
|
|
||
|
No scheme could have been more agreeable to Elizabeth, and her
|
||
|
acceptance of the invitation was most ready and grateful. "Oh, my dear,
|
||
|
dear aunt," she rapturously cried, "what delight! what felicity! You
|
||
|
give me fresh life and vigour. Adieu to disappointment and spleen. What
|
||
|
are young men to rocks and mountains? Oh! what hours of transport
|
||
|
we shall spend! And when we _do_ return, it shall not be like other
|
||
|
travellers, without being able to give one accurate idea of anything. We
|
||
|
_will_ know where we have gone--we _will_ recollect what we have seen.
|
||
|
Lakes, mountains, and rivers shall not be jumbled together in our
|
||
|
imaginations; nor when we attempt to describe any particular scene,
|
||
|
will we begin quarreling about its relative situation. Let _our_
|
||
|
first effusions be less insupportable than those of the generality of
|
||
|
travellers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 28
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Every object in the next day's journey was new and interesting to
|
||
|
Elizabeth; and her spirits were in a state of enjoyment; for she had
|
||
|
seen her sister looking so well as to banish all fear for her health,
|
||
|
and the prospect of her northern tour was a constant source of delight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When they left the high road for the lane to Hunsford, every eye was in
|
||
|
search of the Parsonage, and every turning expected to bring it in view.
|
||
|
The palings of Rosings Park was their boundary on one side. Elizabeth
|
||
|
smiled at the recollection of all that she had heard of its inhabitants.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length the Parsonage was discernible. The garden sloping to the
|
||
|
road, the house standing in it, the green pales, and the laurel hedge,
|
||
|
everything declared they were arriving. Mr. Collins and Charlotte
|
||
|
appeared at the door, and the carriage stopped at the small gate which
|
||
|
led by a short gravel walk to the house, amidst the nods and smiles of
|
||
|
the whole party. In a moment they were all out of the chaise, rejoicing
|
||
|
at the sight of each other. Mrs. Collins welcomed her friend with the
|
||
|
liveliest pleasure, and Elizabeth was more and more satisfied with
|
||
|
coming when she found herself so affectionately received. She saw
|
||
|
instantly that her cousin's manners were not altered by his marriage;
|
||
|
his formal civility was just what it had been, and he detained her some
|
||
|
minutes at the gate to hear and satisfy his inquiries after all her
|
||
|
family. They were then, with no other delay than his pointing out the
|
||
|
neatness of the entrance, taken into the house; and as soon as they
|
||
|
were in the parlour, he welcomed them a second time, with ostentatious
|
||
|
formality to his humble abode, and punctually repeated all his wife's
|
||
|
offers of refreshment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was prepared to see him in his glory; and she could not help
|
||
|
in fancying that in displaying the good proportion of the room, its
|
||
|
aspect and its furniture, he addressed himself particularly to her,
|
||
|
as if wishing to make her feel what she had lost in refusing him. But
|
||
|
though everything seemed neat and comfortable, she was not able to
|
||
|
gratify him by any sigh of repentance, and rather looked with wonder at
|
||
|
her friend that she could have so cheerful an air with such a companion.
|
||
|
When Mr. Collins said anything of which his wife might reasonably be
|
||
|
ashamed, which certainly was not unseldom, she involuntarily turned her
|
||
|
eye on Charlotte. Once or twice she could discern a faint blush; but
|
||
|
in general Charlotte wisely did not hear. After sitting long enough to
|
||
|
admire every article of furniture in the room, from the sideboard to
|
||
|
the fender, to give an account of their journey, and of all that had
|
||
|
happened in London, Mr. Collins invited them to take a stroll in the
|
||
|
garden, which was large and well laid out, and to the cultivation of
|
||
|
which he attended himself. To work in this garden was one of his most
|
||
|
respectable pleasures; and Elizabeth admired the command of countenance
|
||
|
with which Charlotte talked of the healthfulness of the exercise, and
|
||
|
owned she encouraged it as much as possible. Here, leading the way
|
||
|
through every walk and cross walk, and scarcely allowing them an
|
||
|
interval to utter the praises he asked for, every view was pointed out
|
||
|
with a minuteness which left beauty entirely behind. He could number the
|
||
|
fields in every direction, and could tell how many trees there were in
|
||
|
the most distant clump. But of all the views which his garden, or which
|
||
|
the country or kingdom could boast, none were to be compared with the
|
||
|
prospect of Rosings, afforded by an opening in the trees that bordered
|
||
|
the park nearly opposite the front of his house. It was a handsome
|
||
|
modern building, well situated on rising ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From his garden, Mr. Collins would have led them round his two meadows;
|
||
|
but the ladies, not having shoes to encounter the remains of a white
|
||
|
frost, turned back; and while Sir William accompanied him, Charlotte
|
||
|
took her sister and friend over the house, extremely well pleased,
|
||
|
probably, to have the opportunity of showing it without her husband's
|
||
|
help. It was rather small, but well built and convenient; and everything
|
||
|
was fitted up and arranged with a neatness and consistency of which
|
||
|
Elizabeth gave Charlotte all the credit. When Mr. Collins could be
|
||
|
forgotten, there was really an air of great comfort throughout, and by
|
||
|
Charlotte's evident enjoyment of it, Elizabeth supposed he must be often
|
||
|
forgotten.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She had already learnt that Lady Catherine was still in the country. It
|
||
|
was spoken of again while they were at dinner, when Mr. Collins joining
|
||
|
in, observed:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, Miss Elizabeth, you will have the honour of seeing Lady Catherine
|
||
|
de Bourgh on the ensuing Sunday at church, and I need not say you will
|
||
|
be delighted with her. She is all affability and condescension, and I
|
||
|
doubt not but you will be honoured with some portion of her notice
|
||
|
when service is over. I have scarcely any hesitation in saying she
|
||
|
will include you and my sister Maria in every invitation with which she
|
||
|
honours us during your stay here. Her behaviour to my dear Charlotte is
|
||
|
charming. We dine at Rosings twice every week, and are never allowed
|
||
|
to walk home. Her ladyship's carriage is regularly ordered for us. I
|
||
|
_should_ say, one of her ladyship's carriages, for she has several."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lady Catherine is a very respectable, sensible woman indeed," added
|
||
|
Charlotte, "and a most attentive neighbour."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very true, my dear, that is exactly what I say. She is the sort of
|
||
|
woman whom one cannot regard with too much deference."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The evening was spent chiefly in talking over Hertfordshire news,
|
||
|
and telling again what had already been written; and when it closed,
|
||
|
Elizabeth, in the solitude of her chamber, had to meditate upon
|
||
|
Charlotte's degree of contentment, to understand her address in guiding,
|
||
|
and composure in bearing with, her husband, and to acknowledge that it
|
||
|
was all done very well. She had also to anticipate how her visit
|
||
|
would pass, the quiet tenor of their usual employments, the vexatious
|
||
|
interruptions of Mr. Collins, and the gaieties of their intercourse with
|
||
|
Rosings. A lively imagination soon settled it all.
|
||
|
|
||
|
About the middle of the next day, as she was in her room getting ready
|
||
|
for a walk, a sudden noise below seemed to speak the whole house in
|
||
|
confusion; and, after listening a moment, she heard somebody running
|
||
|
up stairs in a violent hurry, and calling loudly after her. She opened
|
||
|
the door and met Maria in the landing place, who, breathless with
|
||
|
agitation, cried out--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, my dear Eliza! pray make haste and come into the dining-room, for
|
||
|
there is such a sight to be seen! I will not tell you what it is. Make
|
||
|
haste, and come down this moment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth asked questions in vain; Maria would tell her nothing more,
|
||
|
and down they ran into the dining-room, which fronted the lane, in
|
||
|
quest of this wonder; It was two ladies stopping in a low phaeton at the
|
||
|
garden gate.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And is this all?" cried Elizabeth. "I expected at least that the pigs
|
||
|
were got into the garden, and here is nothing but Lady Catherine and her
|
||
|
daughter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"La! my dear," said Maria, quite shocked at the mistake, "it is not
|
||
|
Lady Catherine. The old lady is Mrs. Jenkinson, who lives with them;
|
||
|
the other is Miss de Bourgh. Only look at her. She is quite a little
|
||
|
creature. Who would have thought that she could be so thin and small?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is abominably rude to keep Charlotte out of doors in all this wind.
|
||
|
Why does she not come in?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, Charlotte says she hardly ever does. It is the greatest of favours
|
||
|
when Miss de Bourgh comes in."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I like her appearance," said Elizabeth, struck with other ideas. "She
|
||
|
looks sickly and cross. Yes, she will do for him very well. She will
|
||
|
make him a very proper wife."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins and Charlotte were both standing at the gate in conversation
|
||
|
with the ladies; and Sir William, to Elizabeth's high diversion, was
|
||
|
stationed in the doorway, in earnest contemplation of the greatness
|
||
|
before him, and constantly bowing whenever Miss de Bourgh looked that
|
||
|
way.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length there was nothing more to be said; the ladies drove on, and
|
||
|
the others returned into the house. Mr. Collins no sooner saw the two
|
||
|
girls than he began to congratulate them on their good fortune, which
|
||
|
Charlotte explained by letting them know that the whole party was asked
|
||
|
to dine at Rosings the next day.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 29
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins's triumph, in consequence of this invitation, was complete.
|
||
|
The power of displaying the grandeur of his patroness to his wondering
|
||
|
visitors, and of letting them see her civility towards himself and his
|
||
|
wife, was exactly what he had wished for; and that an opportunity
|
||
|
of doing it should be given so soon, was such an instance of Lady
|
||
|
Catherine's condescension, as he knew not how to admire enough.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I confess," said he, "that I should not have been at all surprised by
|
||
|
her ladyship's asking us on Sunday to drink tea and spend the evening at
|
||
|
Rosings. I rather expected, from my knowledge of her affability, that it
|
||
|
would happen. But who could have foreseen such an attention as this? Who
|
||
|
could have imagined that we should receive an invitation to dine there
|
||
|
(an invitation, moreover, including the whole party) so immediately
|
||
|
after your arrival!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am the less surprised at what has happened," replied Sir William,
|
||
|
"from that knowledge of what the manners of the great really are, which
|
||
|
my situation in life has allowed me to acquire. About the court, such
|
||
|
instances of elegant breeding are not uncommon."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Scarcely anything was talked of the whole day or next morning but their
|
||
|
visit to Rosings. Mr. Collins was carefully instructing them in what
|
||
|
they were to expect, that the sight of such rooms, so many servants, and
|
||
|
so splendid a dinner, might not wholly overpower them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the ladies were separating for the toilette, he said to Elizabeth--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do not make yourself uneasy, my dear cousin, about your apparel. Lady
|
||
|
Catherine is far from requiring that elegance of dress in us which
|
||
|
becomes herself and her daughter. I would advise you merely to put on
|
||
|
whatever of your clothes is superior to the rest--there is no occasion
|
||
|
for anything more. Lady Catherine will not think the worse of you
|
||
|
for being simply dressed. She likes to have the distinction of rank
|
||
|
preserved."
|
||
|
|
||
|
While they were dressing, he came two or three times to their different
|
||
|
doors, to recommend their being quick, as Lady Catherine very much
|
||
|
objected to be kept waiting for her dinner. Such formidable accounts of
|
||
|
her ladyship, and her manner of living, quite frightened Maria Lucas
|
||
|
who had been little used to company, and she looked forward to her
|
||
|
introduction at Rosings with as much apprehension as her father had done
|
||
|
to his presentation at St. James's.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As the weather was fine, they had a pleasant walk of about half a
|
||
|
mile across the park. Every park has its beauty and its prospects; and
|
||
|
Elizabeth saw much to be pleased with, though she could not be in such
|
||
|
raptures as Mr. Collins expected the scene to inspire, and was but
|
||
|
slightly affected by his enumeration of the windows in front of the
|
||
|
house, and his relation of what the glazing altogether had originally
|
||
|
cost Sir Lewis de Bourgh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When they ascended the steps to the hall, Maria's alarm was every
|
||
|
moment increasing, and even Sir William did not look perfectly calm.
|
||
|
Elizabeth's courage did not fail her. She had heard nothing of Lady
|
||
|
Catherine that spoke her awful from any extraordinary talents or
|
||
|
miraculous virtue, and the mere stateliness of money or rank she thought
|
||
|
she could witness without trepidation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From the entrance-hall, of which Mr. Collins pointed out, with a
|
||
|
rapturous air, the fine proportion and the finished ornaments, they
|
||
|
followed the servants through an ante-chamber, to the room where Lady
|
||
|
Catherine, her daughter, and Mrs. Jenkinson were sitting. Her ladyship,
|
||
|
with great condescension, arose to receive them; and as Mrs. Collins had
|
||
|
settled it with her husband that the office of introduction should
|
||
|
be hers, it was performed in a proper manner, without any of those
|
||
|
apologies and thanks which he would have thought necessary.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In spite of having been at St. James's Sir William was so completely
|
||
|
awed by the grandeur surrounding him, that he had but just courage
|
||
|
enough to make a very low bow, and take his seat without saying a word;
|
||
|
and his daughter, frightened almost out of her senses, sat on the edge
|
||
|
of her chair, not knowing which way to look. Elizabeth found herself
|
||
|
quite equal to the scene, and could observe the three ladies before her
|
||
|
composedly. Lady Catherine was a tall, large woman, with strongly-marked
|
||
|
features, which might once have been handsome. Her air was not
|
||
|
conciliating, nor was her manner of receiving them such as to make her
|
||
|
visitors forget their inferior rank. She was not rendered formidable by
|
||
|
silence; but whatever she said was spoken in so authoritative a tone,
|
||
|
as marked her self-importance, and brought Mr. Wickham immediately to
|
||
|
Elizabeth's mind; and from the observation of the day altogether, she
|
||
|
believed Lady Catherine to be exactly what he represented.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When, after examining the mother, in whose countenance and deportment
|
||
|
she soon found some resemblance of Mr. Darcy, she turned her eyes on the
|
||
|
daughter, she could almost have joined in Maria's astonishment at her
|
||
|
being so thin and so small. There was neither in figure nor face any
|
||
|
likeness between the ladies. Miss de Bourgh was pale and sickly; her
|
||
|
features, though not plain, were insignificant; and she spoke very
|
||
|
little, except in a low voice, to Mrs. Jenkinson, in whose appearance
|
||
|
there was nothing remarkable, and who was entirely engaged in listening
|
||
|
to what she said, and placing a screen in the proper direction before
|
||
|
her eyes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After sitting a few minutes, they were all sent to one of the windows to
|
||
|
admire the view, Mr. Collins attending them to point out its beauties,
|
||
|
and Lady Catherine kindly informing them that it was much better worth
|
||
|
looking at in the summer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The dinner was exceedingly handsome, and there were all the servants and
|
||
|
all the articles of plate which Mr. Collins had promised; and, as he had
|
||
|
likewise foretold, he took his seat at the bottom of the table, by her
|
||
|
ladyship's desire, and looked as if he felt that life could furnish
|
||
|
nothing greater. He carved, and ate, and praised with delighted
|
||
|
alacrity; and every dish was commended, first by him and then by Sir
|
||
|
William, who was now enough recovered to echo whatever his son-in-law
|
||
|
said, in a manner which Elizabeth wondered Lady Catherine could bear.
|
||
|
But Lady Catherine seemed gratified by their excessive admiration, and
|
||
|
gave most gracious smiles, especially when any dish on the table proved
|
||
|
a novelty to them. The party did not supply much conversation. Elizabeth
|
||
|
was ready to speak whenever there was an opening, but she was seated
|
||
|
between Charlotte and Miss de Bourgh--the former of whom was engaged in
|
||
|
listening to Lady Catherine, and the latter said not a word to her all
|
||
|
dinner-time. Mrs. Jenkinson was chiefly employed in watching how little
|
||
|
Miss de Bourgh ate, pressing her to try some other dish, and fearing
|
||
|
she was indisposed. Maria thought speaking out of the question, and the
|
||
|
gentlemen did nothing but eat and admire.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the ladies returned to the drawing-room, there was little to
|
||
|
be done but to hear Lady Catherine talk, which she did without any
|
||
|
intermission till coffee came in, delivering her opinion on every
|
||
|
subject in so decisive a manner, as proved that she was not used to
|
||
|
have her judgement controverted. She inquired into Charlotte's domestic
|
||
|
concerns familiarly and minutely, gave her a great deal of advice as
|
||
|
to the management of them all; told her how everything ought to be
|
||
|
regulated in so small a family as hers, and instructed her as to the
|
||
|
care of her cows and her poultry. Elizabeth found that nothing was
|
||
|
beneath this great lady's attention, which could furnish her with an
|
||
|
occasion of dictating to others. In the intervals of her discourse
|
||
|
with Mrs. Collins, she addressed a variety of questions to Maria and
|
||
|
Elizabeth, but especially to the latter, of whose connections she knew
|
||
|
the least, and who she observed to Mrs. Collins was a very genteel,
|
||
|
pretty kind of girl. She asked her, at different times, how many sisters
|
||
|
she had, whether they were older or younger than herself, whether any of
|
||
|
them were likely to be married, whether they were handsome, where they
|
||
|
had been educated, what carriage her father kept, and what had been
|
||
|
her mother's maiden name? Elizabeth felt all the impertinence of
|
||
|
her questions but answered them very composedly. Lady Catherine then
|
||
|
observed,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your father's estate is entailed on Mr. Collins, I think. For your
|
||
|
sake," turning to Charlotte, "I am glad of it; but otherwise I see no
|
||
|
occasion for entailing estates from the female line. It was not thought
|
||
|
necessary in Sir Lewis de Bourgh's family. Do you play and sing, Miss
|
||
|
Bennet?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A little."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! then--some time or other we shall be happy to hear you. Our
|
||
|
instrument is a capital one, probably superior to----You shall try it
|
||
|
some day. Do your sisters play and sing?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"One of them does."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why did not you all learn? You ought all to have learned. The Miss
|
||
|
Webbs all play, and their father has not so good an income as yours. Do
|
||
|
you draw?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, not at all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, none of you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not one."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is very strange. But I suppose you had no opportunity. Your mother
|
||
|
should have taken you to town every spring for the benefit of masters."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My mother would have had no objection, but my father hates London."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Has your governess left you?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We never had any governess."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No governess! How was that possible? Five daughters brought up at home
|
||
|
without a governess! I never heard of such a thing. Your mother must
|
||
|
have been quite a slave to your education."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could hardly help smiling as she assured her that had not been
|
||
|
the case.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then, who taught you? who attended to you? Without a governess, you
|
||
|
must have been neglected."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Compared with some families, I believe we were; but such of us as
|
||
|
wished to learn never wanted the means. We were always encouraged to
|
||
|
read, and had all the masters that were necessary. Those who chose to be
|
||
|
idle, certainly might."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Aye, no doubt; but that is what a governess will prevent, and if I had
|
||
|
known your mother, I should have advised her most strenuously to engage
|
||
|
one. I always say that nothing is to be done in education without steady
|
||
|
and regular instruction, and nobody but a governess can give it. It is
|
||
|
wonderful how many families I have been the means of supplying in that
|
||
|
way. I am always glad to get a young person well placed out. Four nieces
|
||
|
of Mrs. Jenkinson are most delightfully situated through my means; and
|
||
|
it was but the other day that I recommended another young person,
|
||
|
who was merely accidentally mentioned to me, and the family are quite
|
||
|
delighted with her. Mrs. Collins, did I tell you of Lady Metcalf's
|
||
|
calling yesterday to thank me? She finds Miss Pope a treasure. 'Lady
|
||
|
Catherine,' said she, 'you have given me a treasure.' Are any of your
|
||
|
younger sisters out, Miss Bennet?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, ma'am, all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"All! What, all five out at once? Very odd! And you only the second. The
|
||
|
younger ones out before the elder ones are married! Your younger sisters
|
||
|
must be very young?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, my youngest is not sixteen. Perhaps _she_ is full young to be
|
||
|
much in company. But really, ma'am, I think it would be very hard upon
|
||
|
younger sisters, that they should not have their share of society and
|
||
|
amusement, because the elder may not have the means or inclination to
|
||
|
marry early. The last-born has as good a right to the pleasures of youth
|
||
|
at the first. And to be kept back on _such_ a motive! I think it would
|
||
|
not be very likely to promote sisterly affection or delicacy of mind."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Upon my word," said her ladyship, "you give your opinion very decidedly
|
||
|
for so young a person. Pray, what is your age?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With three younger sisters grown up," replied Elizabeth, smiling, "your
|
||
|
ladyship can hardly expect me to own it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Catherine seemed quite astonished at not receiving a direct answer;
|
||
|
and Elizabeth suspected herself to be the first creature who had ever
|
||
|
dared to trifle with so much dignified impertinence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You cannot be more than twenty, I am sure, therefore you need not
|
||
|
conceal your age."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am not one-and-twenty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the gentlemen had joined them, and tea was over, the card-tables
|
||
|
were placed. Lady Catherine, Sir William, and Mr. and Mrs. Collins sat
|
||
|
down to quadrille; and as Miss de Bourgh chose to play at cassino, the
|
||
|
two girls had the honour of assisting Mrs. Jenkinson to make up her
|
||
|
party. Their table was superlatively stupid. Scarcely a syllable was
|
||
|
uttered that did not relate to the game, except when Mrs. Jenkinson
|
||
|
expressed her fears of Miss de Bourgh's being too hot or too cold, or
|
||
|
having too much or too little light. A great deal more passed at the
|
||
|
other table. Lady Catherine was generally speaking--stating the mistakes
|
||
|
of the three others, or relating some anecdote of herself. Mr. Collins
|
||
|
was employed in agreeing to everything her ladyship said, thanking her
|
||
|
for every fish he won, and apologising if he thought he won too many.
|
||
|
Sir William did not say much. He was storing his memory with anecdotes
|
||
|
and noble names.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When Lady Catherine and her daughter had played as long as they chose,
|
||
|
the tables were broken up, the carriage was offered to Mrs. Collins,
|
||
|
gratefully accepted and immediately ordered. The party then gathered
|
||
|
round the fire to hear Lady Catherine determine what weather they were
|
||
|
to have on the morrow. From these instructions they were summoned by
|
||
|
the arrival of the coach; and with many speeches of thankfulness on Mr.
|
||
|
Collins's side and as many bows on Sir William's they departed. As soon
|
||
|
as they had driven from the door, Elizabeth was called on by her cousin
|
||
|
to give her opinion of all that she had seen at Rosings, which, for
|
||
|
Charlotte's sake, she made more favourable than it really was. But her
|
||
|
commendation, though costing her some trouble, could by no means satisfy
|
||
|
Mr. Collins, and he was very soon obliged to take her ladyship's praise
|
||
|
into his own hands.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 30
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Sir William stayed only a week at Hunsford, but his visit was long
|
||
|
enough to convince him of his daughter's being most comfortably settled,
|
||
|
and of her possessing such a husband and such a neighbour as were not
|
||
|
often met with. While Sir William was with them, Mr. Collins devoted his
|
||
|
morning to driving him out in his gig, and showing him the country; but
|
||
|
when he went away, the whole family returned to their usual employments,
|
||
|
and Elizabeth was thankful to find that they did not see more of her
|
||
|
cousin by the alteration, for the chief of the time between breakfast
|
||
|
and dinner was now passed by him either at work in the garden or in
|
||
|
reading and writing, and looking out of the window in his own book-room,
|
||
|
which fronted the road. The room in which the ladies sat was backwards.
|
||
|
Elizabeth had at first rather wondered that Charlotte should not prefer
|
||
|
the dining-parlour for common use; it was a better sized room, and had a
|
||
|
more pleasant aspect; but she soon saw that her friend had an excellent
|
||
|
reason for what she did, for Mr. Collins would undoubtedly have been
|
||
|
much less in his own apartment, had they sat in one equally lively; and
|
||
|
she gave Charlotte credit for the arrangement.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From the drawing-room they could distinguish nothing in the lane, and
|
||
|
were indebted to Mr. Collins for the knowledge of what carriages went
|
||
|
along, and how often especially Miss de Bourgh drove by in her phaeton,
|
||
|
which he never failed coming to inform them of, though it happened
|
||
|
almost every day. She not unfrequently stopped at the Parsonage, and
|
||
|
had a few minutes' conversation with Charlotte, but was scarcely ever
|
||
|
prevailed upon to get out.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Very few days passed in which Mr. Collins did not walk to Rosings, and
|
||
|
not many in which his wife did not think it necessary to go likewise;
|
||
|
and till Elizabeth recollected that there might be other family livings
|
||
|
to be disposed of, she could not understand the sacrifice of so many
|
||
|
hours. Now and then they were honoured with a call from her ladyship,
|
||
|
and nothing escaped her observation that was passing in the room during
|
||
|
these visits. She examined into their employments, looked at their work,
|
||
|
and advised them to do it differently; found fault with the arrangement
|
||
|
of the furniture; or detected the housemaid in negligence; and if she
|
||
|
accepted any refreshment, seemed to do it only for the sake of finding
|
||
|
out that Mrs. Collins's joints of meat were too large for her family.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth soon perceived, that though this great lady was not in
|
||
|
commission of the peace of the county, she was a most active magistrate
|
||
|
in her own parish, the minutest concerns of which were carried to her
|
||
|
by Mr. Collins; and whenever any of the cottagers were disposed to
|
||
|
be quarrelsome, discontented, or too poor, she sallied forth into the
|
||
|
village to settle their differences, silence their complaints, and scold
|
||
|
them into harmony and plenty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The entertainment of dining at Rosings was repeated about twice a week;
|
||
|
and, allowing for the loss of Sir William, and there being only one
|
||
|
card-table in the evening, every such entertainment was the counterpart
|
||
|
of the first. Their other engagements were few, as the style of living
|
||
|
in the neighbourhood in general was beyond Mr. Collins's reach. This,
|
||
|
however, was no evil to Elizabeth, and upon the whole she spent her time
|
||
|
comfortably enough; there were half-hours of pleasant conversation with
|
||
|
Charlotte, and the weather was so fine for the time of year that she had
|
||
|
often great enjoyment out of doors. Her favourite walk, and where she
|
||
|
frequently went while the others were calling on Lady Catherine, was
|
||
|
along the open grove which edged that side of the park, where there was
|
||
|
a nice sheltered path, which no one seemed to value but herself, and
|
||
|
where she felt beyond the reach of Lady Catherine's curiosity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In this quiet way, the first fortnight of her visit soon passed away.
|
||
|
Easter was approaching, and the week preceding it was to bring an
|
||
|
addition to the family at Rosings, which in so small a circle must be
|
||
|
important. Elizabeth had heard soon after her arrival that Mr. Darcy was
|
||
|
expected there in the course of a few weeks, and though there were not
|
||
|
many of her acquaintances whom she did not prefer, his coming would
|
||
|
furnish one comparatively new to look at in their Rosings parties, and
|
||
|
she might be amused in seeing how hopeless Miss Bingley's designs on him
|
||
|
were, by his behaviour to his cousin, for whom he was evidently
|
||
|
destined by Lady Catherine, who talked of his coming with the greatest
|
||
|
satisfaction, spoke of him in terms of the highest admiration, and
|
||
|
seemed almost angry to find that he had already been frequently seen by
|
||
|
Miss Lucas and herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His arrival was soon known at the Parsonage; for Mr. Collins was walking
|
||
|
the whole morning within view of the lodges opening into Hunsford Lane,
|
||
|
in order to have the earliest assurance of it, and after making his
|
||
|
bow as the carriage turned into the Park, hurried home with the great
|
||
|
intelligence. On the following morning he hastened to Rosings to pay his
|
||
|
respects. There were two nephews of Lady Catherine to require them, for
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy had brought with him a Colonel Fitzwilliam, the younger son of
|
||
|
his uncle Lord ----, and, to the great surprise of all the party, when
|
||
|
Mr. Collins returned, the gentlemen accompanied him. Charlotte had seen
|
||
|
them from her husband's room, crossing the road, and immediately running
|
||
|
into the other, told the girls what an honour they might expect, adding:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I may thank you, Eliza, for this piece of civility. Mr. Darcy would
|
||
|
never have come so soon to wait upon me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth had scarcely time to disclaim all right to the compliment,
|
||
|
before their approach was announced by the door-bell, and shortly
|
||
|
afterwards the three gentlemen entered the room. Colonel Fitzwilliam,
|
||
|
who led the way, was about thirty, not handsome, but in person and
|
||
|
address most truly the gentleman. Mr. Darcy looked just as he had been
|
||
|
used to look in Hertfordshire--paid his compliments, with his usual
|
||
|
reserve, to Mrs. Collins, and whatever might be his feelings toward her
|
||
|
friend, met her with every appearance of composure. Elizabeth merely
|
||
|
curtseyed to him without saying a word.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Colonel Fitzwilliam entered into conversation directly with the
|
||
|
readiness and ease of a well-bred man, and talked very pleasantly; but
|
||
|
his cousin, after having addressed a slight observation on the house and
|
||
|
garden to Mrs. Collins, sat for some time without speaking to anybody.
|
||
|
At length, however, his civility was so far awakened as to inquire of
|
||
|
Elizabeth after the health of her family. She answered him in the usual
|
||
|
way, and after a moment's pause, added:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My eldest sister has been in town these three months. Have you never
|
||
|
happened to see her there?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was perfectly sensible that he never had; but she wished to see
|
||
|
whether he would betray any consciousness of what had passed between
|
||
|
the Bingleys and Jane, and she thought he looked a little confused as he
|
||
|
answered that he had never been so fortunate as to meet Miss Bennet. The
|
||
|
subject was pursued no farther, and the gentlemen soon afterwards went
|
||
|
away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 31
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Colonel Fitzwilliam's manners were very much admired at the Parsonage,
|
||
|
and the ladies all felt that he must add considerably to the pleasures
|
||
|
of their engagements at Rosings. It was some days, however, before they
|
||
|
received any invitation thither--for while there were visitors in the
|
||
|
house, they could not be necessary; and it was not till Easter-day,
|
||
|
almost a week after the gentlemen's arrival, that they were honoured by
|
||
|
such an attention, and then they were merely asked on leaving church to
|
||
|
come there in the evening. For the last week they had seen very little
|
||
|
of Lady Catherine or her daughter. Colonel Fitzwilliam had called at the
|
||
|
Parsonage more than once during the time, but Mr. Darcy they had seen
|
||
|
only at church.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The invitation was accepted of course, and at a proper hour they joined
|
||
|
the party in Lady Catherine's drawing-room. Her ladyship received
|
||
|
them civilly, but it was plain that their company was by no means so
|
||
|
acceptable as when she could get nobody else; and she was, in fact,
|
||
|
almost engrossed by her nephews, speaking to them, especially to Darcy,
|
||
|
much more than to any other person in the room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Colonel Fitzwilliam seemed really glad to see them; anything was a
|
||
|
welcome relief to him at Rosings; and Mrs. Collins's pretty friend had
|
||
|
moreover caught his fancy very much. He now seated himself by her, and
|
||
|
talked so agreeably of Kent and Hertfordshire, of travelling and staying
|
||
|
at home, of new books and music, that Elizabeth had never been half so
|
||
|
well entertained in that room before; and they conversed with so much
|
||
|
spirit and flow, as to draw the attention of Lady Catherine herself,
|
||
|
as well as of Mr. Darcy. _His_ eyes had been soon and repeatedly turned
|
||
|
towards them with a look of curiosity; and that her ladyship, after a
|
||
|
while, shared the feeling, was more openly acknowledged, for she did not
|
||
|
scruple to call out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is that you are saying, Fitzwilliam? What is it you are talking
|
||
|
of? What are you telling Miss Bennet? Let me hear what it is."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We are speaking of music, madam," said he, when no longer able to avoid
|
||
|
a reply.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of music! Then pray speak aloud. It is of all subjects my delight. I
|
||
|
must have my share in the conversation if you are speaking of music.
|
||
|
There are few people in England, I suppose, who have more true enjoyment
|
||
|
of music than myself, or a better natural taste. If I had ever learnt,
|
||
|
I should have been a great proficient. And so would Anne, if her health
|
||
|
had allowed her to apply. I am confident that she would have performed
|
||
|
delightfully. How does Georgiana get on, Darcy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy spoke with affectionate praise of his sister's proficiency.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am very glad to hear such a good account of her," said Lady
|
||
|
Catherine; "and pray tell her from me, that she cannot expect to excel
|
||
|
if she does not practice a good deal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I assure you, madam," he replied, "that she does not need such advice.
|
||
|
She practises very constantly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"So much the better. It cannot be done too much; and when I next write
|
||
|
to her, I shall charge her not to neglect it on any account. I often
|
||
|
tell young ladies that no excellence in music is to be acquired without
|
||
|
constant practice. I have told Miss Bennet several times, that she
|
||
|
will never play really well unless she practises more; and though Mrs.
|
||
|
Collins has no instrument, she is very welcome, as I have often told
|
||
|
her, to come to Rosings every day, and play on the pianoforte in Mrs.
|
||
|
Jenkinson's room. She would be in nobody's way, you know, in that part
|
||
|
of the house."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy looked a little ashamed of his aunt's ill-breeding, and made
|
||
|
no answer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When coffee was over, Colonel Fitzwilliam reminded Elizabeth of having
|
||
|
promised to play to him; and she sat down directly to the instrument. He
|
||
|
drew a chair near her. Lady Catherine listened to half a song, and then
|
||
|
talked, as before, to her other nephew; till the latter walked away
|
||
|
from her, and making with his usual deliberation towards the pianoforte
|
||
|
stationed himself so as to command a full view of the fair performer's
|
||
|
countenance. Elizabeth saw what he was doing, and at the first
|
||
|
convenient pause, turned to him with an arch smile, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You mean to frighten me, Mr. Darcy, by coming in all this state to hear
|
||
|
me? I will not be alarmed though your sister _does_ play so well. There
|
||
|
is a stubbornness about me that never can bear to be frightened at the
|
||
|
will of others. My courage always rises at every attempt to intimidate
|
||
|
me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I shall not say you are mistaken," he replied, "because you could not
|
||
|
really believe me to entertain any design of alarming you; and I have
|
||
|
had the pleasure of your acquaintance long enough to know that you find
|
||
|
great enjoyment in occasionally professing opinions which in fact are
|
||
|
not your own."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth laughed heartily at this picture of herself, and said to
|
||
|
Colonel Fitzwilliam, "Your cousin will give you a very pretty notion of
|
||
|
me, and teach you not to believe a word I say. I am particularly unlucky
|
||
|
in meeting with a person so able to expose my real character, in a part
|
||
|
of the world where I had hoped to pass myself off with some degree of
|
||
|
credit. Indeed, Mr. Darcy, it is very ungenerous in you to mention all
|
||
|
that you knew to my disadvantage in Hertfordshire--and, give me leave to
|
||
|
say, very impolitic too--for it is provoking me to retaliate, and such
|
||
|
things may come out as will shock your relations to hear."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am not afraid of you," said he, smilingly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pray let me hear what you have to accuse him of," cried Colonel
|
||
|
Fitzwilliam. "I should like to know how he behaves among strangers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You shall hear then--but prepare yourself for something very dreadful.
|
||
|
The first time of my ever seeing him in Hertfordshire, you must know,
|
||
|
was at a ball--and at this ball, what do you think he did? He danced
|
||
|
only four dances, though gentlemen were scarce; and, to my certain
|
||
|
knowledge, more than one young lady was sitting down in want of a
|
||
|
partner. Mr. Darcy, you cannot deny the fact."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had not at that time the honour of knowing any lady in the assembly
|
||
|
beyond my own party."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True; and nobody can ever be introduced in a ball-room. Well, Colonel
|
||
|
Fitzwilliam, what do I play next? My fingers wait your orders."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps," said Darcy, "I should have judged better, had I sought an
|
||
|
introduction; but I am ill-qualified to recommend myself to strangers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Shall we ask your cousin the reason of this?" said Elizabeth, still
|
||
|
addressing Colonel Fitzwilliam. "Shall we ask him why a man of sense and
|
||
|
education, and who has lived in the world, is ill qualified to recommend
|
||
|
himself to strangers?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can answer your question," said Fitzwilliam, "without applying to
|
||
|
him. It is because he will not give himself the trouble."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I certainly have not the talent which some people possess," said Darcy,
|
||
|
"of conversing easily with those I have never seen before. I cannot
|
||
|
catch their tone of conversation, or appear interested in their
|
||
|
concerns, as I often see done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My fingers," said Elizabeth, "do not move over this instrument in the
|
||
|
masterly manner which I see so many women's do. They have not the same
|
||
|
force or rapidity, and do not produce the same expression. But then I
|
||
|
have always supposed it to be my own fault--because I will not take the
|
||
|
trouble of practising. It is not that I do not believe _my_ fingers as
|
||
|
capable as any other woman's of superior execution."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy smiled and said, "You are perfectly right. You have employed your
|
||
|
time much better. No one admitted to the privilege of hearing you can
|
||
|
think anything wanting. We neither of us perform to strangers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Here they were interrupted by Lady Catherine, who called out to know
|
||
|
what they were talking of. Elizabeth immediately began playing again.
|
||
|
Lady Catherine approached, and, after listening for a few minutes, said
|
||
|
to Darcy:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Bennet would not play at all amiss if she practised more, and
|
||
|
could have the advantage of a London master. She has a very good notion
|
||
|
of fingering, though her taste is not equal to Anne's. Anne would have
|
||
|
been a delightful performer, had her health allowed her to learn."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth looked at Darcy to see how cordially he assented to his
|
||
|
cousin's praise; but neither at that moment nor at any other could she
|
||
|
discern any symptom of love; and from the whole of his behaviour to Miss
|
||
|
de Bourgh she derived this comfort for Miss Bingley, that he might have
|
||
|
been just as likely to marry _her_, had she been his relation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Catherine continued her remarks on Elizabeth's performance, mixing
|
||
|
with them many instructions on execution and taste. Elizabeth received
|
||
|
them with all the forbearance of civility, and, at the request of the
|
||
|
gentlemen, remained at the instrument till her ladyship's carriage was
|
||
|
ready to take them all home.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 32
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was sitting by herself the next morning, and writing to Jane
|
||
|
while Mrs. Collins and Maria were gone on business into the village,
|
||
|
when she was startled by a ring at the door, the certain signal of a
|
||
|
visitor. As she had heard no carriage, she thought it not unlikely to
|
||
|
be Lady Catherine, and under that apprehension was putting away her
|
||
|
half-finished letter that she might escape all impertinent questions,
|
||
|
when the door opened, and, to her very great surprise, Mr. Darcy, and
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy only, entered the room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He seemed astonished too on finding her alone, and apologised for his
|
||
|
intrusion by letting her know that he had understood all the ladies were
|
||
|
to be within.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They then sat down, and when her inquiries after Rosings were made,
|
||
|
seemed in danger of sinking into total silence. It was absolutely
|
||
|
necessary, therefore, to think of something, and in this emergence
|
||
|
recollecting _when_ she had seen him last in Hertfordshire, and
|
||
|
feeling curious to know what he would say on the subject of their hasty
|
||
|
departure, she observed:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How very suddenly you all quitted Netherfield last November, Mr. Darcy!
|
||
|
It must have been a most agreeable surprise to Mr. Bingley to see you
|
||
|
all after him so soon; for, if I recollect right, he went but the day
|
||
|
before. He and his sisters were well, I hope, when you left London?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perfectly so, I thank you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She found that she was to receive no other answer, and, after a short
|
||
|
pause added:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think I have understood that Mr. Bingley has not much idea of ever
|
||
|
returning to Netherfield again?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have never heard him say so; but it is probable that he may spend
|
||
|
very little of his time there in the future. He has many friends, and
|
||
|
is at a time of life when friends and engagements are continually
|
||
|
increasing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If he means to be but little at Netherfield, it would be better for
|
||
|
the neighbourhood that he should give up the place entirely, for then we
|
||
|
might possibly get a settled family there. But, perhaps, Mr. Bingley did
|
||
|
not take the house so much for the convenience of the neighbourhood as
|
||
|
for his own, and we must expect him to keep it or quit it on the same
|
||
|
principle."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should not be surprised," said Darcy, "if he were to give it up as
|
||
|
soon as any eligible purchase offers."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth made no answer. She was afraid of talking longer of his
|
||
|
friend; and, having nothing else to say, was now determined to leave the
|
||
|
trouble of finding a subject to him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He took the hint, and soon began with, "This seems a very comfortable
|
||
|
house. Lady Catherine, I believe, did a great deal to it when Mr.
|
||
|
Collins first came to Hunsford."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I believe she did--and I am sure she could not have bestowed her
|
||
|
kindness on a more grateful object."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Collins appears to be very fortunate in his choice of a wife."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, indeed, his friends may well rejoice in his having met with one
|
||
|
of the very few sensible women who would have accepted him, or have made
|
||
|
him happy if they had. My friend has an excellent understanding--though
|
||
|
I am not certain that I consider her marrying Mr. Collins as the
|
||
|
wisest thing she ever did. She seems perfectly happy, however, and in a
|
||
|
prudential light it is certainly a very good match for her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It must be very agreeable for her to be settled within so easy a
|
||
|
distance of her own family and friends."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"An easy distance, do you call it? It is nearly fifty miles."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what is fifty miles of good road? Little more than half a day's
|
||
|
journey. Yes, I call it a _very_ easy distance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should never have considered the distance as one of the _advantages_
|
||
|
of the match," cried Elizabeth. "I should never have said Mrs. Collins
|
||
|
was settled _near_ her family."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a proof of your own attachment to Hertfordshire. Anything beyond
|
||
|
the very neighbourhood of Longbourn, I suppose, would appear far."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he spoke there was a sort of smile which Elizabeth fancied she
|
||
|
understood; he must be supposing her to be thinking of Jane and
|
||
|
Netherfield, and she blushed as she answered:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not mean to say that a woman may not be settled too near her
|
||
|
family. The far and the near must be relative, and depend on many
|
||
|
varying circumstances. Where there is fortune to make the expenses of
|
||
|
travelling unimportant, distance becomes no evil. But that is not the
|
||
|
case _here_. Mr. and Mrs. Collins have a comfortable income, but not
|
||
|
such a one as will allow of frequent journeys--and I am persuaded my
|
||
|
friend would not call herself _near_ her family under less than _half_
|
||
|
the present distance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy drew his chair a little towards her, and said, "_You_ cannot
|
||
|
have a right to such very strong local attachment. _You_ cannot have
|
||
|
been always at Longbourn."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth looked surprised. The gentleman experienced some change of
|
||
|
feeling; he drew back his chair, took a newspaper from the table, and
|
||
|
glancing over it, said, in a colder voice:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you pleased with Kent?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
A short dialogue on the subject of the country ensued, on either side
|
||
|
calm and concise--and soon put an end to by the entrance of Charlotte
|
||
|
and her sister, just returned from her walk. The tete-a-tete surprised
|
||
|
them. Mr. Darcy related the mistake which had occasioned his intruding
|
||
|
on Miss Bennet, and after sitting a few minutes longer without saying
|
||
|
much to anybody, went away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What can be the meaning of this?" said Charlotte, as soon as he was
|
||
|
gone. "My dear, Eliza, he must be in love with you, or he would never
|
||
|
have called us in this familiar way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But when Elizabeth told of his silence; it did not seem very likely,
|
||
|
even to Charlotte's wishes, to be the case; and after various
|
||
|
conjectures, they could at last only suppose his visit to proceed from
|
||
|
the difficulty of finding anything to do, which was the more probable
|
||
|
from the time of year. All field sports were over. Within doors there
|
||
|
was Lady Catherine, books, and a billiard-table, but gentlemen cannot
|
||
|
always be within doors; and in the nearness of the Parsonage, or the
|
||
|
pleasantness of the walk to it, or of the people who lived in it, the
|
||
|
two cousins found a temptation from this period of walking thither
|
||
|
almost every day. They called at various times of the morning, sometimes
|
||
|
separately, sometimes together, and now and then accompanied by their
|
||
|
aunt. It was plain to them all that Colonel Fitzwilliam came because he
|
||
|
had pleasure in their society, a persuasion which of course recommended
|
||
|
him still more; and Elizabeth was reminded by her own satisfaction in
|
||
|
being with him, as well as by his evident admiration of her, of her
|
||
|
former favourite George Wickham; and though, in comparing them, she saw
|
||
|
there was less captivating softness in Colonel Fitzwilliam's manners,
|
||
|
she believed he might have the best informed mind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But why Mr. Darcy came so often to the Parsonage, it was more difficult
|
||
|
to understand. It could not be for society, as he frequently sat there
|
||
|
ten minutes together without opening his lips; and when he did speak,
|
||
|
it seemed the effect of necessity rather than of choice--a sacrifice
|
||
|
to propriety, not a pleasure to himself. He seldom appeared really
|
||
|
animated. Mrs. Collins knew not what to make of him. Colonel
|
||
|
Fitzwilliam's occasionally laughing at his stupidity, proved that he was
|
||
|
generally different, which her own knowledge of him could not have told
|
||
|
her; and as she would liked to have believed this change the effect
|
||
|
of love, and the object of that love her friend Eliza, she set herself
|
||
|
seriously to work to find it out. She watched him whenever they were at
|
||
|
Rosings, and whenever he came to Hunsford; but without much success. He
|
||
|
certainly looked at her friend a great deal, but the expression of that
|
||
|
look was disputable. It was an earnest, steadfast gaze, but she often
|
||
|
doubted whether there were much admiration in it, and sometimes it
|
||
|
seemed nothing but absence of mind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She had once or twice suggested to Elizabeth the possibility of his
|
||
|
being partial to her, but Elizabeth always laughed at the idea; and Mrs.
|
||
|
Collins did not think it right to press the subject, from the danger of
|
||
|
raising expectations which might only end in disappointment; for in her
|
||
|
opinion it admitted not of a doubt, that all her friend's dislike would
|
||
|
vanish, if she could suppose him to be in her power.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
In her kind schemes for Elizabeth, she sometimes planned her marrying
|
||
|
Colonel Fitzwilliam. He was beyond comparison the most pleasant man; he
|
||
|
certainly admired her, and his situation in life was most eligible; but,
|
||
|
to counterbalance these advantages, Mr. Darcy had considerable patronage
|
||
|
in the church, and his cousin could have none at all.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 33
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
More than once did Elizabeth, in her ramble within the park,
|
||
|
unexpectedly meet Mr. Darcy. She felt all the perverseness of the
|
||
|
mischance that should bring him where no one else was brought, and, to
|
||
|
prevent its ever happening again, took care to inform him at first that
|
||
|
it was a favourite haunt of hers. How it could occur a second time,
|
||
|
therefore, was very odd! Yet it did, and even a third. It seemed like
|
||
|
wilful ill-nature, or a voluntary penance, for on these occasions it was
|
||
|
not merely a few formal inquiries and an awkward pause and then away,
|
||
|
but he actually thought it necessary to turn back and walk with her. He
|
||
|
never said a great deal, nor did she give herself the trouble of talking
|
||
|
or of listening much; but it struck her in the course of their third
|
||
|
rencontre that he was asking some odd unconnected questions--about
|
||
|
her pleasure in being at Hunsford, her love of solitary walks, and her
|
||
|
opinion of Mr. and Mrs. Collins's happiness; and that in speaking of
|
||
|
Rosings and her not perfectly understanding the house, he seemed to
|
||
|
expect that whenever she came into Kent again she would be staying
|
||
|
_there_ too. His words seemed to imply it. Could he have Colonel
|
||
|
Fitzwilliam in his thoughts? She supposed, if he meant anything, he must
|
||
|
mean an allusion to what might arise in that quarter. It distressed
|
||
|
her a little, and she was quite glad to find herself at the gate in the
|
||
|
pales opposite the Parsonage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was engaged one day as she walked, in perusing Jane's last letter,
|
||
|
and dwelling on some passages which proved that Jane had not written in
|
||
|
spirits, when, instead of being again surprised by Mr. Darcy, she saw
|
||
|
on looking up that Colonel Fitzwilliam was meeting her. Putting away the
|
||
|
letter immediately and forcing a smile, she said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I did not know before that you ever walked this way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been making the tour of the park," he replied, "as I generally
|
||
|
do every year, and intend to close it with a call at the Parsonage. Are
|
||
|
you going much farther?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, I should have turned in a moment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And accordingly she did turn, and they walked towards the Parsonage
|
||
|
together.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you certainly leave Kent on Saturday?" said she.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--if Darcy does not put it off again. But I am at his disposal. He
|
||
|
arranges the business just as he pleases."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And if not able to please himself in the arrangement, he has at least
|
||
|
pleasure in the great power of choice. I do not know anybody who seems
|
||
|
more to enjoy the power of doing what he likes than Mr. Darcy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He likes to have his own way very well," replied Colonel Fitzwilliam.
|
||
|
"But so we all do. It is only that he has better means of having it
|
||
|
than many others, because he is rich, and many others are poor. I speak
|
||
|
feelingly. A younger son, you know, must be inured to self-denial and
|
||
|
dependence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In my opinion, the younger son of an earl can know very little of
|
||
|
either. Now seriously, what have you ever known of self-denial and
|
||
|
dependence? When have you been prevented by want of money from going
|
||
|
wherever you chose, or procuring anything you had a fancy for?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These are home questions--and perhaps I cannot say that I have
|
||
|
experienced many hardships of that nature. But in matters of greater
|
||
|
weight, I may suffer from want of money. Younger sons cannot marry where
|
||
|
they like."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Unless where they like women of fortune, which I think they very often
|
||
|
do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Our habits of expense make us too dependent, and there are not many
|
||
|
in my rank of life who can afford to marry without some attention to
|
||
|
money."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is this," thought Elizabeth, "meant for me?" and she coloured at the
|
||
|
idea; but, recovering herself, said in a lively tone, "And pray, what
|
||
|
is the usual price of an earl's younger son? Unless the elder brother is
|
||
|
very sickly, I suppose you would not ask above fifty thousand pounds."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He answered her in the same style, and the subject dropped. To interrupt
|
||
|
a silence which might make him fancy her affected with what had passed,
|
||
|
she soon afterwards said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I imagine your cousin brought you down with him chiefly for the sake of
|
||
|
having someone at his disposal. I wonder he does not marry, to secure a
|
||
|
lasting convenience of that kind. But, perhaps, his sister does as well
|
||
|
for the present, and, as she is under his sole care, he may do what he
|
||
|
likes with her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said Colonel Fitzwilliam, "that is an advantage which he must
|
||
|
divide with me. I am joined with him in the guardianship of Miss Darcy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you indeed? And pray what sort of guardians do you make? Does your
|
||
|
charge give you much trouble? Young ladies of her age are sometimes a
|
||
|
little difficult to manage, and if she has the true Darcy spirit, she
|
||
|
may like to have her own way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As she spoke she observed him looking at her earnestly; and the manner
|
||
|
in which he immediately asked her why she supposed Miss Darcy likely to
|
||
|
give them any uneasiness, convinced her that she had somehow or other
|
||
|
got pretty near the truth. She directly replied:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You need not be frightened. I never heard any harm of her; and I dare
|
||
|
say she is one of the most tractable creatures in the world. She is a
|
||
|
very great favourite with some ladies of my acquaintance, Mrs. Hurst and
|
||
|
Miss Bingley. I think I have heard you say that you know them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know them a little. Their brother is a pleasant gentlemanlike man--he
|
||
|
is a great friend of Darcy's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! yes," said Elizabeth drily; "Mr. Darcy is uncommonly kind to Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley, and takes a prodigious deal of care of him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Care of him! Yes, I really believe Darcy _does_ take care of him in
|
||
|
those points where he most wants care. From something that he told me in
|
||
|
our journey hither, I have reason to think Bingley very much indebted to
|
||
|
him. But I ought to beg his pardon, for I have no right to suppose that
|
||
|
Bingley was the person meant. It was all conjecture."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is it you mean?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a circumstance which Darcy could not wish to be generally known,
|
||
|
because if it were to get round to the lady's family, it would be an
|
||
|
unpleasant thing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may depend upon my not mentioning it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And remember that I have not much reason for supposing it to be
|
||
|
Bingley. What he told me was merely this: that he congratulated himself
|
||
|
on having lately saved a friend from the inconveniences of a most
|
||
|
imprudent marriage, but without mentioning names or any other
|
||
|
particulars, and I only suspected it to be Bingley from believing
|
||
|
him the kind of young man to get into a scrape of that sort, and from
|
||
|
knowing them to have been together the whole of last summer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did Mr. Darcy give you reasons for this interference?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I understood that there were some very strong objections against the
|
||
|
lady."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what arts did he use to separate them?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He did not talk to me of his own arts," said Fitzwilliam, smiling. "He
|
||
|
only told me what I have now told you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth made no answer, and walked on, her heart swelling with
|
||
|
indignation. After watching her a little, Fitzwilliam asked her why she
|
||
|
was so thoughtful.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am thinking of what you have been telling me," said she. "Your
|
||
|
cousin's conduct does not suit my feelings. Why was he to be the judge?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are rather disposed to call his interference officious?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not see what right Mr. Darcy had to decide on the propriety of his
|
||
|
friend's inclination, or why, upon his own judgement alone, he was to
|
||
|
determine and direct in what manner his friend was to be happy.
|
||
|
But," she continued, recollecting herself, "as we know none of the
|
||
|
particulars, it is not fair to condemn him. It is not to be supposed
|
||
|
that there was much affection in the case."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is not an unnatural surmise," said Fitzwilliam, "but it is a
|
||
|
lessening of the honour of my cousin's triumph very sadly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was spoken jestingly; but it appeared to her so just a picture
|
||
|
of Mr. Darcy, that she would not trust herself with an answer, and
|
||
|
therefore, abruptly changing the conversation talked on indifferent
|
||
|
matters until they reached the Parsonage. There, shut into her own room,
|
||
|
as soon as their visitor left them, she could think without interruption
|
||
|
of all that she had heard. It was not to be supposed that any other
|
||
|
people could be meant than those with whom she was connected. There
|
||
|
could not exist in the world _two_ men over whom Mr. Darcy could have
|
||
|
such boundless influence. That he had been concerned in the measures
|
||
|
taken to separate Bingley and Jane she had never doubted; but she had
|
||
|
always attributed to Miss Bingley the principal design and arrangement
|
||
|
of them. If his own vanity, however, did not mislead him, _he_ was
|
||
|
the cause, his pride and caprice were the cause, of all that Jane had
|
||
|
suffered, and still continued to suffer. He had ruined for a while
|
||
|
every hope of happiness for the most affectionate, generous heart in the
|
||
|
world; and no one could say how lasting an evil he might have inflicted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There were some very strong objections against the lady," were Colonel
|
||
|
Fitzwilliam's words; and those strong objections probably were, her
|
||
|
having one uncle who was a country attorney, and another who was in
|
||
|
business in London.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To Jane herself," she exclaimed, "there could be no possibility of
|
||
|
objection; all loveliness and goodness as she is!--her understanding
|
||
|
excellent, her mind improved, and her manners captivating. Neither
|
||
|
could anything be urged against my father, who, though with some
|
||
|
peculiarities, has abilities Mr. Darcy himself need not disdain, and
|
||
|
respectability which he will probably never reach." When she thought of
|
||
|
her mother, her confidence gave way a little; but she would not allow
|
||
|
that any objections _there_ had material weight with Mr. Darcy, whose
|
||
|
pride, she was convinced, would receive a deeper wound from the want of
|
||
|
importance in his friend's connections, than from their want of sense;
|
||
|
and she was quite decided, at last, that he had been partly governed
|
||
|
by this worst kind of pride, and partly by the wish of retaining Mr.
|
||
|
Bingley for his sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The agitation and tears which the subject occasioned, brought on a
|
||
|
headache; and it grew so much worse towards the evening, that, added to
|
||
|
her unwillingness to see Mr. Darcy, it determined her not to attend her
|
||
|
cousins to Rosings, where they were engaged to drink tea. Mrs. Collins,
|
||
|
seeing that she was really unwell, did not press her to go and as much
|
||
|
as possible prevented her husband from pressing her; but Mr. Collins
|
||
|
could not conceal his apprehension of Lady Catherine's being rather
|
||
|
displeased by her staying at home.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 34
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
When they were gone, Elizabeth, as if intending to exasperate herself
|
||
|
as much as possible against Mr. Darcy, chose for her employment the
|
||
|
examination of all the letters which Jane had written to her since her
|
||
|
being in Kent. They contained no actual complaint, nor was there any
|
||
|
revival of past occurrences, or any communication of present suffering.
|
||
|
But in all, and in almost every line of each, there was a want of that
|
||
|
cheerfulness which had been used to characterise her style, and which,
|
||
|
proceeding from the serenity of a mind at ease with itself and kindly
|
||
|
disposed towards everyone, had been scarcely ever clouded. Elizabeth
|
||
|
noticed every sentence conveying the idea of uneasiness, with an
|
||
|
attention which it had hardly received on the first perusal. Mr. Darcy's
|
||
|
shameful boast of what misery he had been able to inflict, gave her
|
||
|
a keener sense of her sister's sufferings. It was some consolation
|
||
|
to think that his visit to Rosings was to end on the day after the
|
||
|
next--and, a still greater, that in less than a fortnight she should
|
||
|
herself be with Jane again, and enabled to contribute to the recovery of
|
||
|
her spirits, by all that affection could do.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She could not think of Darcy's leaving Kent without remembering that
|
||
|
his cousin was to go with him; but Colonel Fitzwilliam had made it clear
|
||
|
that he had no intentions at all, and agreeable as he was, she did not
|
||
|
mean to be unhappy about him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
While settling this point, she was suddenly roused by the sound of the
|
||
|
door-bell, and her spirits were a little fluttered by the idea of its
|
||
|
being Colonel Fitzwilliam himself, who had once before called late in
|
||
|
the evening, and might now come to inquire particularly after her.
|
||
|
But this idea was soon banished, and her spirits were very differently
|
||
|
affected, when, to her utter amazement, she saw Mr. Darcy walk into the
|
||
|
room. In an hurried manner he immediately began an inquiry after her
|
||
|
health, imputing his visit to a wish of hearing that she were better.
|
||
|
She answered him with cold civility. He sat down for a few moments, and
|
||
|
then getting up, walked about the room. Elizabeth was surprised, but
|
||
|
said not a word. After a silence of several minutes, he came towards her
|
||
|
in an agitated manner, and thus began:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In vain I have struggled. It will not do. My feelings will not be
|
||
|
repressed. You must allow me to tell you how ardently I admire and love
|
||
|
you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's astonishment was beyond expression. She stared, coloured,
|
||
|
doubted, and was silent. This he considered sufficient encouragement;
|
||
|
and the avowal of all that he felt, and had long felt for her,
|
||
|
immediately followed. He spoke well; but there were feelings besides
|
||
|
those of the heart to be detailed; and he was not more eloquent on the
|
||
|
subject of tenderness than of pride. His sense of her inferiority--of
|
||
|
its being a degradation--of the family obstacles which had always
|
||
|
opposed to inclination, were dwelt on with a warmth which seemed due to
|
||
|
the consequence he was wounding, but was very unlikely to recommend his
|
||
|
suit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In spite of her deeply-rooted dislike, she could not be insensible to
|
||
|
the compliment of such a man's affection, and though her intentions did
|
||
|
not vary for an instant, she was at first sorry for the pain he was to
|
||
|
receive; till, roused to resentment by his subsequent language, she
|
||
|
lost all compassion in anger. She tried, however, to compose herself to
|
||
|
answer him with patience, when he should have done. He concluded with
|
||
|
representing to her the strength of that attachment which, in spite
|
||
|
of all his endeavours, he had found impossible to conquer; and with
|
||
|
expressing his hope that it would now be rewarded by her acceptance of
|
||
|
his hand. As he said this, she could easily see that he had no doubt
|
||
|
of a favourable answer. He _spoke_ of apprehension and anxiety, but
|
||
|
his countenance expressed real security. Such a circumstance could
|
||
|
only exasperate farther, and, when he ceased, the colour rose into her
|
||
|
cheeks, and she said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In such cases as this, it is, I believe, the established mode to
|
||
|
express a sense of obligation for the sentiments avowed, however
|
||
|
unequally they may be returned. It is natural that obligation should
|
||
|
be felt, and if I could _feel_ gratitude, I would now thank you. But I
|
||
|
cannot--I have never desired your good opinion, and you have certainly
|
||
|
bestowed it most unwillingly. I am sorry to have occasioned pain to
|
||
|
anyone. It has been most unconsciously done, however, and I hope will be
|
||
|
of short duration. The feelings which, you tell me, have long prevented
|
||
|
the acknowledgment of your regard, can have little difficulty in
|
||
|
overcoming it after this explanation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy, who was leaning against the mantelpiece with his eyes fixed
|
||
|
on her face, seemed to catch her words with no less resentment than
|
||
|
surprise. His complexion became pale with anger, and the disturbance
|
||
|
of his mind was visible in every feature. He was struggling for the
|
||
|
appearance of composure, and would not open his lips till he believed
|
||
|
himself to have attained it. The pause was to Elizabeth's feelings
|
||
|
dreadful. At length, with a voice of forced calmness, he said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And this is all the reply which I am to have the honour of expecting!
|
||
|
I might, perhaps, wish to be informed why, with so little _endeavour_ at
|
||
|
civility, I am thus rejected. But it is of small importance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I might as well inquire," replied she, "why with so evident a desire
|
||
|
of offending and insulting me, you chose to tell me that you liked me
|
||
|
against your will, against your reason, and even against your character?
|
||
|
Was not this some excuse for incivility, if I _was_ uncivil? But I have
|
||
|
other provocations. You know I have. Had not my feelings decided against
|
||
|
you--had they been indifferent, or had they even been favourable, do you
|
||
|
think that any consideration would tempt me to accept the man who has
|
||
|
been the means of ruining, perhaps for ever, the happiness of a most
|
||
|
beloved sister?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
As she pronounced these words, Mr. Darcy changed colour; but the emotion
|
||
|
was short, and he listened without attempting to interrupt her while she
|
||
|
continued:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have every reason in the world to think ill of you. No motive can
|
||
|
excuse the unjust and ungenerous part you acted _there_. You dare not,
|
||
|
you cannot deny, that you have been the principal, if not the only means
|
||
|
of dividing them from each other--of exposing one to the censure of the
|
||
|
world for caprice and instability, and the other to its derision for
|
||
|
disappointed hopes, and involving them both in misery of the acutest
|
||
|
kind."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She paused, and saw with no slight indignation that he was listening
|
||
|
with an air which proved him wholly unmoved by any feeling of remorse.
|
||
|
He even looked at her with a smile of affected incredulity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can you deny that you have done it?" she repeated.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With assumed tranquillity he then replied: "I have no wish of denying
|
||
|
that I did everything in my power to separate my friend from your
|
||
|
sister, or that I rejoice in my success. Towards _him_ I have been
|
||
|
kinder than towards myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth disdained the appearance of noticing this civil reflection,
|
||
|
but its meaning did not escape, nor was it likely to conciliate her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But it is not merely this affair," she continued, "on which my dislike
|
||
|
is founded. Long before it had taken place my opinion of you was
|
||
|
decided. Your character was unfolded in the recital which I received
|
||
|
many months ago from Mr. Wickham. On this subject, what can you have to
|
||
|
say? In what imaginary act of friendship can you here defend yourself?
|
||
|
or under what misrepresentation can you here impose upon others?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You take an eager interest in that gentleman's concerns," said Darcy,
|
||
|
in a less tranquil tone, and with a heightened colour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Who that knows what his misfortunes have been, can help feeling an
|
||
|
interest in him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"His misfortunes!" repeated Darcy contemptuously; "yes, his misfortunes
|
||
|
have been great indeed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And of your infliction," cried Elizabeth with energy. "You have reduced
|
||
|
him to his present state of poverty--comparative poverty. You have
|
||
|
withheld the advantages which you must know to have been designed for
|
||
|
him. You have deprived the best years of his life of that independence
|
||
|
which was no less his due than his desert. You have done all this!
|
||
|
and yet you can treat the mention of his misfortune with contempt and
|
||
|
ridicule."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And this," cried Darcy, as he walked with quick steps across the room,
|
||
|
"is your opinion of me! This is the estimation in which you hold me!
|
||
|
I thank you for explaining it so fully. My faults, according to this
|
||
|
calculation, are heavy indeed! But perhaps," added he, stopping in
|
||
|
his walk, and turning towards her, "these offenses might have been
|
||
|
overlooked, had not your pride been hurt by my honest confession of the
|
||
|
scruples that had long prevented my forming any serious design. These
|
||
|
bitter accusations might have been suppressed, had I, with greater
|
||
|
policy, concealed my struggles, and flattered you into the belief of
|
||
|
my being impelled by unqualified, unalloyed inclination; by reason, by
|
||
|
reflection, by everything. But disguise of every sort is my abhorrence.
|
||
|
Nor am I ashamed of the feelings I related. They were natural and
|
||
|
just. Could you expect me to rejoice in the inferiority of your
|
||
|
connections?--to congratulate myself on the hope of relations, whose
|
||
|
condition in life is so decidedly beneath my own?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth felt herself growing more angry every moment; yet she tried to
|
||
|
the utmost to speak with composure when she said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are mistaken, Mr. Darcy, if you suppose that the mode of your
|
||
|
declaration affected me in any other way, than as it spared me the concern
|
||
|
which I might have felt in refusing you, had you behaved in a more
|
||
|
gentlemanlike manner."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She saw him start at this, but he said nothing, and she continued:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You could not have made the offer of your hand in any possible way that
|
||
|
would have tempted me to accept it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Again his astonishment was obvious; and he looked at her with an
|
||
|
expression of mingled incredulity and mortification. She went on:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From the very beginning--from the first moment, I may almost say--of
|
||
|
my acquaintance with you, your manners, impressing me with the fullest
|
||
|
belief of your arrogance, your conceit, and your selfish disdain of
|
||
|
the feelings of others, were such as to form the groundwork of
|
||
|
disapprobation on which succeeding events have built so immovable a
|
||
|
dislike; and I had not known you a month before I felt that you were the
|
||
|
last man in the world whom I could ever be prevailed on to marry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have said quite enough, madam. I perfectly comprehend your
|
||
|
feelings, and have now only to be ashamed of what my own have been.
|
||
|
Forgive me for having taken up so much of your time, and accept my best
|
||
|
wishes for your health and happiness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And with these words he hastily left the room, and Elizabeth heard him
|
||
|
the next moment open the front door and quit the house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The tumult of her mind, was now painfully great. She knew not how
|
||
|
to support herself, and from actual weakness sat down and cried for
|
||
|
half-an-hour. Her astonishment, as she reflected on what had passed,
|
||
|
was increased by every review of it. That she should receive an offer of
|
||
|
marriage from Mr. Darcy! That he should have been in love with her for
|
||
|
so many months! So much in love as to wish to marry her in spite of
|
||
|
all the objections which had made him prevent his friend's marrying
|
||
|
her sister, and which must appear at least with equal force in his
|
||
|
own case--was almost incredible! It was gratifying to have inspired
|
||
|
unconsciously so strong an affection. But his pride, his abominable
|
||
|
pride--his shameless avowal of what he had done with respect to
|
||
|
Jane--his unpardonable assurance in acknowledging, though he could
|
||
|
not justify it, and the unfeeling manner in which he had mentioned Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham, his cruelty towards whom he had not attempted to deny, soon
|
||
|
overcame the pity which the consideration of his attachment had for
|
||
|
a moment excited. She continued in very agitated reflections till the
|
||
|
sound of Lady Catherine's carriage made her feel how unequal she was to
|
||
|
encounter Charlotte's observation, and hurried her away to her room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 35
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth awoke the next morning to the same thoughts and meditations
|
||
|
which had at length closed her eyes. She could not yet recover from the
|
||
|
surprise of what had happened; it was impossible to think of anything
|
||
|
else; and, totally indisposed for employment, she resolved, soon after
|
||
|
breakfast, to indulge herself in air and exercise. She was proceeding
|
||
|
directly to her favourite walk, when the recollection of Mr. Darcy's
|
||
|
sometimes coming there stopped her, and instead of entering the park,
|
||
|
she turned up the lane, which led farther from the turnpike-road. The
|
||
|
park paling was still the boundary on one side, and she soon passed one
|
||
|
of the gates into the ground.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After walking two or three times along that part of the lane, she was
|
||
|
tempted, by the pleasantness of the morning, to stop at the gates and
|
||
|
look into the park. The five weeks which she had now passed in Kent had
|
||
|
made a great difference in the country, and every day was adding to the
|
||
|
verdure of the early trees. She was on the point of continuing her walk,
|
||
|
when she caught a glimpse of a gentleman within the sort of grove which
|
||
|
edged the park; he was moving that way; and, fearful of its being Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy, she was directly retreating. But the person who advanced was now
|
||
|
near enough to see her, and stepping forward with eagerness, pronounced
|
||
|
her name. She had turned away; but on hearing herself called, though
|
||
|
in a voice which proved it to be Mr. Darcy, she moved again towards the
|
||
|
gate. He had by that time reached it also, and, holding out a letter,
|
||
|
which she instinctively took, said, with a look of haughty composure,
|
||
|
"I have been walking in the grove some time in the hope of meeting you.
|
||
|
Will you do me the honour of reading that letter?" And then, with a
|
||
|
slight bow, turned again into the plantation, and was soon out of sight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With no expectation of pleasure, but with the strongest curiosity,
|
||
|
Elizabeth opened the letter, and, to her still increasing wonder,
|
||
|
perceived an envelope containing two sheets of letter-paper, written
|
||
|
quite through, in a very close hand. The envelope itself was likewise
|
||
|
full. Pursuing her way along the lane, she then began it. It was dated
|
||
|
from Rosings, at eight o'clock in the morning, and was as follows:--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Be not alarmed, madam, on receiving this letter, by the apprehension
|
||
|
of its containing any repetition of those sentiments or renewal of those
|
||
|
offers which were last night so disgusting to you. I write without any
|
||
|
intention of paining you, or humbling myself, by dwelling on wishes
|
||
|
which, for the happiness of both, cannot be too soon forgotten; and the
|
||
|
effort which the formation and the perusal of this letter must occasion,
|
||
|
should have been spared, had not my character required it to be written
|
||
|
and read. You must, therefore, pardon the freedom with which I demand
|
||
|
your attention; your feelings, I know, will bestow it unwillingly, but I
|
||
|
demand it of your justice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Two offenses of a very different nature, and by no means of equal
|
||
|
magnitude, you last night laid to my charge. The first mentioned was,
|
||
|
that, regardless of the sentiments of either, I had detached Mr. Bingley
|
||
|
from your sister, and the other, that I had, in defiance of various
|
||
|
claims, in defiance of honour and humanity, ruined the immediate
|
||
|
prosperity and blasted the prospects of Mr. Wickham. Wilfully and
|
||
|
wantonly to have thrown off the companion of my youth, the acknowledged
|
||
|
favourite of my father, a young man who had scarcely any other
|
||
|
dependence than on our patronage, and who had been brought up to expect
|
||
|
its exertion, would be a depravity, to which the separation of two young
|
||
|
persons, whose affection could be the growth of only a few weeks, could
|
||
|
bear no comparison. But from the severity of that blame which was last
|
||
|
night so liberally bestowed, respecting each circumstance, I shall hope
|
||
|
to be in the future secured, when the following account of my actions
|
||
|
and their motives has been read. If, in the explanation of them, which
|
||
|
is due to myself, I am under the necessity of relating feelings which
|
||
|
may be offensive to yours, I can only say that I am sorry. The necessity
|
||
|
must be obeyed, and further apology would be absurd.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I had not been long in Hertfordshire, before I saw, in common with
|
||
|
others, that Bingley preferred your elder sister to any other young
|
||
|
woman in the country. But it was not till the evening of the dance
|
||
|
at Netherfield that I had any apprehension of his feeling a serious
|
||
|
attachment. I had often seen him in love before. At that ball, while I
|
||
|
had the honour of dancing with you, I was first made acquainted, by Sir
|
||
|
William Lucas's accidental information, that Bingley's attentions to
|
||
|
your sister had given rise to a general expectation of their marriage.
|
||
|
He spoke of it as a certain event, of which the time alone could
|
||
|
be undecided. From that moment I observed my friend's behaviour
|
||
|
attentively; and I could then perceive that his partiality for Miss
|
||
|
Bennet was beyond what I had ever witnessed in him. Your sister I also
|
||
|
watched. Her look and manners were open, cheerful, and engaging as ever,
|
||
|
but without any symptom of peculiar regard, and I remained convinced
|
||
|
from the evening's scrutiny, that though she received his attentions
|
||
|
with pleasure, she did not invite them by any participation of
|
||
|
sentiment. If _you_ have not been mistaken here, _I_ must have been
|
||
|
in error. Your superior knowledge of your sister must make the latter
|
||
|
probable. If it be so, if I have been misled by such error to inflict
|
||
|
pain on her, your resentment has not been unreasonable. But I shall not
|
||
|
scruple to assert, that the serenity of your sister's countenance and
|
||
|
air was such as might have given the most acute observer a conviction
|
||
|
that, however amiable her temper, her heart was not likely to be
|
||
|
easily touched. That I was desirous of believing her indifferent is
|
||
|
certain--but I will venture to say that my investigation and decisions
|
||
|
are not usually influenced by my hopes or fears. I did not believe
|
||
|
her to be indifferent because I wished it; I believed it on impartial
|
||
|
conviction, as truly as I wished it in reason. My objections to the
|
||
|
marriage were not merely those which I last night acknowledged to have
|
||
|
the utmost force of passion to put aside, in my own case; the want of
|
||
|
connection could not be so great an evil to my friend as to me. But
|
||
|
there were other causes of repugnance; causes which, though still
|
||
|
existing, and existing to an equal degree in both instances, I had
|
||
|
myself endeavoured to forget, because they were not immediately before
|
||
|
me. These causes must be stated, though briefly. The situation of your
|
||
|
mother's family, though objectionable, was nothing in comparison to that
|
||
|
total want of propriety so frequently, so almost uniformly betrayed by
|
||
|
herself, by your three younger sisters, and occasionally even by your
|
||
|
father. Pardon me. It pains me to offend you. But amidst your concern
|
||
|
for the defects of your nearest relations, and your displeasure at this
|
||
|
representation of them, let it give you consolation to consider that, to
|
||
|
have conducted yourselves so as to avoid any share of the like censure,
|
||
|
is praise no less generally bestowed on you and your elder sister, than
|
||
|
it is honourable to the sense and disposition of both. I will only say
|
||
|
farther that from what passed that evening, my opinion of all parties
|
||
|
was confirmed, and every inducement heightened which could have led
|
||
|
me before, to preserve my friend from what I esteemed a most unhappy
|
||
|
connection. He left Netherfield for London, on the day following, as
|
||
|
you, I am certain, remember, with the design of soon returning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The part which I acted is now to be explained. His sisters' uneasiness
|
||
|
had been equally excited with my own; our coincidence of feeling was
|
||
|
soon discovered, and, alike sensible that no time was to be lost in
|
||
|
detaching their brother, we shortly resolved on joining him directly in
|
||
|
London. We accordingly went--and there I readily engaged in the office
|
||
|
of pointing out to my friend the certain evils of such a choice. I
|
||
|
described, and enforced them earnestly. But, however this remonstrance
|
||
|
might have staggered or delayed his determination, I do not suppose
|
||
|
that it would ultimately have prevented the marriage, had it not been
|
||
|
seconded by the assurance that I hesitated not in giving, of your
|
||
|
sister's indifference. He had before believed her to return his
|
||
|
affection with sincere, if not with equal regard. But Bingley has great
|
||
|
natural modesty, with a stronger dependence on my judgement than on his
|
||
|
own. To convince him, therefore, that he had deceived himself, was
|
||
|
no very difficult point. To persuade him against returning into
|
||
|
Hertfordshire, when that conviction had been given, was scarcely the
|
||
|
work of a moment. I cannot blame myself for having done thus much. There
|
||
|
is but one part of my conduct in the whole affair on which I do not
|
||
|
reflect with satisfaction; it is that I condescended to adopt the
|
||
|
measures of art so far as to conceal from him your sister's being in
|
||
|
town. I knew it myself, as it was known to Miss Bingley; but her
|
||
|
brother is even yet ignorant of it. That they might have met without
|
||
|
ill consequence is perhaps probable; but his regard did not appear to me
|
||
|
enough extinguished for him to see her without some danger. Perhaps this
|
||
|
concealment, this disguise was beneath me; it is done, however, and it
|
||
|
was done for the best. On this subject I have nothing more to say, no
|
||
|
other apology to offer. If I have wounded your sister's feelings, it
|
||
|
was unknowingly done and though the motives which governed me may to
|
||
|
you very naturally appear insufficient, I have not yet learnt to condemn
|
||
|
them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With respect to that other, more weighty accusation, of having injured
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham, I can only refute it by laying before you the whole of his
|
||
|
connection with my family. Of what he has _particularly_ accused me I
|
||
|
am ignorant; but of the truth of what I shall relate, I can summon more
|
||
|
than one witness of undoubted veracity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Wickham is the son of a very respectable man, who had for many
|
||
|
years the management of all the Pemberley estates, and whose good
|
||
|
conduct in the discharge of his trust naturally inclined my father to
|
||
|
be of service to him; and on George Wickham, who was his godson, his
|
||
|
kindness was therefore liberally bestowed. My father supported him at
|
||
|
school, and afterwards at Cambridge--most important assistance, as his
|
||
|
own father, always poor from the extravagance of his wife, would have
|
||
|
been unable to give him a gentleman's education. My father was not only
|
||
|
fond of this young man's society, whose manners were always engaging; he
|
||
|
had also the highest opinion of him, and hoping the church would be
|
||
|
his profession, intended to provide for him in it. As for myself, it is
|
||
|
many, many years since I first began to think of him in a very different
|
||
|
manner. The vicious propensities--the want of principle, which he was
|
||
|
careful to guard from the knowledge of his best friend, could not escape
|
||
|
the observation of a young man of nearly the same age with himself,
|
||
|
and who had opportunities of seeing him in unguarded moments, which Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy could not have. Here again I shall give you pain--to what degree
|
||
|
you only can tell. But whatever may be the sentiments which Mr. Wickham
|
||
|
has created, a suspicion of their nature shall not prevent me from
|
||
|
unfolding his real character--it adds even another motive.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My excellent father died about five years ago; and his attachment to
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham was to the last so steady, that in his will he particularly
|
||
|
recommended it to me, to promote his advancement in the best manner
|
||
|
that his profession might allow--and if he took orders, desired that a
|
||
|
valuable family living might be his as soon as it became vacant. There
|
||
|
was also a legacy of one thousand pounds. His own father did not long
|
||
|
survive mine, and within half a year from these events, Mr. Wickham
|
||
|
wrote to inform me that, having finally resolved against taking orders,
|
||
|
he hoped I should not think it unreasonable for him to expect some more
|
||
|
immediate pecuniary advantage, in lieu of the preferment, by which he
|
||
|
could not be benefited. He had some intention, he added, of studying
|
||
|
law, and I must be aware that the interest of one thousand pounds would
|
||
|
be a very insufficient support therein. I rather wished, than believed
|
||
|
him to be sincere; but, at any rate, was perfectly ready to accede to
|
||
|
his proposal. I knew that Mr. Wickham ought not to be a clergyman; the
|
||
|
business was therefore soon settled--he resigned all claim to assistance
|
||
|
in the church, were it possible that he could ever be in a situation to
|
||
|
receive it, and accepted in return three thousand pounds. All connection
|
||
|
between us seemed now dissolved. I thought too ill of him to invite him
|
||
|
to Pemberley, or admit his society in town. In town I believe he chiefly
|
||
|
lived, but his studying the law was a mere pretence, and being now free
|
||
|
from all restraint, his life was a life of idleness and dissipation.
|
||
|
For about three years I heard little of him; but on the decease of the
|
||
|
incumbent of the living which had been designed for him, he applied to
|
||
|
me again by letter for the presentation. His circumstances, he assured
|
||
|
me, and I had no difficulty in believing it, were exceedingly bad. He
|
||
|
had found the law a most unprofitable study, and was now absolutely
|
||
|
resolved on being ordained, if I would present him to the living in
|
||
|
question--of which he trusted there could be little doubt, as he was
|
||
|
well assured that I had no other person to provide for, and I could not
|
||
|
have forgotten my revered father's intentions. You will hardly blame
|
||
|
me for refusing to comply with this entreaty, or for resisting every
|
||
|
repetition to it. His resentment was in proportion to the distress of
|
||
|
his circumstances--and he was doubtless as violent in his abuse of me
|
||
|
to others as in his reproaches to myself. After this period every
|
||
|
appearance of acquaintance was dropped. How he lived I know not. But
|
||
|
last summer he was again most painfully obtruded on my notice.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I must now mention a circumstance which I would wish to forget myself,
|
||
|
and which no obligation less than the present should induce me to unfold
|
||
|
to any human being. Having said thus much, I feel no doubt of your
|
||
|
secrecy. My sister, who is more than ten years my junior, was left to
|
||
|
the guardianship of my mother's nephew, Colonel Fitzwilliam, and myself.
|
||
|
About a year ago, she was taken from school, and an establishment formed
|
||
|
for her in London; and last summer she went with the lady who presided
|
||
|
over it, to Ramsgate; and thither also went Mr. Wickham, undoubtedly by
|
||
|
design; for there proved to have been a prior acquaintance between him
|
||
|
and Mrs. Younge, in whose character we were most unhappily deceived; and
|
||
|
by her connivance and aid, he so far recommended himself to Georgiana,
|
||
|
whose affectionate heart retained a strong impression of his kindness to
|
||
|
her as a child, that she was persuaded to believe herself in love, and
|
||
|
to consent to an elopement. She was then but fifteen, which must be her
|
||
|
excuse; and after stating her imprudence, I am happy to add, that I owed
|
||
|
the knowledge of it to herself. I joined them unexpectedly a day or two
|
||
|
before the intended elopement, and then Georgiana, unable to support the
|
||
|
idea of grieving and offending a brother whom she almost looked up to as
|
||
|
a father, acknowledged the whole to me. You may imagine what I felt and
|
||
|
how I acted. Regard for my sister's credit and feelings prevented
|
||
|
any public exposure; but I wrote to Mr. Wickham, who left the place
|
||
|
immediately, and Mrs. Younge was of course removed from her charge. Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham's chief object was unquestionably my sister's fortune, which
|
||
|
is thirty thousand pounds; but I cannot help supposing that the hope of
|
||
|
revenging himself on me was a strong inducement. His revenge would have
|
||
|
been complete indeed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This, madam, is a faithful narrative of every event in which we have
|
||
|
been concerned together; and if you do not absolutely reject it as
|
||
|
false, you will, I hope, acquit me henceforth of cruelty towards Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham. I know not in what manner, under what form of falsehood he
|
||
|
had imposed on you; but his success is not perhaps to be wondered
|
||
|
at. Ignorant as you previously were of everything concerning either,
|
||
|
detection could not be in your power, and suspicion certainly not in
|
||
|
your inclination.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may possibly wonder why all this was not told you last night; but
|
||
|
I was not then master enough of myself to know what could or ought to
|
||
|
be revealed. For the truth of everything here related, I can appeal more
|
||
|
particularly to the testimony of Colonel Fitzwilliam, who, from our
|
||
|
near relationship and constant intimacy, and, still more, as one of
|
||
|
the executors of my father's will, has been unavoidably acquainted
|
||
|
with every particular of these transactions. If your abhorrence of _me_
|
||
|
should make _my_ assertions valueless, you cannot be prevented by
|
||
|
the same cause from confiding in my cousin; and that there may be
|
||
|
the possibility of consulting him, I shall endeavour to find some
|
||
|
opportunity of putting this letter in your hands in the course of the
|
||
|
morning. I will only add, God bless you.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"FITZWILLIAM DARCY"
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 36
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
If Elizabeth, when Mr. Darcy gave her the letter, did not expect it to
|
||
|
contain a renewal of his offers, she had formed no expectation at all of
|
||
|
its contents. But such as they were, it may well be supposed how eagerly
|
||
|
she went through them, and what a contrariety of emotion they excited.
|
||
|
Her feelings as she read were scarcely to be defined. With amazement did
|
||
|
she first understand that he believed any apology to be in his power;
|
||
|
and steadfastly was she persuaded, that he could have no explanation
|
||
|
to give, which a just sense of shame would not conceal. With a strong
|
||
|
prejudice against everything he might say, she began his account of what
|
||
|
had happened at Netherfield. She read with an eagerness which hardly
|
||
|
left her power of comprehension, and from impatience of knowing what the
|
||
|
next sentence might bring, was incapable of attending to the sense of
|
||
|
the one before her eyes. His belief of her sister's insensibility she
|
||
|
instantly resolved to be false; and his account of the real, the worst
|
||
|
objections to the match, made her too angry to have any wish of doing
|
||
|
him justice. He expressed no regret for what he had done which satisfied
|
||
|
her; his style was not penitent, but haughty. It was all pride and
|
||
|
insolence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But when this subject was succeeded by his account of Mr. Wickham--when
|
||
|
she read with somewhat clearer attention a relation of events which,
|
||
|
if true, must overthrow every cherished opinion of his worth, and which
|
||
|
bore so alarming an affinity to his own history of himself--her
|
||
|
feelings were yet more acutely painful and more difficult of definition.
|
||
|
Astonishment, apprehension, and even horror, oppressed her. She wished
|
||
|
to discredit it entirely, repeatedly exclaiming, "This must be false!
|
||
|
This cannot be! This must be the grossest falsehood!"--and when she had
|
||
|
gone through the whole letter, though scarcely knowing anything of the
|
||
|
last page or two, put it hastily away, protesting that she would not
|
||
|
regard it, that she would never look in it again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In this perturbed state of mind, with thoughts that could rest on
|
||
|
nothing, she walked on; but it would not do; in half a minute the letter
|
||
|
was unfolded again, and collecting herself as well as she could, she
|
||
|
again began the mortifying perusal of all that related to Wickham, and
|
||
|
commanded herself so far as to examine the meaning of every sentence.
|
||
|
The account of his connection with the Pemberley family was exactly what
|
||
|
he had related himself; and the kindness of the late Mr. Darcy, though
|
||
|
she had not before known its extent, agreed equally well with his own
|
||
|
words. So far each recital confirmed the other; but when she came to the
|
||
|
will, the difference was great. What Wickham had said of the living
|
||
|
was fresh in her memory, and as she recalled his very words, it was
|
||
|
impossible not to feel that there was gross duplicity on one side or the
|
||
|
other; and, for a few moments, she flattered herself that her wishes did
|
||
|
not err. But when she read and re-read with the closest attention, the
|
||
|
particulars immediately following of Wickham's resigning all pretensions
|
||
|
to the living, of his receiving in lieu so considerable a sum as three
|
||
|
thousand pounds, again was she forced to hesitate. She put down
|
||
|
the letter, weighed every circumstance with what she meant to be
|
||
|
impartiality--deliberated on the probability of each statement--but with
|
||
|
little success. On both sides it was only assertion. Again she read
|
||
|
on; but every line proved more clearly that the affair, which she had
|
||
|
believed it impossible that any contrivance could so represent as to
|
||
|
render Mr. Darcy's conduct in it less than infamous, was capable of a
|
||
|
turn which must make him entirely blameless throughout the whole.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The extravagance and general profligacy which he scrupled not to lay at
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham's charge, exceedingly shocked her; the more so, as she could
|
||
|
bring no proof of its injustice. She had never heard of him before his
|
||
|
entrance into the ----shire Militia, in which he had engaged at the
|
||
|
persuasion of the young man who, on meeting him accidentally in town,
|
||
|
had there renewed a slight acquaintance. Of his former way of life
|
||
|
nothing had been known in Hertfordshire but what he told himself. As
|
||
|
to his real character, had information been in her power, she had
|
||
|
never felt a wish of inquiring. His countenance, voice, and manner had
|
||
|
established him at once in the possession of every virtue. She tried
|
||
|
to recollect some instance of goodness, some distinguished trait of
|
||
|
integrity or benevolence, that might rescue him from the attacks of
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy; or at least, by the predominance of virtue, atone for those
|
||
|
casual errors under which she would endeavour to class what Mr. Darcy
|
||
|
had described as the idleness and vice of many years' continuance. But
|
||
|
no such recollection befriended her. She could see him instantly before
|
||
|
her, in every charm of air and address; but she could remember no more
|
||
|
substantial good than the general approbation of the neighbourhood, and
|
||
|
the regard which his social powers had gained him in the mess. After
|
||
|
pausing on this point a considerable while, she once more continued to
|
||
|
read. But, alas! the story which followed, of his designs on Miss
|
||
|
Darcy, received some confirmation from what had passed between Colonel
|
||
|
Fitzwilliam and herself only the morning before; and at last she was
|
||
|
referred for the truth of every particular to Colonel Fitzwilliam
|
||
|
himself--from whom she had previously received the information of his
|
||
|
near concern in all his cousin's affairs, and whose character she had no
|
||
|
reason to question. At one time she had almost resolved on applying to
|
||
|
him, but the idea was checked by the awkwardness of the application, and
|
||
|
at length wholly banished by the conviction that Mr. Darcy would never
|
||
|
have hazarded such a proposal, if he had not been well assured of his
|
||
|
cousin's corroboration.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She perfectly remembered everything that had passed in conversation
|
||
|
between Wickham and herself, in their first evening at Mr. Phillips's.
|
||
|
Many of his expressions were still fresh in her memory. She was _now_
|
||
|
struck with the impropriety of such communications to a stranger, and
|
||
|
wondered it had escaped her before. She saw the indelicacy of putting
|
||
|
himself forward as he had done, and the inconsistency of his professions
|
||
|
with his conduct. She remembered that he had boasted of having no fear
|
||
|
of seeing Mr. Darcy--that Mr. Darcy might leave the country, but that
|
||
|
_he_ should stand his ground; yet he had avoided the Netherfield ball
|
||
|
the very next week. She remembered also that, till the Netherfield
|
||
|
family had quitted the country, he had told his story to no one but
|
||
|
herself; but that after their removal it had been everywhere discussed;
|
||
|
that he had then no reserves, no scruples in sinking Mr. Darcy's
|
||
|
character, though he had assured her that respect for the father would
|
||
|
always prevent his exposing the son.
|
||
|
|
||
|
How differently did everything now appear in which he was concerned!
|
||
|
His attentions to Miss King were now the consequence of views solely and
|
||
|
hatefully mercenary; and the mediocrity of her fortune proved no longer
|
||
|
the moderation of his wishes, but his eagerness to grasp at anything.
|
||
|
His behaviour to herself could now have had no tolerable motive; he had
|
||
|
either been deceived with regard to her fortune, or had been gratifying
|
||
|
his vanity by encouraging the preference which she believed she had most
|
||
|
incautiously shown. Every lingering struggle in his favour grew fainter
|
||
|
and fainter; and in farther justification of Mr. Darcy, she could not
|
||
|
but allow that Mr. Bingley, when questioned by Jane, had long ago
|
||
|
asserted his blamelessness in the affair; that proud and repulsive as
|
||
|
were his manners, she had never, in the whole course of their
|
||
|
acquaintance--an acquaintance which had latterly brought them much
|
||
|
together, and given her a sort of intimacy with his ways--seen anything
|
||
|
that betrayed him to be unprincipled or unjust--anything that spoke him
|
||
|
of irreligious or immoral habits; that among his own connections he was
|
||
|
esteemed and valued--that even Wickham had allowed him merit as a
|
||
|
brother, and that she had often heard him speak so affectionately of his
|
||
|
sister as to prove him capable of _some_ amiable feeling; that had his
|
||
|
actions been what Mr. Wickham represented them, so gross a violation of
|
||
|
everything right could hardly have been concealed from the world; and
|
||
|
that friendship between a person capable of it, and such an amiable man
|
||
|
as Mr. Bingley, was incomprehensible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She grew absolutely ashamed of herself. Of neither Darcy nor Wickham
|
||
|
could she think without feeling she had been blind, partial, prejudiced,
|
||
|
absurd.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How despicably I have acted!" she cried; "I, who have prided myself
|
||
|
on my discernment! I, who have valued myself on my abilities! who have
|
||
|
often disdained the generous candour of my sister, and gratified
|
||
|
my vanity in useless or blameable mistrust! How humiliating is this
|
||
|
discovery! Yet, how just a humiliation! Had I been in love, I could
|
||
|
not have been more wretchedly blind! But vanity, not love, has been my
|
||
|
folly. Pleased with the preference of one, and offended by the neglect
|
||
|
of the other, on the very beginning of our acquaintance, I have courted
|
||
|
prepossession and ignorance, and driven reason away, where either were
|
||
|
concerned. Till this moment I never knew myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
From herself to Jane--from Jane to Bingley, her thoughts were in a line
|
||
|
which soon brought to her recollection that Mr. Darcy's explanation
|
||
|
_there_ had appeared very insufficient, and she read it again. Widely
|
||
|
different was the effect of a second perusal. How could she deny that
|
||
|
credit to his assertions in one instance, which she had been obliged to
|
||
|
give in the other? He declared himself to be totally unsuspicious of her
|
||
|
sister's attachment; and she could not help remembering what Charlotte's
|
||
|
opinion had always been. Neither could she deny the justice of his
|
||
|
description of Jane. She felt that Jane's feelings, though fervent, were
|
||
|
little displayed, and that there was a constant complacency in her air
|
||
|
and manner not often united with great sensibility.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When she came to that part of the letter in which her family were
|
||
|
mentioned in terms of such mortifying, yet merited reproach, her sense
|
||
|
of shame was severe. The justice of the charge struck her too forcibly
|
||
|
for denial, and the circumstances to which he particularly alluded as
|
||
|
having passed at the Netherfield ball, and as confirming all his first
|
||
|
disapprobation, could not have made a stronger impression on his mind
|
||
|
than on hers.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The compliment to herself and her sister was not unfelt. It soothed,
|
||
|
but it could not console her for the contempt which had thus been
|
||
|
self-attracted by the rest of her family; and as she considered
|
||
|
that Jane's disappointment had in fact been the work of her nearest
|
||
|
relations, and reflected how materially the credit of both must be hurt
|
||
|
by such impropriety of conduct, she felt depressed beyond anything she
|
||
|
had ever known before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After wandering along the lane for two hours, giving way to every
|
||
|
variety of thought--re-considering events, determining probabilities,
|
||
|
and reconciling herself, as well as she could, to a change so sudden and
|
||
|
so important, fatigue, and a recollection of her long absence, made
|
||
|
her at length return home; and she entered the house with the wish
|
||
|
of appearing cheerful as usual, and the resolution of repressing such
|
||
|
reflections as must make her unfit for conversation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was immediately told that the two gentlemen from Rosings had each
|
||
|
called during her absence; Mr. Darcy, only for a few minutes, to take
|
||
|
leave--but that Colonel Fitzwilliam had been sitting with them at least
|
||
|
an hour, hoping for her return, and almost resolving to walk after her
|
||
|
till she could be found. Elizabeth could but just _affect_ concern
|
||
|
in missing him; she really rejoiced at it. Colonel Fitzwilliam was no
|
||
|
longer an object; she could think only of her letter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 37
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The two gentlemen left Rosings the next morning, and Mr. Collins having
|
||
|
been in waiting near the lodges, to make them his parting obeisance, was
|
||
|
able to bring home the pleasing intelligence, of their appearing in very
|
||
|
good health, and in as tolerable spirits as could be expected, after the
|
||
|
melancholy scene so lately gone through at Rosings. To Rosings he then
|
||
|
hastened, to console Lady Catherine and her daughter; and on his return
|
||
|
brought back, with great satisfaction, a message from her ladyship,
|
||
|
importing that she felt herself so dull as to make her very desirous of
|
||
|
having them all to dine with her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could not see Lady Catherine without recollecting that, had
|
||
|
she chosen it, she might by this time have been presented to her as
|
||
|
her future niece; nor could she think, without a smile, of what her
|
||
|
ladyship's indignation would have been. "What would she have said? how
|
||
|
would she have behaved?" were questions with which she amused herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their first subject was the diminution of the Rosings party. "I assure
|
||
|
you, I feel it exceedingly," said Lady Catherine; "I believe no one
|
||
|
feels the loss of friends so much as I do. But I am particularly
|
||
|
attached to these young men, and know them to be so much attached to
|
||
|
me! They were excessively sorry to go! But so they always are. The
|
||
|
dear Colonel rallied his spirits tolerably till just at last; but Darcy
|
||
|
seemed to feel it most acutely, more, I think, than last year. His
|
||
|
attachment to Rosings certainly increases."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Collins had a compliment, and an allusion to throw in here, which
|
||
|
were kindly smiled on by the mother and daughter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Catherine observed, after dinner, that Miss Bennet seemed out of
|
||
|
spirits, and immediately accounting for it by herself, by supposing that
|
||
|
she did not like to go home again so soon, she added:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But if that is the case, you must write to your mother and beg that
|
||
|
you may stay a little longer. Mrs. Collins will be very glad of your
|
||
|
company, I am sure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am much obliged to your ladyship for your kind invitation," replied
|
||
|
Elizabeth, "but it is not in my power to accept it. I must be in town
|
||
|
next Saturday."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, at that rate, you will have been here only six weeks. I expected
|
||
|
you to stay two months. I told Mrs. Collins so before you came. There
|
||
|
can be no occasion for your going so soon. Mrs. Bennet could certainly
|
||
|
spare you for another fortnight."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But my father cannot. He wrote last week to hurry my return."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! your father of course may spare you, if your mother can. Daughters
|
||
|
are never of so much consequence to a father. And if you will stay
|
||
|
another _month_ complete, it will be in my power to take one of you as
|
||
|
far as London, for I am going there early in June, for a week; and as
|
||
|
Dawson does not object to the barouche-box, there will be very good room
|
||
|
for one of you--and indeed, if the weather should happen to be cool, I
|
||
|
should not object to taking you both, as you are neither of you large."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are all kindness, madam; but I believe we must abide by our
|
||
|
original plan."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Catherine seemed resigned. "Mrs. Collins, you must send a servant
|
||
|
with them. You know I always speak my mind, and I cannot bear the idea
|
||
|
of two young women travelling post by themselves. It is highly improper.
|
||
|
You must contrive to send somebody. I have the greatest dislike in
|
||
|
the world to that sort of thing. Young women should always be properly
|
||
|
guarded and attended, according to their situation in life. When my
|
||
|
niece Georgiana went to Ramsgate last summer, I made a point of her
|
||
|
having two men-servants go with her. Miss Darcy, the daughter of
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy, of Pemberley, and Lady Anne, could not have appeared with
|
||
|
propriety in a different manner. I am excessively attentive to all those
|
||
|
things. You must send John with the young ladies, Mrs. Collins. I
|
||
|
am glad it occurred to me to mention it; for it would really be
|
||
|
discreditable to _you_ to let them go alone."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My uncle is to send a servant for us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! Your uncle! He keeps a man-servant, does he? I am very glad you
|
||
|
have somebody who thinks of these things. Where shall you change horses?
|
||
|
Oh! Bromley, of course. If you mention my name at the Bell, you will be
|
||
|
attended to."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Catherine had many other questions to ask respecting their journey,
|
||
|
and as she did not answer them all herself, attention was necessary,
|
||
|
which Elizabeth believed to be lucky for her; or, with a mind so
|
||
|
occupied, she might have forgotten where she was. Reflection must be
|
||
|
reserved for solitary hours; whenever she was alone, she gave way to it
|
||
|
as the greatest relief; and not a day went by without a solitary
|
||
|
walk, in which she might indulge in all the delight of unpleasant
|
||
|
recollections.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy's letter she was in a fair way of soon knowing by heart. She
|
||
|
studied every sentence; and her feelings towards its writer were at
|
||
|
times widely different. When she remembered the style of his address,
|
||
|
she was still full of indignation; but when she considered how unjustly
|
||
|
she had condemned and upbraided him, her anger was turned against
|
||
|
herself; and his disappointed feelings became the object of compassion.
|
||
|
His attachment excited gratitude, his general character respect; but she
|
||
|
could not approve him; nor could she for a moment repent her refusal,
|
||
|
or feel the slightest inclination ever to see him again. In her own past
|
||
|
behaviour, there was a constant source of vexation and regret; and in
|
||
|
the unhappy defects of her family, a subject of yet heavier chagrin.
|
||
|
They were hopeless of remedy. Her father, contented with laughing at
|
||
|
them, would never exert himself to restrain the wild giddiness of his
|
||
|
youngest daughters; and her mother, with manners so far from right
|
||
|
herself, was entirely insensible of the evil. Elizabeth had frequently
|
||
|
united with Jane in an endeavour to check the imprudence of Catherine
|
||
|
and Lydia; but while they were supported by their mother's indulgence,
|
||
|
what chance could there be of improvement? Catherine, weak-spirited,
|
||
|
irritable, and completely under Lydia's guidance, had been always
|
||
|
affronted by their advice; and Lydia, self-willed and careless, would
|
||
|
scarcely give them a hearing. They were ignorant, idle, and vain. While
|
||
|
there was an officer in Meryton, they would flirt with him; and while
|
||
|
Meryton was within a walk of Longbourn, they would be going there
|
||
|
forever.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Anxiety on Jane's behalf was another prevailing concern; and Mr. Darcy's
|
||
|
explanation, by restoring Bingley to all her former good opinion,
|
||
|
heightened the sense of what Jane had lost. His affection was proved
|
||
|
to have been sincere, and his conduct cleared of all blame, unless any
|
||
|
could attach to the implicitness of his confidence in his friend. How
|
||
|
grievous then was the thought that, of a situation so desirable in every
|
||
|
respect, so replete with advantage, so promising for happiness, Jane had
|
||
|
been deprived, by the folly and indecorum of her own family!
|
||
|
|
||
|
When to these recollections was added the development of Wickham's
|
||
|
character, it may be easily believed that the happy spirits which had
|
||
|
seldom been depressed before, were now so much affected as to make it
|
||
|
almost impossible for her to appear tolerably cheerful.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their engagements at Rosings were as frequent during the last week of
|
||
|
her stay as they had been at first. The very last evening was spent
|
||
|
there; and her ladyship again inquired minutely into the particulars of
|
||
|
their journey, gave them directions as to the best method of packing,
|
||
|
and was so urgent on the necessity of placing gowns in the only right
|
||
|
way, that Maria thought herself obliged, on her return, to undo all the
|
||
|
work of the morning, and pack her trunk afresh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When they parted, Lady Catherine, with great condescension, wished them
|
||
|
a good journey, and invited them to come to Hunsford again next year;
|
||
|
and Miss de Bourgh exerted herself so far as to curtsey and hold out her
|
||
|
hand to both.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 38
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
On Saturday morning Elizabeth and Mr. Collins met for breakfast a few
|
||
|
minutes before the others appeared; and he took the opportunity of
|
||
|
paying the parting civilities which he deemed indispensably necessary.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I know not, Miss Elizabeth," said he, "whether Mrs. Collins has yet
|
||
|
expressed her sense of your kindness in coming to us; but I am very
|
||
|
certain you will not leave the house without receiving her thanks for
|
||
|
it. The favour of your company has been much felt, I assure you. We
|
||
|
know how little there is to tempt anyone to our humble abode. Our plain
|
||
|
manner of living, our small rooms and few domestics, and the little we
|
||
|
see of the world, must make Hunsford extremely dull to a young lady like
|
||
|
yourself; but I hope you will believe us grateful for the condescension,
|
||
|
and that we have done everything in our power to prevent your spending
|
||
|
your time unpleasantly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was eager with her thanks and assurances of happiness. She
|
||
|
had spent six weeks with great enjoyment; and the pleasure of being with
|
||
|
Charlotte, and the kind attentions she had received, must make _her_
|
||
|
feel the obliged. Mr. Collins was gratified, and with a more smiling
|
||
|
solemnity replied:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It gives me great pleasure to hear that you have passed your time not
|
||
|
disagreeably. We have certainly done our best; and most fortunately
|
||
|
having it in our power to introduce you to very superior society, and,
|
||
|
from our connection with Rosings, the frequent means of varying the
|
||
|
humble home scene, I think we may flatter ourselves that your Hunsford
|
||
|
visit cannot have been entirely irksome. Our situation with regard to
|
||
|
Lady Catherine's family is indeed the sort of extraordinary advantage
|
||
|
and blessing which few can boast. You see on what a footing we are. You
|
||
|
see how continually we are engaged there. In truth I must acknowledge
|
||
|
that, with all the disadvantages of this humble parsonage, I should
|
||
|
not think anyone abiding in it an object of compassion, while they are
|
||
|
sharers of our intimacy at Rosings."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Words were insufficient for the elevation of his feelings; and he was
|
||
|
obliged to walk about the room, while Elizabeth tried to unite civility
|
||
|
and truth in a few short sentences.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may, in fact, carry a very favourable report of us into
|
||
|
Hertfordshire, my dear cousin. I flatter myself at least that you will
|
||
|
be able to do so. Lady Catherine's great attentions to Mrs. Collins you
|
||
|
have been a daily witness of; and altogether I trust it does not appear
|
||
|
that your friend has drawn an unfortunate--but on this point it will be
|
||
|
as well to be silent. Only let me assure you, my dear Miss Elizabeth,
|
||
|
that I can from my heart most cordially wish you equal felicity in
|
||
|
marriage. My dear Charlotte and I have but one mind and one way of
|
||
|
thinking. There is in everything a most remarkable resemblance of
|
||
|
character and ideas between us. We seem to have been designed for each
|
||
|
other."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could safely say that it was a great happiness where that was
|
||
|
the case, and with equal sincerity could add, that she firmly believed
|
||
|
and rejoiced in his domestic comforts. She was not sorry, however, to
|
||
|
have the recital of them interrupted by the lady from whom they sprang.
|
||
|
Poor Charlotte! it was melancholy to leave her to such society! But she
|
||
|
had chosen it with her eyes open; and though evidently regretting that
|
||
|
her visitors were to go, she did not seem to ask for compassion. Her
|
||
|
home and her housekeeping, her parish and her poultry, and all their
|
||
|
dependent concerns, had not yet lost their charms.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length the chaise arrived, the trunks were fastened on, the parcels
|
||
|
placed within, and it was pronounced to be ready. After an affectionate
|
||
|
parting between the friends, Elizabeth was attended to the carriage by
|
||
|
Mr. Collins, and as they walked down the garden he was commissioning her
|
||
|
with his best respects to all her family, not forgetting his thanks
|
||
|
for the kindness he had received at Longbourn in the winter, and his
|
||
|
compliments to Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner, though unknown. He then handed her
|
||
|
in, Maria followed, and the door was on the point of being closed,
|
||
|
when he suddenly reminded them, with some consternation, that they had
|
||
|
hitherto forgotten to leave any message for the ladies at Rosings.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But," he added, "you will of course wish to have your humble respects
|
||
|
delivered to them, with your grateful thanks for their kindness to you
|
||
|
while you have been here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth made no objection; the door was then allowed to be shut, and
|
||
|
the carriage drove off.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good gracious!" cried Maria, after a few minutes' silence, "it seems
|
||
|
but a day or two since we first came! and yet how many things have
|
||
|
happened!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A great many indeed," said her companion with a sigh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We have dined nine times at Rosings, besides drinking tea there twice!
|
||
|
How much I shall have to tell!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth added privately, "And how much I shall have to conceal!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their journey was performed without much conversation, or any alarm; and
|
||
|
within four hours of their leaving Hunsford they reached Mr. Gardiner's
|
||
|
house, where they were to remain a few days.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane looked well, and Elizabeth had little opportunity of studying her
|
||
|
spirits, amidst the various engagements which the kindness of her
|
||
|
aunt had reserved for them. But Jane was to go home with her, and at
|
||
|
Longbourn there would be leisure enough for observation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was not without an effort, meanwhile, that she could wait even for
|
||
|
Longbourn, before she told her sister of Mr. Darcy's proposals. To know
|
||
|
that she had the power of revealing what would so exceedingly astonish
|
||
|
Jane, and must, at the same time, so highly gratify whatever of her own
|
||
|
vanity she had not yet been able to reason away, was such a temptation
|
||
|
to openness as nothing could have conquered but the state of indecision
|
||
|
in which she remained as to the extent of what she should communicate;
|
||
|
and her fear, if she once entered on the subject, of being hurried
|
||
|
into repeating something of Bingley which might only grieve her sister
|
||
|
further.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 39
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was the second week in May, in which the three young ladies set out
|
||
|
together from Gracechurch Street for the town of ----, in Hertfordshire;
|
||
|
and, as they drew near the appointed inn where Mr. Bennet's carriage
|
||
|
was to meet them, they quickly perceived, in token of the coachman's
|
||
|
punctuality, both Kitty and Lydia looking out of a dining-room up stairs.
|
||
|
These two girls had been above an hour in the place, happily employed
|
||
|
in visiting an opposite milliner, watching the sentinel on guard, and
|
||
|
dressing a salad and cucumber.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After welcoming their sisters, they triumphantly displayed a table set
|
||
|
out with such cold meat as an inn larder usually affords, exclaiming,
|
||
|
"Is not this nice? Is not this an agreeable surprise?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And we mean to treat you all," added Lydia, "but you must lend us the
|
||
|
money, for we have just spent ours at the shop out there." Then, showing
|
||
|
her purchases--"Look here, I have bought this bonnet. I do not think
|
||
|
it is very pretty; but I thought I might as well buy it as not. I shall
|
||
|
pull it to pieces as soon as I get home, and see if I can make it up any
|
||
|
better."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And when her sisters abused it as ugly, she added, with perfect
|
||
|
unconcern, "Oh! but there were two or three much uglier in the shop; and
|
||
|
when I have bought some prettier-coloured satin to trim it with fresh, I
|
||
|
think it will be very tolerable. Besides, it will not much signify what
|
||
|
one wears this summer, after the ----shire have left Meryton, and they
|
||
|
are going in a fortnight."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are they indeed!" cried Elizabeth, with the greatest satisfaction.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They are going to be encamped near Brighton; and I do so want papa to
|
||
|
take us all there for the summer! It would be such a delicious scheme;
|
||
|
and I dare say would hardly cost anything at all. Mamma would like to
|
||
|
go too of all things! Only think what a miserable summer else we shall
|
||
|
have!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," thought Elizabeth, "_that_ would be a delightful scheme indeed,
|
||
|
and completely do for us at once. Good Heaven! Brighton, and a whole
|
||
|
campful of soldiers, to us, who have been overset already by one poor
|
||
|
regiment of militia, and the monthly balls of Meryton!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now I have got some news for you," said Lydia, as they sat down at
|
||
|
table. "What do you think? It is excellent news--capital news--and about
|
||
|
a certain person we all like!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane and Elizabeth looked at each other, and the waiter was told he need
|
||
|
not stay. Lydia laughed, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Aye, that is just like your formality and discretion. You thought the
|
||
|
waiter must not hear, as if he cared! I dare say he often hears worse
|
||
|
things said than I am going to say. But he is an ugly fellow! I am glad
|
||
|
he is gone. I never saw such a long chin in my life. Well, but now for
|
||
|
my news; it is about dear Wickham; too good for the waiter, is it not?
|
||
|
There is no danger of Wickham's marrying Mary King. There's for you! She
|
||
|
is gone down to her uncle at Liverpool: gone to stay. Wickham is safe."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And Mary King is safe!" added Elizabeth; "safe from a connection
|
||
|
imprudent as to fortune."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is a great fool for going away, if she liked him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But I hope there is no strong attachment on either side," said Jane.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sure there is not on _his_. I will answer for it, he never cared
|
||
|
three straws about her--who could about such a nasty little freckled
|
||
|
thing?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was shocked to think that, however incapable of such
|
||
|
coarseness of _expression_ herself, the coarseness of the _sentiment_
|
||
|
was little other than her own breast had harboured and fancied liberal!
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as all had ate, and the elder ones paid, the carriage was
|
||
|
ordered; and after some contrivance, the whole party, with all their
|
||
|
boxes, work-bags, and parcels, and the unwelcome addition of Kitty's and
|
||
|
Lydia's purchases, were seated in it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How nicely we are all crammed in," cried Lydia. "I am glad I bought my
|
||
|
bonnet, if it is only for the fun of having another bandbox! Well, now
|
||
|
let us be quite comfortable and snug, and talk and laugh all the way
|
||
|
home. And in the first place, let us hear what has happened to you all
|
||
|
since you went away. Have you seen any pleasant men? Have you had any
|
||
|
flirting? I was in great hopes that one of you would have got a husband
|
||
|
before you came back. Jane will be quite an old maid soon, I declare.
|
||
|
She is almost three-and-twenty! Lord, how ashamed I should be of not
|
||
|
being married before three-and-twenty! My aunt Phillips wants you so to
|
||
|
get husbands, you can't think. She says Lizzy had better have taken Mr.
|
||
|
Collins; but _I_ do not think there would have been any fun in it. Lord!
|
||
|
how I should like to be married before any of you; and then I would
|
||
|
chaperon you about to all the balls. Dear me! we had such a good piece
|
||
|
of fun the other day at Colonel Forster's. Kitty and me were to spend
|
||
|
the day there, and Mrs. Forster promised to have a little dance in the
|
||
|
evening; (by the bye, Mrs. Forster and me are _such_ friends!) and so
|
||
|
she asked the two Harringtons to come, but Harriet was ill, and so Pen
|
||
|
was forced to come by herself; and then, what do you think we did? We
|
||
|
dressed up Chamberlayne in woman's clothes on purpose to pass for a
|
||
|
lady, only think what fun! Not a soul knew of it, but Colonel and Mrs.
|
||
|
Forster, and Kitty and me, except my aunt, for we were forced to borrow
|
||
|
one of her gowns; and you cannot imagine how well he looked! When Denny,
|
||
|
and Wickham, and Pratt, and two or three more of the men came in, they
|
||
|
did not know him in the least. Lord! how I laughed! and so did Mrs.
|
||
|
Forster. I thought I should have died. And _that_ made the men suspect
|
||
|
something, and then they soon found out what was the matter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With such kinds of histories of their parties and good jokes, did
|
||
|
Lydia, assisted by Kitty's hints and additions, endeavour to amuse her
|
||
|
companions all the way to Longbourn. Elizabeth listened as little as she
|
||
|
could, but there was no escaping the frequent mention of Wickham's name.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their reception at home was most kind. Mrs. Bennet rejoiced to see Jane
|
||
|
in undiminished beauty; and more than once during dinner did Mr. Bennet
|
||
|
say voluntarily to Elizabeth:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am glad you are come back, Lizzy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their party in the dining-room was large, for almost all the Lucases
|
||
|
came to meet Maria and hear the news; and various were the subjects that
|
||
|
occupied them: Lady Lucas was inquiring of Maria, after the welfare and
|
||
|
poultry of her eldest daughter; Mrs. Bennet was doubly engaged, on one
|
||
|
hand collecting an account of the present fashions from Jane, who sat
|
||
|
some way below her, and, on the other, retailing them all to the younger
|
||
|
Lucases; and Lydia, in a voice rather louder than any other person's,
|
||
|
was enumerating the various pleasures of the morning to anybody who
|
||
|
would hear her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! Mary," said she, "I wish you had gone with us, for we had such fun!
|
||
|
As we went along, Kitty and I drew up the blinds, and pretended there
|
||
|
was nobody in the coach; and I should have gone so all the way, if Kitty
|
||
|
had not been sick; and when we got to the George, I do think we behaved
|
||
|
very handsomely, for we treated the other three with the nicest cold
|
||
|
luncheon in the world, and if you would have gone, we would have treated
|
||
|
you too. And then when we came away it was such fun! I thought we never
|
||
|
should have got into the coach. I was ready to die of laughter. And then
|
||
|
we were so merry all the way home! we talked and laughed so loud, that
|
||
|
anybody might have heard us ten miles off!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
To this Mary very gravely replied, "Far be it from me, my dear sister,
|
||
|
to depreciate such pleasures! They would doubtless be congenial with the
|
||
|
generality of female minds. But I confess they would have no charms for
|
||
|
_me_--I should infinitely prefer a book."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But of this answer Lydia heard not a word. She seldom listened to
|
||
|
anybody for more than half a minute, and never attended to Mary at all.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the afternoon Lydia was urgent with the rest of the girls to walk
|
||
|
to Meryton, and to see how everybody went on; but Elizabeth steadily
|
||
|
opposed the scheme. It should not be said that the Miss Bennets could
|
||
|
not be at home half a day before they were in pursuit of the officers.
|
||
|
There was another reason too for her opposition. She dreaded seeing Mr.
|
||
|
Wickham again, and was resolved to avoid it as long as possible. The
|
||
|
comfort to _her_ of the regiment's approaching removal was indeed beyond
|
||
|
expression. In a fortnight they were to go--and once gone, she hoped
|
||
|
there could be nothing more to plague her on his account.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She had not been many hours at home before she found that the Brighton
|
||
|
scheme, of which Lydia had given them a hint at the inn, was under
|
||
|
frequent discussion between her parents. Elizabeth saw directly that her
|
||
|
father had not the smallest intention of yielding; but his answers were
|
||
|
at the same time so vague and equivocal, that her mother, though often
|
||
|
disheartened, had never yet despaired of succeeding at last.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 40
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's impatience to acquaint Jane with what had happened could
|
||
|
no longer be overcome; and at length, resolving to suppress every
|
||
|
particular in which her sister was concerned, and preparing her to be
|
||
|
surprised, she related to her the next morning the chief of the scene
|
||
|
between Mr. Darcy and herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bennet's astonishment was soon lessened by the strong sisterly
|
||
|
partiality which made any admiration of Elizabeth appear perfectly
|
||
|
natural; and all surprise was shortly lost in other feelings. She was
|
||
|
sorry that Mr. Darcy should have delivered his sentiments in a manner so
|
||
|
little suited to recommend them; but still more was she grieved for the
|
||
|
unhappiness which her sister's refusal must have given him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"His being so sure of succeeding was wrong," said she, "and certainly
|
||
|
ought not to have appeared; but consider how much it must increase his
|
||
|
disappointment!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed," replied Elizabeth, "I am heartily sorry for him; but he has
|
||
|
other feelings, which will probably soon drive away his regard for me.
|
||
|
You do not blame me, however, for refusing him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Blame you! Oh, no."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But you blame me for having spoken so warmly of Wickham?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No--I do not know that you were wrong in saying what you did."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But you _will_ know it, when I tell you what happened the very next
|
||
|
day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She then spoke of the letter, repeating the whole of its contents as far
|
||
|
as they concerned George Wickham. What a stroke was this for poor Jane!
|
||
|
who would willingly have gone through the world without believing that
|
||
|
so much wickedness existed in the whole race of mankind, as was here
|
||
|
collected in one individual. Nor was Darcy's vindication, though
|
||
|
grateful to her feelings, capable of consoling her for such discovery.
|
||
|
Most earnestly did she labour to prove the probability of error, and
|
||
|
seek to clear the one without involving the other.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This will not do," said Elizabeth; "you never will be able to make both
|
||
|
of them good for anything. Take your choice, but you must be satisfied
|
||
|
with only one. There is but such a quantity of merit between them; just
|
||
|
enough to make one good sort of man; and of late it has been shifting
|
||
|
about pretty much. For my part, I am inclined to believe it all Darcy's;
|
||
|
but you shall do as you choose."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was some time, however, before a smile could be extorted from Jane.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not know when I have been more shocked," said she. "Wickham so
|
||
|
very bad! It is almost past belief. And poor Mr. Darcy! Dear Lizzy, only
|
||
|
consider what he must have suffered. Such a disappointment! and with the
|
||
|
knowledge of your ill opinion, too! and having to relate such a thing
|
||
|
of his sister! It is really too distressing. I am sure you must feel it
|
||
|
so."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! no, my regret and compassion are all done away by seeing you so
|
||
|
full of both. I know you will do him such ample justice, that I am
|
||
|
growing every moment more unconcerned and indifferent. Your profusion
|
||
|
makes me saving; and if you lament over him much longer, my heart will
|
||
|
be as light as a feather."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Poor Wickham! there is such an expression of goodness in his
|
||
|
countenance! such an openness and gentleness in his manner!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There certainly was some great mismanagement in the education of those
|
||
|
two young men. One has got all the goodness, and the other all the
|
||
|
appearance of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never thought Mr. Darcy so deficient in the _appearance_ of it as you
|
||
|
used to do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And yet I meant to be uncommonly clever in taking so decided a dislike
|
||
|
to him, without any reason. It is such a spur to one's genius, such an
|
||
|
opening for wit, to have a dislike of that kind. One may be continually
|
||
|
abusive without saying anything just; but one cannot always be laughing
|
||
|
at a man without now and then stumbling on something witty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lizzy, when you first read that letter, I am sure you could not treat
|
||
|
the matter as you do now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, I could not. I was uncomfortable enough, I may say unhappy. And
|
||
|
with no one to speak to about what I felt, no Jane to comfort me and say
|
||
|
that I had not been so very weak and vain and nonsensical as I knew I
|
||
|
had! Oh! how I wanted you!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How unfortunate that you should have used such very strong expressions
|
||
|
in speaking of Wickham to Mr. Darcy, for now they _do_ appear wholly
|
||
|
undeserved."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Certainly. But the misfortune of speaking with bitterness is a most
|
||
|
natural consequence of the prejudices I had been encouraging. There
|
||
|
is one point on which I want your advice. I want to be told whether I
|
||
|
ought, or ought not, to make our acquaintances in general understand
|
||
|
Wickham's character."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bennet paused a little, and then replied, "Surely there can be no
|
||
|
occasion for exposing him so dreadfully. What is your opinion?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That it ought not to be attempted. Mr. Darcy has not authorised me
|
||
|
to make his communication public. On the contrary, every particular
|
||
|
relative to his sister was meant to be kept as much as possible to
|
||
|
myself; and if I endeavour to undeceive people as to the rest of his
|
||
|
conduct, who will believe me? The general prejudice against Mr. Darcy
|
||
|
is so violent, that it would be the death of half the good people in
|
||
|
Meryton to attempt to place him in an amiable light. I am not equal
|
||
|
to it. Wickham will soon be gone; and therefore it will not signify to
|
||
|
anyone here what he really is. Some time hence it will be all found out,
|
||
|
and then we may laugh at their stupidity in not knowing it before. At
|
||
|
present I will say nothing about it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are quite right. To have his errors made public might ruin him for
|
||
|
ever. He is now, perhaps, sorry for what he has done, and anxious to
|
||
|
re-establish a character. We must not make him desperate."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The tumult of Elizabeth's mind was allayed by this conversation. She had
|
||
|
got rid of two of the secrets which had weighed on her for a fortnight,
|
||
|
and was certain of a willing listener in Jane, whenever she might wish
|
||
|
to talk again of either. But there was still something lurking behind,
|
||
|
of which prudence forbade the disclosure. She dared not relate the other
|
||
|
half of Mr. Darcy's letter, nor explain to her sister how sincerely she
|
||
|
had been valued by her friend. Here was knowledge in which no one
|
||
|
could partake; and she was sensible that nothing less than a perfect
|
||
|
understanding between the parties could justify her in throwing off
|
||
|
this last encumbrance of mystery. "And then," said she, "if that very
|
||
|
improbable event should ever take place, I shall merely be able to
|
||
|
tell what Bingley may tell in a much more agreeable manner himself. The
|
||
|
liberty of communication cannot be mine till it has lost all its value!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was now, on being settled at home, at leisure to observe the real
|
||
|
state of her sister's spirits. Jane was not happy. She still cherished a
|
||
|
very tender affection for Bingley. Having never even fancied herself
|
||
|
in love before, her regard had all the warmth of first attachment,
|
||
|
and, from her age and disposition, greater steadiness than most first
|
||
|
attachments often boast; and so fervently did she value his remembrance,
|
||
|
and prefer him to every other man, that all her good sense, and all her
|
||
|
attention to the feelings of her friends, were requisite to check the
|
||
|
indulgence of those regrets which must have been injurious to her own
|
||
|
health and their tranquillity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, Lizzy," said Mrs. Bennet one day, "what is your opinion _now_ of
|
||
|
this sad business of Jane's? For my part, I am determined never to speak
|
||
|
of it again to anybody. I told my sister Phillips so the other day. But
|
||
|
I cannot find out that Jane saw anything of him in London. Well, he is
|
||
|
a very undeserving young man--and I do not suppose there's the least
|
||
|
chance in the world of her ever getting him now. There is no talk of
|
||
|
his coming to Netherfield again in the summer; and I have inquired of
|
||
|
everybody, too, who is likely to know."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not believe he will ever live at Netherfield any more."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh well! it is just as he chooses. Nobody wants him to come. Though I
|
||
|
shall always say he used my daughter extremely ill; and if I was her, I
|
||
|
would not have put up with it. Well, my comfort is, I am sure Jane will
|
||
|
die of a broken heart; and then he will be sorry for what he has done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But as Elizabeth could not receive comfort from any such expectation,
|
||
|
she made no answer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, Lizzy," continued her mother, soon afterwards, "and so the
|
||
|
Collinses live very comfortable, do they? Well, well, I only hope
|
||
|
it will last. And what sort of table do they keep? Charlotte is an
|
||
|
excellent manager, I dare say. If she is half as sharp as her
|
||
|
mother, she is saving enough. There is nothing extravagant in _their_
|
||
|
housekeeping, I dare say."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, nothing at all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A great deal of good management, depend upon it. Yes, yes. _they_ will
|
||
|
take care not to outrun their income. _They_ will never be distressed
|
||
|
for money. Well, much good may it do them! And so, I suppose, they often
|
||
|
talk of having Longbourn when your father is dead. They look upon it as
|
||
|
quite their own, I dare say, whenever that happens."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was a subject which they could not mention before me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No; it would have been strange if they had; but I make no doubt they
|
||
|
often talk of it between themselves. Well, if they can be easy with an
|
||
|
estate that is not lawfully their own, so much the better. I should be
|
||
|
ashamed of having one that was only entailed on me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 41
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The first week of their return was soon gone. The second began. It was
|
||
|
the last of the regiment's stay in Meryton, and all the young ladies
|
||
|
in the neighbourhood were drooping apace. The dejection was almost
|
||
|
universal. The elder Miss Bennets alone were still able to eat, drink,
|
||
|
and sleep, and pursue the usual course of their employments. Very
|
||
|
frequently were they reproached for this insensibility by Kitty and
|
||
|
Lydia, whose own misery was extreme, and who could not comprehend such
|
||
|
hard-heartedness in any of the family.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good Heaven! what is to become of us? What are we to do?" would they
|
||
|
often exclaim in the bitterness of woe. "How can you be smiling so,
|
||
|
Lizzy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their affectionate mother shared all their grief; she remembered what
|
||
|
she had herself endured on a similar occasion, five-and-twenty years
|
||
|
ago.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sure," said she, "I cried for two days together when Colonel
|
||
|
Miller's regiment went away. I thought I should have broken my heart."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sure I shall break _mine_," said Lydia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If one could but go to Brighton!" observed Mrs. Bennet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, yes!--if one could but go to Brighton! But papa is so
|
||
|
disagreeable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A little sea-bathing would set me up forever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And my aunt Phillips is sure it would do _me_ a great deal of good,"
|
||
|
added Kitty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Such were the kind of lamentations resounding perpetually through
|
||
|
Longbourn House. Elizabeth tried to be diverted by them; but all sense
|
||
|
of pleasure was lost in shame. She felt anew the justice of Mr. Darcy's
|
||
|
objections; and never had she been so much disposed to pardon his
|
||
|
interference in the views of his friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But the gloom of Lydia's prospect was shortly cleared away; for she
|
||
|
received an invitation from Mrs. Forster, the wife of the colonel of
|
||
|
the regiment, to accompany her to Brighton. This invaluable friend was a
|
||
|
very young woman, and very lately married. A resemblance in good humour
|
||
|
and good spirits had recommended her and Lydia to each other, and out of
|
||
|
their _three_ months' acquaintance they had been intimate _two_.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The rapture of Lydia on this occasion, her adoration of Mrs. Forster,
|
||
|
the delight of Mrs. Bennet, and the mortification of Kitty, are scarcely
|
||
|
to be described. Wholly inattentive to her sister's feelings, Lydia
|
||
|
flew about the house in restless ecstasy, calling for everyone's
|
||
|
congratulations, and laughing and talking with more violence than ever;
|
||
|
whilst the luckless Kitty continued in the parlour repined at her fate
|
||
|
in terms as unreasonable as her accent was peevish.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot see why Mrs. Forster should not ask _me_ as well as Lydia,"
|
||
|
said she, "Though I am _not_ her particular friend. I have just as much
|
||
|
right to be asked as she has, and more too, for I am two years older."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In vain did Elizabeth attempt to make her reasonable, and Jane to make
|
||
|
her resigned. As for Elizabeth herself, this invitation was so far from
|
||
|
exciting in her the same feelings as in her mother and Lydia, that she
|
||
|
considered it as the death warrant of all possibility of common sense
|
||
|
for the latter; and detestable as such a step must make her were it
|
||
|
known, she could not help secretly advising her father not to let her
|
||
|
go. She represented to him all the improprieties of Lydia's general
|
||
|
behaviour, the little advantage she could derive from the friendship of
|
||
|
such a woman as Mrs. Forster, and the probability of her being yet more
|
||
|
imprudent with such a companion at Brighton, where the temptations must
|
||
|
be greater than at home. He heard her attentively, and then said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lydia will never be easy until she has exposed herself in some public
|
||
|
place or other, and we can never expect her to do it with so
|
||
|
little expense or inconvenience to her family as under the present
|
||
|
circumstances."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you were aware," said Elizabeth, "of the very great disadvantage to
|
||
|
us all which must arise from the public notice of Lydia's unguarded and
|
||
|
imprudent manner--nay, which has already arisen from it, I am sure you
|
||
|
would judge differently in the affair."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Already arisen?" repeated Mr. Bennet. "What, has she frightened away
|
||
|
some of your lovers? Poor little Lizzy! But do not be cast down. Such
|
||
|
squeamish youths as cannot bear to be connected with a little absurdity
|
||
|
are not worth a regret. Come, let me see the list of pitiful fellows who
|
||
|
have been kept aloof by Lydia's folly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed you are mistaken. I have no such injuries to resent. It is not
|
||
|
of particular, but of general evils, which I am now complaining. Our
|
||
|
importance, our respectability in the world must be affected by the
|
||
|
wild volatility, the assurance and disdain of all restraint which mark
|
||
|
Lydia's character. Excuse me, for I must speak plainly. If you, my dear
|
||
|
father, will not take the trouble of checking her exuberant spirits, and
|
||
|
of teaching her that her present pursuits are not to be the business of
|
||
|
her life, she will soon be beyond the reach of amendment. Her character
|
||
|
will be fixed, and she will, at sixteen, be the most determined flirt
|
||
|
that ever made herself or her family ridiculous; a flirt, too, in the
|
||
|
worst and meanest degree of flirtation; without any attraction beyond
|
||
|
youth and a tolerable person; and, from the ignorance and emptiness
|
||
|
of her mind, wholly unable to ward off any portion of that universal
|
||
|
contempt which her rage for admiration will excite. In this danger
|
||
|
Kitty also is comprehended. She will follow wherever Lydia leads. Vain,
|
||
|
ignorant, idle, and absolutely uncontrolled! Oh! my dear father, can you
|
||
|
suppose it possible that they will not be censured and despised wherever
|
||
|
they are known, and that their sisters will not be often involved in the
|
||
|
disgrace?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet saw that her whole heart was in the subject, and
|
||
|
affectionately taking her hand said in reply:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do not make yourself uneasy, my love. Wherever you and Jane are known
|
||
|
you must be respected and valued; and you will not appear to less
|
||
|
advantage for having a couple of--or I may say, three--very silly
|
||
|
sisters. We shall have no peace at Longbourn if Lydia does not go to
|
||
|
Brighton. Let her go, then. Colonel Forster is a sensible man, and will
|
||
|
keep her out of any real mischief; and she is luckily too poor to be an
|
||
|
object of prey to anybody. At Brighton she will be of less importance
|
||
|
even as a common flirt than she has been here. The officers will find
|
||
|
women better worth their notice. Let us hope, therefore, that her being
|
||
|
there may teach her her own insignificance. At any rate, she cannot grow
|
||
|
many degrees worse, without authorising us to lock her up for the rest
|
||
|
of her life."
|
||
|
|
||
|
With this answer Elizabeth was forced to be content; but her own opinion
|
||
|
continued the same, and she left him disappointed and sorry. It was not
|
||
|
in her nature, however, to increase her vexations by dwelling on
|
||
|
them. She was confident of having performed her duty, and to fret
|
||
|
over unavoidable evils, or augment them by anxiety, was no part of her
|
||
|
disposition.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Had Lydia and her mother known the substance of her conference with her
|
||
|
father, their indignation would hardly have found expression in their
|
||
|
united volubility. In Lydia's imagination, a visit to Brighton comprised
|
||
|
every possibility of earthly happiness. She saw, with the creative eye
|
||
|
of fancy, the streets of that gay bathing-place covered with officers.
|
||
|
She saw herself the object of attention, to tens and to scores of them
|
||
|
at present unknown. She saw all the glories of the camp--its tents
|
||
|
stretched forth in beauteous uniformity of lines, crowded with the young
|
||
|
and the gay, and dazzling with scarlet; and, to complete the view, she
|
||
|
saw herself seated beneath a tent, tenderly flirting with at least six
|
||
|
officers at once.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Had she known her sister sought to tear her from such prospects and such
|
||
|
realities as these, what would have been her sensations? They could have
|
||
|
been understood only by her mother, who might have felt nearly the same.
|
||
|
Lydia's going to Brighton was all that consoled her for her melancholy
|
||
|
conviction of her husband's never intending to go there himself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But they were entirely ignorant of what had passed; and their raptures
|
||
|
continued, with little intermission, to the very day of Lydia's leaving
|
||
|
home.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was now to see Mr. Wickham for the last time. Having been
|
||
|
frequently in company with him since her return, agitation was pretty
|
||
|
well over; the agitations of formal partiality entirely so. She had even
|
||
|
learnt to detect, in the very gentleness which had first delighted
|
||
|
her, an affectation and a sameness to disgust and weary. In his present
|
||
|
behaviour to herself, moreover, she had a fresh source of displeasure,
|
||
|
for the inclination he soon testified of renewing those intentions which
|
||
|
had marked the early part of their acquaintance could only serve, after
|
||
|
what had since passed, to provoke her. She lost all concern for him in
|
||
|
finding herself thus selected as the object of such idle and frivolous
|
||
|
gallantry; and while she steadily repressed it, could not but feel the
|
||
|
reproof contained in his believing, that however long, and for whatever
|
||
|
cause, his attentions had been withdrawn, her vanity would be gratified,
|
||
|
and her preference secured at any time by their renewal.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On the very last day of the regiment's remaining at Meryton, he dined,
|
||
|
with other of the officers, at Longbourn; and so little was Elizabeth
|
||
|
disposed to part from him in good humour, that on his making some
|
||
|
inquiry as to the manner in which her time had passed at Hunsford, she
|
||
|
mentioned Colonel Fitzwilliam's and Mr. Darcy's having both spent three
|
||
|
weeks at Rosings, and asked him, if he was acquainted with the former.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He looked surprised, displeased, alarmed; but with a moment's
|
||
|
recollection and a returning smile, replied, that he had formerly seen
|
||
|
him often; and, after observing that he was a very gentlemanlike man,
|
||
|
asked her how she had liked him. Her answer was warmly in his favour.
|
||
|
With an air of indifference he soon afterwards added:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How long did you say he was at Rosings?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nearly three weeks."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And you saw him frequently?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, almost every day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"His manners are very different from his cousin's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, very different. But I think Mr. Darcy improves upon acquaintance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed!" cried Mr. Wickham with a look which did not escape her. "And
|
||
|
pray, may I ask?--" But checking himself, he added, in a gayer tone, "Is
|
||
|
it in address that he improves? Has he deigned to add aught of civility
|
||
|
to his ordinary style?--for I dare not hope," he continued in a lower
|
||
|
and more serious tone, "that he is improved in essentials."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, no!" said Elizabeth. "In essentials, I believe, he is very much
|
||
|
what he ever was."
|
||
|
|
||
|
While she spoke, Wickham looked as if scarcely knowing whether to
|
||
|
rejoice over her words, or to distrust their meaning. There was a
|
||
|
something in her countenance which made him listen with an apprehensive
|
||
|
and anxious attention, while she added:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When I said that he improved on acquaintance, I did not mean that
|
||
|
his mind or his manners were in a state of improvement, but that, from
|
||
|
knowing him better, his disposition was better understood."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Wickham's alarm now appeared in a heightened complexion and agitated
|
||
|
look; for a few minutes he was silent, till, shaking off his
|
||
|
embarrassment, he turned to her again, and said in the gentlest of
|
||
|
accents:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You, who so well know my feeling towards Mr. Darcy, will readily
|
||
|
comprehend how sincerely I must rejoice that he is wise enough to assume
|
||
|
even the _appearance_ of what is right. His pride, in that direction,
|
||
|
may be of service, if not to himself, to many others, for it must only
|
||
|
deter him from such foul misconduct as I have suffered by. I only
|
||
|
fear that the sort of cautiousness to which you, I imagine, have been
|
||
|
alluding, is merely adopted on his visits to his aunt, of whose good
|
||
|
opinion and judgement he stands much in awe. His fear of her has always
|
||
|
operated, I know, when they were together; and a good deal is to be
|
||
|
imputed to his wish of forwarding the match with Miss de Bourgh, which I
|
||
|
am certain he has very much at heart."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could not repress a smile at this, but she answered only by a
|
||
|
slight inclination of the head. She saw that he wanted to engage her on
|
||
|
the old subject of his grievances, and she was in no humour to indulge
|
||
|
him. The rest of the evening passed with the _appearance_, on his
|
||
|
side, of usual cheerfulness, but with no further attempt to distinguish
|
||
|
Elizabeth; and they parted at last with mutual civility, and possibly a
|
||
|
mutual desire of never meeting again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the party broke up, Lydia returned with Mrs. Forster to Meryton,
|
||
|
from whence they were to set out early the next morning. The separation
|
||
|
between her and her family was rather noisy than pathetic. Kitty was the
|
||
|
only one who shed tears; but she did weep from vexation and envy. Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet was diffuse in her good wishes for the felicity of her daughter,
|
||
|
and impressive in her injunctions that she should not miss the
|
||
|
opportunity of enjoying herself as much as possible--advice which
|
||
|
there was every reason to believe would be well attended to; and in
|
||
|
the clamorous happiness of Lydia herself in bidding farewell, the more
|
||
|
gentle adieus of her sisters were uttered without being heard.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 42
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Had Elizabeth's opinion been all drawn from her own family, she could
|
||
|
not have formed a very pleasing opinion of conjugal felicity or domestic
|
||
|
comfort. Her father, captivated by youth and beauty, and that appearance
|
||
|
of good humour which youth and beauty generally give, had married a
|
||
|
woman whose weak understanding and illiberal mind had very early in
|
||
|
their marriage put an end to all real affection for her. Respect,
|
||
|
esteem, and confidence had vanished for ever; and all his views
|
||
|
of domestic happiness were overthrown. But Mr. Bennet was not of
|
||
|
a disposition to seek comfort for the disappointment which his own
|
||
|
imprudence had brought on, in any of those pleasures which too often
|
||
|
console the unfortunate for their folly or their vice. He was fond of
|
||
|
the country and of books; and from these tastes had arisen his principal
|
||
|
enjoyments. To his wife he was very little otherwise indebted, than as
|
||
|
her ignorance and folly had contributed to his amusement. This is not
|
||
|
the sort of happiness which a man would in general wish to owe to his
|
||
|
wife; but where other powers of entertainment are wanting, the true
|
||
|
philosopher will derive benefit from such as are given.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, however, had never been blind to the impropriety of her
|
||
|
father's behaviour as a husband. She had always seen it with pain; but
|
||
|
respecting his abilities, and grateful for his affectionate treatment of
|
||
|
herself, she endeavoured to forget what she could not overlook, and to
|
||
|
banish from her thoughts that continual breach of conjugal obligation
|
||
|
and decorum which, in exposing his wife to the contempt of her own
|
||
|
children, was so highly reprehensible. But she had never felt so
|
||
|
strongly as now the disadvantages which must attend the children of so
|
||
|
unsuitable a marriage, nor ever been so fully aware of the evils arising
|
||
|
from so ill-judged a direction of talents; talents, which, rightly used,
|
||
|
might at least have preserved the respectability of his daughters, even
|
||
|
if incapable of enlarging the mind of his wife.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When Elizabeth had rejoiced over Wickham's departure she found little
|
||
|
other cause for satisfaction in the loss of the regiment. Their parties
|
||
|
abroad were less varied than before, and at home she had a mother and
|
||
|
sister whose constant repinings at the dullness of everything around
|
||
|
them threw a real gloom over their domestic circle; and, though Kitty
|
||
|
might in time regain her natural degree of sense, since the disturbers
|
||
|
of her brain were removed, her other sister, from whose disposition
|
||
|
greater evil might be apprehended, was likely to be hardened in all
|
||
|
her folly and assurance by a situation of such double danger as a
|
||
|
watering-place and a camp. Upon the whole, therefore, she found, what
|
||
|
has been sometimes found before, that an event to which she had been
|
||
|
looking with impatient desire did not, in taking place, bring all the
|
||
|
satisfaction she had promised herself. It was consequently necessary to
|
||
|
name some other period for the commencement of actual felicity--to have
|
||
|
some other point on which her wishes and hopes might be fixed, and by
|
||
|
again enjoying the pleasure of anticipation, console herself for the
|
||
|
present, and prepare for another disappointment. Her tour to the Lakes
|
||
|
was now the object of her happiest thoughts; it was her best consolation
|
||
|
for all the uncomfortable hours which the discontentedness of her mother
|
||
|
and Kitty made inevitable; and could she have included Jane in the
|
||
|
scheme, every part of it would have been perfect.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But it is fortunate," thought she, "that I have something to wish for.
|
||
|
Were the whole arrangement complete, my disappointment would be certain.
|
||
|
But here, by carrying with me one ceaseless source of regret in my
|
||
|
sister's absence, I may reasonably hope to have all my expectations of
|
||
|
pleasure realised. A scheme of which every part promises delight can
|
||
|
never be successful; and general disappointment is only warded off by
|
||
|
the defence of some little peculiar vexation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
When Lydia went away she promised to write very often and very minutely
|
||
|
to her mother and Kitty; but her letters were always long expected, and
|
||
|
always very short. Those to her mother contained little else than that
|
||
|
they were just returned from the library, where such and such officers
|
||
|
had attended them, and where she had seen such beautiful ornaments as
|
||
|
made her quite wild; that she had a new gown, or a new parasol, which
|
||
|
she would have described more fully, but was obliged to leave off in a
|
||
|
violent hurry, as Mrs. Forster called her, and they were going off to
|
||
|
the camp; and from her correspondence with her sister, there was still
|
||
|
less to be learnt--for her letters to Kitty, though rather longer, were
|
||
|
much too full of lines under the words to be made public.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After the first fortnight or three weeks of her absence, health, good
|
||
|
humour, and cheerfulness began to reappear at Longbourn. Everything wore
|
||
|
a happier aspect. The families who had been in town for the winter came
|
||
|
back again, and summer finery and summer engagements arose. Mrs. Bennet
|
||
|
was restored to her usual querulous serenity; and, by the middle of
|
||
|
June, Kitty was so much recovered as to be able to enter Meryton without
|
||
|
tears; an event of such happy promise as to make Elizabeth hope that by
|
||
|
the following Christmas she might be so tolerably reasonable as not to
|
||
|
mention an officer above once a day, unless, by some cruel and malicious
|
||
|
arrangement at the War Office, another regiment should be quartered in
|
||
|
Meryton.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The time fixed for the beginning of their northern tour was now fast
|
||
|
approaching, and a fortnight only was wanting of it, when a letter
|
||
|
arrived from Mrs. Gardiner, which at once delayed its commencement and
|
||
|
curtailed its extent. Mr. Gardiner would be prevented by business from
|
||
|
setting out till a fortnight later in July, and must be in London again
|
||
|
within a month, and as that left too short a period for them to go so
|
||
|
far, and see so much as they had proposed, or at least to see it with
|
||
|
the leisure and comfort they had built on, they were obliged to give up
|
||
|
the Lakes, and substitute a more contracted tour, and, according to the
|
||
|
present plan, were to go no farther northwards than Derbyshire. In that
|
||
|
county there was enough to be seen to occupy the chief of their three
|
||
|
weeks; and to Mrs. Gardiner it had a peculiarly strong attraction. The
|
||
|
town where she had formerly passed some years of her life, and where
|
||
|
they were now to spend a few days, was probably as great an object of
|
||
|
her curiosity as all the celebrated beauties of Matlock, Chatsworth,
|
||
|
Dovedale, or the Peak.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was excessively disappointed; she had set her heart on seeing
|
||
|
the Lakes, and still thought there might have been time enough. But it
|
||
|
was her business to be satisfied--and certainly her temper to be happy;
|
||
|
and all was soon right again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With the mention of Derbyshire there were many ideas connected. It was
|
||
|
impossible for her to see the word without thinking of Pemberley and its
|
||
|
owner. "But surely," said she, "I may enter his county with impunity,
|
||
|
and rob it of a few petrified spars without his perceiving me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The period of expectation was now doubled. Four weeks were to pass away
|
||
|
before her uncle and aunt's arrival. But they did pass away, and Mr.
|
||
|
and Mrs. Gardiner, with their four children, did at length appear at
|
||
|
Longbourn. The children, two girls of six and eight years old, and two
|
||
|
younger boys, were to be left under the particular care of their
|
||
|
cousin Jane, who was the general favourite, and whose steady sense and
|
||
|
sweetness of temper exactly adapted her for attending to them in every
|
||
|
way--teaching them, playing with them, and loving them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Gardiners stayed only one night at Longbourn, and set off the
|
||
|
next morning with Elizabeth in pursuit of novelty and amusement.
|
||
|
One enjoyment was certain--that of suitableness of companions;
|
||
|
a suitableness which comprehended health and temper to bear
|
||
|
inconveniences--cheerfulness to enhance every pleasure--and affection
|
||
|
and intelligence, which might supply it among themselves if there were
|
||
|
disappointments abroad.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It is not the object of this work to give a description of Derbyshire,
|
||
|
nor of any of the remarkable places through which their route thither
|
||
|
lay; Oxford, Blenheim, Warwick, Kenilworth, Birmingham, etc. are
|
||
|
sufficiently known. A small part of Derbyshire is all the present
|
||
|
concern. To the little town of Lambton, the scene of Mrs. Gardiner's
|
||
|
former residence, and where she had lately learned some acquaintance
|
||
|
still remained, they bent their steps, after having seen all the
|
||
|
principal wonders of the country; and within five miles of Lambton,
|
||
|
Elizabeth found from her aunt that Pemberley was situated. It was not
|
||
|
in their direct road, nor more than a mile or two out of it. In
|
||
|
talking over their route the evening before, Mrs. Gardiner expressed
|
||
|
an inclination to see the place again. Mr. Gardiner declared his
|
||
|
willingness, and Elizabeth was applied to for her approbation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My love, should not you like to see a place of which you have heard
|
||
|
so much?" said her aunt; "a place, too, with which so many of your
|
||
|
acquaintances are connected. Wickham passed all his youth there, you
|
||
|
know."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was distressed. She felt that she had no business at
|
||
|
Pemberley, and was obliged to assume a disinclination for seeing it. She
|
||
|
must own that she was tired of seeing great houses; after going over so
|
||
|
many, she really had no pleasure in fine carpets or satin curtains.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner abused her stupidity. "If it were merely a fine house
|
||
|
richly furnished," said she, "I should not care about it myself; but
|
||
|
the grounds are delightful. They have some of the finest woods in the
|
||
|
country."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth said no more--but her mind could not acquiesce. The
|
||
|
possibility of meeting Mr. Darcy, while viewing the place, instantly
|
||
|
occurred. It would be dreadful! She blushed at the very idea, and
|
||
|
thought it would be better to speak openly to her aunt than to run such
|
||
|
a risk. But against this there were objections; and she finally resolved
|
||
|
that it could be the last resource, if her private inquiries to the
|
||
|
absence of the family were unfavourably answered.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Accordingly, when she retired at night, she asked the chambermaid
|
||
|
whether Pemberley were not a very fine place? what was the name of its
|
||
|
proprietor? and, with no little alarm, whether the family were down for
|
||
|
the summer? A most welcome negative followed the last question--and her
|
||
|
alarms now being removed, she was at leisure to feel a great deal of
|
||
|
curiosity to see the house herself; and when the subject was revived the
|
||
|
next morning, and she was again applied to, could readily answer, and
|
||
|
with a proper air of indifference, that she had not really any dislike
|
||
|
to the scheme. To Pemberley, therefore, they were to go.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 43
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, as they drove along, watched for the first appearance of
|
||
|
Pemberley Woods with some perturbation; and when at length they turned
|
||
|
in at the lodge, her spirits were in a high flutter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The park was very large, and contained great variety of ground. They
|
||
|
entered it in one of its lowest points, and drove for some time through
|
||
|
a beautiful wood stretching over a wide extent.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's mind was too full for conversation, but she saw and admired
|
||
|
every remarkable spot and point of view. They gradually ascended for
|
||
|
half-a-mile, and then found themselves at the top of a considerable
|
||
|
eminence, where the wood ceased, and the eye was instantly caught by
|
||
|
Pemberley House, situated on the opposite side of a valley, into which
|
||
|
the road with some abruptness wound. It was a large, handsome stone
|
||
|
building, standing well on rising ground, and backed by a ridge of
|
||
|
high woody hills; and in front, a stream of some natural importance was
|
||
|
swelled into greater, but without any artificial appearance. Its banks
|
||
|
were neither formal nor falsely adorned. Elizabeth was delighted. She
|
||
|
had never seen a place for which nature had done more, or where natural
|
||
|
beauty had been so little counteracted by an awkward taste. They were
|
||
|
all of them warm in their admiration; and at that moment she felt that
|
||
|
to be mistress of Pemberley might be something!
|
||
|
|
||
|
They descended the hill, crossed the bridge, and drove to the door; and,
|
||
|
while examining the nearer aspect of the house, all her apprehension of
|
||
|
meeting its owner returned. She dreaded lest the chambermaid had been
|
||
|
mistaken. On applying to see the place, they were admitted into the
|
||
|
hall; and Elizabeth, as they waited for the housekeeper, had leisure to
|
||
|
wonder at her being where she was.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The housekeeper came; a respectable-looking elderly woman, much less
|
||
|
fine, and more civil, than she had any notion of finding her. They
|
||
|
followed her into the dining-parlour. It was a large, well proportioned
|
||
|
room, handsomely fitted up. Elizabeth, after slightly surveying it, went
|
||
|
to a window to enjoy its prospect. The hill, crowned with wood, which
|
||
|
they had descended, receiving increased abruptness from the distance,
|
||
|
was a beautiful object. Every disposition of the ground was good; and
|
||
|
she looked on the whole scene, the river, the trees scattered on its
|
||
|
banks and the winding of the valley, as far as she could trace it,
|
||
|
with delight. As they passed into other rooms these objects were taking
|
||
|
different positions; but from every window there were beauties to be
|
||
|
seen. The rooms were lofty and handsome, and their furniture suitable to
|
||
|
the fortune of its proprietor; but Elizabeth saw, with admiration of
|
||
|
his taste, that it was neither gaudy nor uselessly fine; with less of
|
||
|
splendour, and more real elegance, than the furniture of Rosings.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And of this place," thought she, "I might have been mistress! With
|
||
|
these rooms I might now have been familiarly acquainted! Instead of
|
||
|
viewing them as a stranger, I might have rejoiced in them as my own, and
|
||
|
welcomed to them as visitors my uncle and aunt. But no,"--recollecting
|
||
|
herself--"that could never be; my uncle and aunt would have been lost to
|
||
|
me; I should not have been allowed to invite them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was a lucky recollection--it saved her from something very like
|
||
|
regret.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She longed to inquire of the housekeeper whether her master was really
|
||
|
absent, but had not the courage for it. At length however, the question
|
||
|
was asked by her uncle; and she turned away with alarm, while Mrs.
|
||
|
Reynolds replied that he was, adding, "But we expect him to-morrow, with
|
||
|
a large party of friends." How rejoiced was Elizabeth that their own
|
||
|
journey had not by any circumstance been delayed a day!
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her aunt now called her to look at a picture. She approached and saw the
|
||
|
likeness of Mr. Wickham, suspended, amongst several other miniatures,
|
||
|
over the mantelpiece. Her aunt asked her, smilingly, how she liked it.
|
||
|
The housekeeper came forward, and told them it was a picture of a young
|
||
|
gentleman, the son of her late master's steward, who had been brought
|
||
|
up by him at his own expense. "He is now gone into the army," she added;
|
||
|
"but I am afraid he has turned out very wild."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner looked at her niece with a smile, but Elizabeth could not
|
||
|
return it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And that," said Mrs. Reynolds, pointing to another of the miniatures,
|
||
|
"is my master--and very like him. It was drawn at the same time as the
|
||
|
other--about eight years ago."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have heard much of your master's fine person," said Mrs. Gardiner,
|
||
|
looking at the picture; "it is a handsome face. But, Lizzy, you can tell
|
||
|
us whether it is like or not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Reynolds respect for Elizabeth seemed to increase on this
|
||
|
intimation of her knowing her master.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Does that young lady know Mr. Darcy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth coloured, and said: "A little."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And do not you think him a very handsome gentleman, ma'am?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, very handsome."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sure I know none so handsome; but in the gallery up stairs you
|
||
|
will see a finer, larger picture of him than this. This room was my late
|
||
|
master's favourite room, and these miniatures are just as they used to
|
||
|
be then. He was very fond of them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This accounted to Elizabeth for Mr. Wickham's being among them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Reynolds then directed their attention to one of Miss Darcy, drawn
|
||
|
when she was only eight years old.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And is Miss Darcy as handsome as her brother?" said Mrs. Gardiner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! yes--the handsomest young lady that ever was seen; and so
|
||
|
accomplished!--She plays and sings all day long. In the next room is
|
||
|
a new instrument just come down for her--a present from my master; she
|
||
|
comes here to-morrow with him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Gardiner, whose manners were very easy and pleasant, encouraged her
|
||
|
communicativeness by his questions and remarks; Mrs. Reynolds, either
|
||
|
by pride or attachment, had evidently great pleasure in talking of her
|
||
|
master and his sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is your master much at Pemberley in the course of the year?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not so much as I could wish, sir; but I dare say he may spend half his
|
||
|
time here; and Miss Darcy is always down for the summer months."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Except," thought Elizabeth, "when she goes to Ramsgate."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If your master would marry, you might see more of him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, sir; but I do not know when _that_ will be. I do not know who is
|
||
|
good enough for him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner smiled. Elizabeth could not help saying, "It is
|
||
|
very much to his credit, I am sure, that you should think so."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I say no more than the truth, and everybody will say that knows him,"
|
||
|
replied the other. Elizabeth thought this was going pretty far; and she
|
||
|
listened with increasing astonishment as the housekeeper added, "I have
|
||
|
never known a cross word from him in my life, and I have known him ever
|
||
|
since he was four years old."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was praise, of all others most extraordinary, most opposite to her
|
||
|
ideas. That he was not a good-tempered man had been her firmest opinion.
|
||
|
Her keenest attention was awakened; she longed to hear more, and was
|
||
|
grateful to her uncle for saying:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There are very few people of whom so much can be said. You are lucky in
|
||
|
having such a master."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, sir, I know I am. If I were to go through the world, I could
|
||
|
not meet with a better. But I have always observed, that they who are
|
||
|
good-natured when children, are good-natured when they grow up; and
|
||
|
he was always the sweetest-tempered, most generous-hearted boy in the
|
||
|
world."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth almost stared at her. "Can this be Mr. Darcy?" thought she.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"His father was an excellent man," said Mrs. Gardiner.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, ma'am, that he was indeed; and his son will be just like him--just
|
||
|
as affable to the poor."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth listened, wondered, doubted, and was impatient for more. Mrs.
|
||
|
Reynolds could interest her on no other point. She related the subjects
|
||
|
of the pictures, the dimensions of the rooms, and the price of the
|
||
|
furniture, in vain. Mr. Gardiner, highly amused by the kind of family
|
||
|
prejudice to which he attributed her excessive commendation of her
|
||
|
master, soon led again to the subject; and she dwelt with energy on his
|
||
|
many merits as they proceeded together up the great staircase.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is the best landlord, and the best master," said she, "that ever
|
||
|
lived; not like the wild young men nowadays, who think of nothing but
|
||
|
themselves. There is not one of his tenants or servants but will give
|
||
|
him a good name. Some people call him proud; but I am sure I never saw
|
||
|
anything of it. To my fancy, it is only because he does not rattle away
|
||
|
like other young men."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In what an amiable light does this place him!" thought Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This fine account of him," whispered her aunt as they walked, "is not
|
||
|
quite consistent with his behaviour to our poor friend."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps we might be deceived."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is not very likely; our authority was too good."
|
||
|
|
||
|
On reaching the spacious lobby above they were shown into a very pretty
|
||
|
sitting-room, lately fitted up with greater elegance and lightness than
|
||
|
the apartments below; and were informed that it was but just done to
|
||
|
give pleasure to Miss Darcy, who had taken a liking to the room when
|
||
|
last at Pemberley.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is certainly a good brother," said Elizabeth, as she walked towards
|
||
|
one of the windows.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Reynolds anticipated Miss Darcy's delight, when she should enter
|
||
|
the room. "And this is always the way with him," she added. "Whatever
|
||
|
can give his sister any pleasure is sure to be done in a moment. There
|
||
|
is nothing he would not do for her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The picture-gallery, and two or three of the principal bedrooms, were
|
||
|
all that remained to be shown. In the former were many good paintings;
|
||
|
but Elizabeth knew nothing of the art; and from such as had been already
|
||
|
visible below, she had willingly turned to look at some drawings of Miss
|
||
|
Darcy's, in crayons, whose subjects were usually more interesting, and
|
||
|
also more intelligible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the gallery there were many family portraits, but they could have
|
||
|
little to fix the attention of a stranger. Elizabeth walked in quest of
|
||
|
the only face whose features would be known to her. At last it arrested
|
||
|
her--and she beheld a striking resemblance to Mr. Darcy, with such a
|
||
|
smile over the face as she remembered to have sometimes seen when he
|
||
|
looked at her. She stood several minutes before the picture, in earnest
|
||
|
contemplation, and returned to it again before they quitted the gallery.
|
||
|
Mrs. Reynolds informed them that it had been taken in his father's
|
||
|
lifetime.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was certainly at this moment, in Elizabeth's mind, a more gentle
|
||
|
sensation towards the original than she had ever felt at the height of
|
||
|
their acquaintance. The commendation bestowed on him by Mrs. Reynolds
|
||
|
was of no trifling nature. What praise is more valuable than the praise
|
||
|
of an intelligent servant? As a brother, a landlord, a master, she
|
||
|
considered how many people's happiness were in his guardianship!--how
|
||
|
much of pleasure or pain was it in his power to bestow!--how much of
|
||
|
good or evil must be done by him! Every idea that had been brought
|
||
|
forward by the housekeeper was favourable to his character, and as she
|
||
|
stood before the canvas on which he was represented, and fixed his
|
||
|
eyes upon herself, she thought of his regard with a deeper sentiment of
|
||
|
gratitude than it had ever raised before; she remembered its warmth, and
|
||
|
softened its impropriety of expression.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When all of the house that was open to general inspection had been seen,
|
||
|
they returned downstairs, and, taking leave of the housekeeper, were
|
||
|
consigned over to the gardener, who met them at the hall-door.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As they walked across the hall towards the river, Elizabeth turned back
|
||
|
to look again; her uncle and aunt stopped also, and while the former
|
||
|
was conjecturing as to the date of the building, the owner of it himself
|
||
|
suddenly came forward from the road, which led behind it to the stables.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were within twenty yards of each other, and so abrupt was his
|
||
|
appearance, that it was impossible to avoid his sight. Their eyes
|
||
|
instantly met, and the cheeks of both were overspread with the deepest
|
||
|
blush. He absolutely started, and for a moment seemed immovable from
|
||
|
surprise; but shortly recovering himself, advanced towards the party,
|
||
|
and spoke to Elizabeth, if not in terms of perfect composure, at least
|
||
|
of perfect civility.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She had instinctively turned away; but stopping on his approach,
|
||
|
received his compliments with an embarrassment impossible to be
|
||
|
overcome. Had his first appearance, or his resemblance to the picture
|
||
|
they had just been examining, been insufficient to assure the other two
|
||
|
that they now saw Mr. Darcy, the gardener's expression of surprise, on
|
||
|
beholding his master, must immediately have told it. They stood a little
|
||
|
aloof while he was talking to their niece, who, astonished and confused,
|
||
|
scarcely dared lift her eyes to his face, and knew not what answer
|
||
|
she returned to his civil inquiries after her family. Amazed at the
|
||
|
alteration of his manner since they last parted, every sentence that
|
||
|
he uttered was increasing her embarrassment; and every idea of the
|
||
|
impropriety of her being found there recurring to her mind, the few
|
||
|
minutes in which they continued were some of the most uncomfortable in
|
||
|
her life. Nor did he seem much more at ease; when he spoke, his accent
|
||
|
had none of its usual sedateness; and he repeated his inquiries as
|
||
|
to the time of her having left Longbourn, and of her having stayed in
|
||
|
Derbyshire, so often, and in so hurried a way, as plainly spoke the
|
||
|
distraction of his thoughts.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length every idea seemed to fail him; and, after standing a few
|
||
|
moments without saying a word, he suddenly recollected himself, and took
|
||
|
leave.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The others then joined her, and expressed admiration of his figure; but
|
||
|
Elizabeth heard not a word, and wholly engrossed by her own feelings,
|
||
|
followed them in silence. She was overpowered by shame and vexation. Her
|
||
|
coming there was the most unfortunate, the most ill-judged thing in the
|
||
|
world! How strange it must appear to him! In what a disgraceful light
|
||
|
might it not strike so vain a man! It might seem as if she had purposely
|
||
|
thrown herself in his way again! Oh! why did she come? Or, why did he
|
||
|
thus come a day before he was expected? Had they been only ten minutes
|
||
|
sooner, they should have been beyond the reach of his discrimination;
|
||
|
for it was plain that he was that moment arrived--that moment alighted
|
||
|
from his horse or his carriage. She blushed again and again over
|
||
|
the perverseness of the meeting. And his behaviour, so strikingly
|
||
|
altered--what could it mean? That he should even speak to her was
|
||
|
amazing!--but to speak with such civility, to inquire after her family!
|
||
|
Never in her life had she seen his manners so little dignified, never
|
||
|
had he spoken with such gentleness as on this unexpected meeting. What
|
||
|
a contrast did it offer to his last address in Rosings Park, when he put
|
||
|
his letter into her hand! She knew not what to think, or how to account
|
||
|
for it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They had now entered a beautiful walk by the side of the water, and
|
||
|
every step was bringing forward a nobler fall of ground, or a finer
|
||
|
reach of the woods to which they were approaching; but it was some time
|
||
|
before Elizabeth was sensible of any of it; and, though she answered
|
||
|
mechanically to the repeated appeals of her uncle and aunt, and
|
||
|
seemed to direct her eyes to such objects as they pointed out, she
|
||
|
distinguished no part of the scene. Her thoughts were all fixed on that
|
||
|
one spot of Pemberley House, whichever it might be, where Mr. Darcy then
|
||
|
was. She longed to know what at the moment was passing in his mind--in
|
||
|
what manner he thought of her, and whether, in defiance of everything,
|
||
|
she was still dear to him. Perhaps he had been civil only because he
|
||
|
felt himself at ease; yet there had been _that_ in his voice which was
|
||
|
not like ease. Whether he had felt more of pain or of pleasure in
|
||
|
seeing her she could not tell, but he certainly had not seen her with
|
||
|
composure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At length, however, the remarks of her companions on her absence of mind
|
||
|
aroused her, and she felt the necessity of appearing more like herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They entered the woods, and bidding adieu to the river for a while,
|
||
|
ascended some of the higher grounds; when, in spots where the opening of
|
||
|
the trees gave the eye power to wander, were many charming views of the
|
||
|
valley, the opposite hills, with the long range of woods overspreading
|
||
|
many, and occasionally part of the stream. Mr. Gardiner expressed a wish
|
||
|
of going round the whole park, but feared it might be beyond a walk.
|
||
|
With a triumphant smile they were told that it was ten miles round.
|
||
|
It settled the matter; and they pursued the accustomed circuit; which
|
||
|
brought them again, after some time, in a descent among hanging woods,
|
||
|
to the edge of the water, and one of its narrowest parts. They crossed
|
||
|
it by a simple bridge, in character with the general air of the scene;
|
||
|
it was a spot less adorned than any they had yet visited; and the
|
||
|
valley, here contracted into a glen, allowed room only for the stream,
|
||
|
and a narrow walk amidst the rough coppice-wood which bordered it.
|
||
|
Elizabeth longed to explore its windings; but when they had crossed the
|
||
|
bridge, and perceived their distance from the house, Mrs. Gardiner,
|
||
|
who was not a great walker, could go no farther, and thought only
|
||
|
of returning to the carriage as quickly as possible. Her niece was,
|
||
|
therefore, obliged to submit, and they took their way towards the house
|
||
|
on the opposite side of the river, in the nearest direction; but their
|
||
|
progress was slow, for Mr. Gardiner, though seldom able to indulge the
|
||
|
taste, was very fond of fishing, and was so much engaged in watching the
|
||
|
occasional appearance of some trout in the water, and talking to the
|
||
|
man about them, that he advanced but little. Whilst wandering on in this
|
||
|
slow manner, they were again surprised, and Elizabeth's astonishment
|
||
|
was quite equal to what it had been at first, by the sight of Mr. Darcy
|
||
|
approaching them, and at no great distance. The walk being here
|
||
|
less sheltered than on the other side, allowed them to see him before
|
||
|
they met. Elizabeth, however astonished, was at least more prepared
|
||
|
for an interview than before, and resolved to appear and to speak with
|
||
|
calmness, if he really intended to meet them. For a few moments, indeed,
|
||
|
she felt that he would probably strike into some other path. The idea
|
||
|
lasted while a turning in the walk concealed him from their view; the
|
||
|
turning past, he was immediately before them. With a glance, she saw
|
||
|
that he had lost none of his recent civility; and, to imitate his
|
||
|
politeness, she began, as they met, to admire the beauty of the place;
|
||
|
but she had not got beyond the words "delightful," and "charming," when
|
||
|
some unlucky recollections obtruded, and she fancied that praise of
|
||
|
Pemberley from her might be mischievously construed. Her colour changed,
|
||
|
and she said no more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner was standing a little behind; and on her pausing, he asked
|
||
|
her if she would do him the honour of introducing him to her friends.
|
||
|
This was a stroke of civility for which she was quite unprepared;
|
||
|
and she could hardly suppress a smile at his being now seeking the
|
||
|
acquaintance of some of those very people against whom his pride had
|
||
|
revolted in his offer to herself. "What will be his surprise," thought
|
||
|
she, "when he knows who they are? He takes them now for people of
|
||
|
fashion."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The introduction, however, was immediately made; and as she named their
|
||
|
relationship to herself, she stole a sly look at him, to see how he bore
|
||
|
it, and was not without the expectation of his decamping as fast as he
|
||
|
could from such disgraceful companions. That he was _surprised_ by the
|
||
|
connection was evident; he sustained it, however, with fortitude, and
|
||
|
so far from going away, turned back with them, and entered into
|
||
|
conversation with Mr. Gardiner. Elizabeth could not but be pleased,
|
||
|
could not but triumph. It was consoling that he should know she had
|
||
|
some relations for whom there was no need to blush. She listened most
|
||
|
attentively to all that passed between them, and gloried in every
|
||
|
expression, every sentence of her uncle, which marked his intelligence,
|
||
|
his taste, or his good manners.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The conversation soon turned upon fishing; and she heard Mr. Darcy
|
||
|
invite him, with the greatest civility, to fish there as often as he
|
||
|
chose while he continued in the neighbourhood, offering at the same time
|
||
|
to supply him with fishing tackle, and pointing out those parts of
|
||
|
the stream where there was usually most sport. Mrs. Gardiner, who was
|
||
|
walking arm-in-arm with Elizabeth, gave her a look expressive of wonder.
|
||
|
Elizabeth said nothing, but it gratified her exceedingly; the compliment
|
||
|
must be all for herself. Her astonishment, however, was extreme, and
|
||
|
continually was she repeating, "Why is he so altered? From what can
|
||
|
it proceed? It cannot be for _me_--it cannot be for _my_ sake that his
|
||
|
manners are thus softened. My reproofs at Hunsford could not work such a
|
||
|
change as this. It is impossible that he should still love me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
After walking some time in this way, the two ladies in front, the two
|
||
|
gentlemen behind, on resuming their places, after descending to
|
||
|
the brink of the river for the better inspection of some curious
|
||
|
water-plant, there chanced to be a little alteration. It originated
|
||
|
in Mrs. Gardiner, who, fatigued by the exercise of the morning, found
|
||
|
Elizabeth's arm inadequate to her support, and consequently preferred
|
||
|
her husband's. Mr. Darcy took her place by her niece, and they walked on
|
||
|
together. After a short silence, the lady first spoke. She wished him
|
||
|
to know that she had been assured of his absence before she came to the
|
||
|
place, and accordingly began by observing, that his arrival had been
|
||
|
very unexpected--"for your housekeeper," she added, "informed us that
|
||
|
you would certainly not be here till to-morrow; and indeed, before we
|
||
|
left Bakewell, we understood that you were not immediately expected
|
||
|
in the country." He acknowledged the truth of it all, and said that
|
||
|
business with his steward had occasioned his coming forward a few hours
|
||
|
before the rest of the party with whom he had been travelling. "They
|
||
|
will join me early to-morrow," he continued, "and among them are some
|
||
|
who will claim an acquaintance with you--Mr. Bingley and his sisters."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth answered only by a slight bow. Her thoughts were instantly
|
||
|
driven back to the time when Mr. Bingley's name had been the last
|
||
|
mentioned between them; and, if she might judge by his complexion, _his_
|
||
|
mind was not very differently engaged.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is also one other person in the party," he continued after a
|
||
|
pause, "who more particularly wishes to be known to you. Will you allow
|
||
|
me, or do I ask too much, to introduce my sister to your acquaintance
|
||
|
during your stay at Lambton?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
The surprise of such an application was great indeed; it was too great
|
||
|
for her to know in what manner she acceded to it. She immediately felt
|
||
|
that whatever desire Miss Darcy might have of being acquainted with her
|
||
|
must be the work of her brother, and, without looking farther, it was
|
||
|
satisfactory; it was gratifying to know that his resentment had not made
|
||
|
him think really ill of her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They now walked on in silence, each of them deep in thought. Elizabeth
|
||
|
was not comfortable; that was impossible; but she was flattered and
|
||
|
pleased. His wish of introducing his sister to her was a compliment of
|
||
|
the highest kind. They soon outstripped the others, and when they had
|
||
|
reached the carriage, Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner were half a quarter of a
|
||
|
mile behind.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He then asked her to walk into the house--but she declared herself not
|
||
|
tired, and they stood together on the lawn. At such a time much might
|
||
|
have been said, and silence was very awkward. She wanted to talk, but
|
||
|
there seemed to be an embargo on every subject. At last she recollected
|
||
|
that she had been travelling, and they talked of Matlock and Dove Dale
|
||
|
with great perseverance. Yet time and her aunt moved slowly--and her
|
||
|
patience and her ideas were nearly worn out before the tete-a-tete was
|
||
|
over. On Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner's coming up they were all pressed to go
|
||
|
into the house and take some refreshment; but this was declined, and
|
||
|
they parted on each side with utmost politeness. Mr. Darcy handed the
|
||
|
ladies into the carriage; and when it drove off, Elizabeth saw him
|
||
|
walking slowly towards the house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The observations of her uncle and aunt now began; and each of them
|
||
|
pronounced him to be infinitely superior to anything they had expected.
|
||
|
"He is perfectly well behaved, polite, and unassuming," said her uncle.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There _is_ something a little stately in him, to be sure," replied her
|
||
|
aunt, "but it is confined to his air, and is not unbecoming. I can now
|
||
|
say with the housekeeper, that though some people may call him proud, I
|
||
|
have seen nothing of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I was never more surprised than by his behaviour to us. It was more
|
||
|
than civil; it was really attentive; and there was no necessity for such
|
||
|
attention. His acquaintance with Elizabeth was very trifling."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"To be sure, Lizzy," said her aunt, "he is not so handsome as Wickham;
|
||
|
or, rather, he has not Wickham's countenance, for his features
|
||
|
are perfectly good. But how came you to tell me that he was so
|
||
|
disagreeable?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth excused herself as well as she could; said that she had liked
|
||
|
him better when they had met in Kent than before, and that she had never
|
||
|
seen him so pleasant as this morning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But perhaps he may be a little whimsical in his civilities," replied
|
||
|
her uncle. "Your great men often are; and therefore I shall not take him
|
||
|
at his word, as he might change his mind another day, and warn me off
|
||
|
his grounds."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth felt that they had entirely misunderstood his character, but
|
||
|
said nothing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From what we have seen of him," continued Mrs. Gardiner, "I really
|
||
|
should not have thought that he could have behaved in so cruel a way by
|
||
|
anybody as he has done by poor Wickham. He has not an ill-natured look.
|
||
|
On the contrary, there is something pleasing about his mouth when he
|
||
|
speaks. And there is something of dignity in his countenance that would
|
||
|
not give one an unfavourable idea of his heart. But, to be sure, the
|
||
|
good lady who showed us his house did give him a most flaming character!
|
||
|
I could hardly help laughing aloud sometimes. But he is a liberal
|
||
|
master, I suppose, and _that_ in the eye of a servant comprehends every
|
||
|
virtue."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth here felt herself called on to say something in vindication of
|
||
|
his behaviour to Wickham; and therefore gave them to understand, in
|
||
|
as guarded a manner as she could, that by what she had heard from
|
||
|
his relations in Kent, his actions were capable of a very different
|
||
|
construction; and that his character was by no means so faulty, nor
|
||
|
Wickham's so amiable, as they had been considered in Hertfordshire. In
|
||
|
confirmation of this, she related the particulars of all the pecuniary
|
||
|
transactions in which they had been connected, without actually naming
|
||
|
her authority, but stating it to be such as might be relied on.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner was surprised and concerned; but as they were now
|
||
|
approaching the scene of her former pleasures, every idea gave way to
|
||
|
the charm of recollection; and she was too much engaged in pointing out
|
||
|
to her husband all the interesting spots in its environs to think of
|
||
|
anything else. Fatigued as she had been by the morning's walk they
|
||
|
had no sooner dined than she set off again in quest of her former
|
||
|
acquaintance, and the evening was spent in the satisfactions of a
|
||
|
intercourse renewed after many years' discontinuance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The occurrences of the day were too full of interest to leave Elizabeth
|
||
|
much attention for any of these new friends; and she could do nothing
|
||
|
but think, and think with wonder, of Mr. Darcy's civility, and, above
|
||
|
all, of his wishing her to be acquainted with his sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 44
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth had settled it that Mr. Darcy would bring his sister to visit
|
||
|
her the very day after her reaching Pemberley; and was consequently
|
||
|
resolved not to be out of sight of the inn the whole of that morning.
|
||
|
But her conclusion was false; for on the very morning after their
|
||
|
arrival at Lambton, these visitors came. They had been walking about the
|
||
|
place with some of their new friends, and were just returning to the inn
|
||
|
to dress themselves for dining with the same family, when the sound of a
|
||
|
carriage drew them to a window, and they saw a gentleman and a lady in
|
||
|
a curricle driving up the street. Elizabeth immediately recognizing
|
||
|
the livery, guessed what it meant, and imparted no small degree of her
|
||
|
surprise to her relations by acquainting them with the honour which she
|
||
|
expected. Her uncle and aunt were all amazement; and the embarrassment
|
||
|
of her manner as she spoke, joined to the circumstance itself, and many
|
||
|
of the circumstances of the preceding day, opened to them a new idea on
|
||
|
the business. Nothing had ever suggested it before, but they felt that
|
||
|
there was no other way of accounting for such attentions from such a
|
||
|
quarter than by supposing a partiality for their niece. While these
|
||
|
newly-born notions were passing in their heads, the perturbation of
|
||
|
Elizabeth's feelings was at every moment increasing. She was quite
|
||
|
amazed at her own discomposure; but amongst other causes of disquiet,
|
||
|
she dreaded lest the partiality of the brother should have said too much
|
||
|
in her favour; and, more than commonly anxious to please, she naturally
|
||
|
suspected that every power of pleasing would fail her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She retreated from the window, fearful of being seen; and as she walked
|
||
|
up and down the room, endeavouring to compose herself, saw such looks of
|
||
|
inquiring surprise in her uncle and aunt as made everything worse.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Darcy and her brother appeared, and this formidable introduction
|
||
|
took place. With astonishment did Elizabeth see that her new
|
||
|
acquaintance was at least as much embarrassed as herself. Since her
|
||
|
being at Lambton, she had heard that Miss Darcy was exceedingly proud;
|
||
|
but the observation of a very few minutes convinced her that she was
|
||
|
only exceedingly shy. She found it difficult to obtain even a word from
|
||
|
her beyond a monosyllable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Darcy was tall, and on a larger scale than Elizabeth; and, though
|
||
|
little more than sixteen, her figure was formed, and her appearance
|
||
|
womanly and graceful. She was less handsome than her brother; but there
|
||
|
was sense and good humour in her face, and her manners were perfectly
|
||
|
unassuming and gentle. Elizabeth, who had expected to find in her as
|
||
|
acute and unembarrassed an observer as ever Mr. Darcy had been, was much
|
||
|
relieved by discerning such different feelings.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They had not long been together before Mr. Darcy told her that Bingley
|
||
|
was also coming to wait on her; and she had barely time to express her
|
||
|
satisfaction, and prepare for such a visitor, when Bingley's quick
|
||
|
step was heard on the stairs, and in a moment he entered the room. All
|
||
|
Elizabeth's anger against him had been long done away; but had she still
|
||
|
felt any, it could hardly have stood its ground against the unaffected
|
||
|
cordiality with which he expressed himself on seeing her again. He
|
||
|
inquired in a friendly, though general way, after her family, and looked
|
||
|
and spoke with the same good-humoured ease that he had ever done.
|
||
|
|
||
|
To Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner he was scarcely a less interesting personage
|
||
|
than to herself. They had long wished to see him. The whole party before
|
||
|
them, indeed, excited a lively attention. The suspicions which had just
|
||
|
arisen of Mr. Darcy and their niece directed their observation towards
|
||
|
each with an earnest though guarded inquiry; and they soon drew from
|
||
|
those inquiries the full conviction that one of them at least knew
|
||
|
what it was to love. Of the lady's sensations they remained a little
|
||
|
in doubt; but that the gentleman was overflowing with admiration was
|
||
|
evident enough.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, on her side, had much to do. She wanted to ascertain the
|
||
|
feelings of each of her visitors; she wanted to compose her own, and
|
||
|
to make herself agreeable to all; and in the latter object, where she
|
||
|
feared most to fail, she was most sure of success, for those to whom she
|
||
|
endeavoured to give pleasure were prepossessed in her favour. Bingley
|
||
|
was ready, Georgiana was eager, and Darcy determined, to be pleased.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In seeing Bingley, her thoughts naturally flew to her sister; and, oh!
|
||
|
how ardently did she long to know whether any of his were directed in
|
||
|
a like manner. Sometimes she could fancy that he talked less than on
|
||
|
former occasions, and once or twice pleased herself with the notion
|
||
|
that, as he looked at her, he was trying to trace a resemblance. But,
|
||
|
though this might be imaginary, she could not be deceived as to his
|
||
|
behaviour to Miss Darcy, who had been set up as a rival to Jane. No look
|
||
|
appeared on either side that spoke particular regard. Nothing occurred
|
||
|
between them that could justify the hopes of his sister. On this point
|
||
|
she was soon satisfied; and two or three little circumstances occurred
|
||
|
ere they parted, which, in her anxious interpretation, denoted a
|
||
|
recollection of Jane not untinctured by tenderness, and a wish of saying
|
||
|
more that might lead to the mention of her, had he dared. He observed
|
||
|
to her, at a moment when the others were talking together, and in a tone
|
||
|
which had something of real regret, that it "was a very long time since
|
||
|
he had had the pleasure of seeing her;" and, before she could reply,
|
||
|
he added, "It is above eight months. We have not met since the 26th of
|
||
|
November, when we were all dancing together at Netherfield."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was pleased to find his memory so exact; and he afterwards
|
||
|
took occasion to ask her, when unattended to by any of the rest, whether
|
||
|
_all_ her sisters were at Longbourn. There was not much in the question,
|
||
|
nor in the preceding remark; but there was a look and a manner which
|
||
|
gave them meaning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was not often that she could turn her eyes on Mr. Darcy himself;
|
||
|
but, whenever she did catch a glimpse, she saw an expression of general
|
||
|
complaisance, and in all that he said she heard an accent so removed
|
||
|
from _hauteur_ or disdain of his companions, as convinced her that
|
||
|
the improvement of manners which she had yesterday witnessed however
|
||
|
temporary its existence might prove, had at least outlived one day. When
|
||
|
she saw him thus seeking the acquaintance and courting the good opinion
|
||
|
of people with whom any intercourse a few months ago would have been a
|
||
|
disgrace--when she saw him thus civil, not only to herself, but to the
|
||
|
very relations whom he had openly disdained, and recollected their last
|
||
|
lively scene in Hunsford Parsonage--the difference, the change was
|
||
|
so great, and struck so forcibly on her mind, that she could hardly
|
||
|
restrain her astonishment from being visible. Never, even in the company
|
||
|
of his dear friends at Netherfield, or his dignified relations
|
||
|
at Rosings, had she seen him so desirous to please, so free from
|
||
|
self-consequence or unbending reserve, as now, when no importance
|
||
|
could result from the success of his endeavours, and when even the
|
||
|
acquaintance of those to whom his attentions were addressed would draw
|
||
|
down the ridicule and censure of the ladies both of Netherfield and
|
||
|
Rosings.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their visitors stayed with them above half-an-hour; and when they arose
|
||
|
to depart, Mr. Darcy called on his sister to join him in expressing
|
||
|
their wish of seeing Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner, and Miss Bennet, to dinner
|
||
|
at Pemberley, before they left the country. Miss Darcy, though with a
|
||
|
diffidence which marked her little in the habit of giving invitations,
|
||
|
readily obeyed. Mrs. Gardiner looked at her niece, desirous of knowing
|
||
|
how _she_, whom the invitation most concerned, felt disposed as to its
|
||
|
acceptance, but Elizabeth had turned away her head. Presuming however,
|
||
|
that this studied avoidance spoke rather a momentary embarrassment than
|
||
|
any dislike of the proposal, and seeing in her husband, who was fond of
|
||
|
society, a perfect willingness to accept it, she ventured to engage for
|
||
|
her attendance, and the day after the next was fixed on.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Bingley expressed great pleasure in the certainty of seeing Elizabeth
|
||
|
again, having still a great deal to say to her, and many inquiries to
|
||
|
make after all their Hertfordshire friends. Elizabeth, construing all
|
||
|
this into a wish of hearing her speak of her sister, was pleased, and on
|
||
|
this account, as well as some others, found herself, when their
|
||
|
visitors left them, capable of considering the last half-hour with some
|
||
|
satisfaction, though while it was passing, the enjoyment of it had been
|
||
|
little. Eager to be alone, and fearful of inquiries or hints from her
|
||
|
uncle and aunt, she stayed with them only long enough to hear their
|
||
|
favourable opinion of Bingley, and then hurried away to dress.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But she had no reason to fear Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner's curiosity; it was
|
||
|
not their wish to force her communication. It was evident that she was
|
||
|
much better acquainted with Mr. Darcy than they had before any idea of;
|
||
|
it was evident that he was very much in love with her. They saw much to
|
||
|
interest, but nothing to justify inquiry.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Of Mr. Darcy it was now a matter of anxiety to think well; and, as far
|
||
|
as their acquaintance reached, there was no fault to find. They could
|
||
|
not be untouched by his politeness; and had they drawn his character
|
||
|
from their own feelings and his servant's report, without any reference
|
||
|
to any other account, the circle in Hertfordshire to which he was known
|
||
|
would not have recognized it for Mr. Darcy. There was now an interest,
|
||
|
however, in believing the housekeeper; and they soon became sensible
|
||
|
that the authority of a servant who had known him since he was four
|
||
|
years old, and whose own manners indicated respectability, was not to be
|
||
|
hastily rejected. Neither had anything occurred in the intelligence of
|
||
|
their Lambton friends that could materially lessen its weight. They had
|
||
|
nothing to accuse him of but pride; pride he probably had, and if not,
|
||
|
it would certainly be imputed by the inhabitants of a small market-town
|
||
|
where the family did not visit. It was acknowledged, however, that he
|
||
|
was a liberal man, and did much good among the poor.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With respect to Wickham, the travellers soon found that he was not held
|
||
|
there in much estimation; for though the chief of his concerns with the
|
||
|
son of his patron were imperfectly understood, it was yet a well-known
|
||
|
fact that, on his quitting Derbyshire, he had left many debts behind
|
||
|
him, which Mr. Darcy afterwards discharged.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As for Elizabeth, her thoughts were at Pemberley this evening more than
|
||
|
the last; and the evening, though as it passed it seemed long, was not
|
||
|
long enough to determine her feelings towards _one_ in that mansion;
|
||
|
and she lay awake two whole hours endeavouring to make them out. She
|
||
|
certainly did not hate him. No; hatred had vanished long ago, and she
|
||
|
had almost as long been ashamed of ever feeling a dislike against him,
|
||
|
that could be so called. The respect created by the conviction of his
|
||
|
valuable qualities, though at first unwillingly admitted, had for some
|
||
|
time ceased to be repugnant to her feeling; and it was now heightened
|
||
|
into somewhat of a friendlier nature, by the testimony so highly in
|
||
|
his favour, and bringing forward his disposition in so amiable a light,
|
||
|
which yesterday had produced. But above all, above respect and esteem,
|
||
|
there was a motive within her of goodwill which could not be overlooked.
|
||
|
It was gratitude; gratitude, not merely for having once loved her,
|
||
|
but for loving her still well enough to forgive all the petulance and
|
||
|
acrimony of her manner in rejecting him, and all the unjust accusations
|
||
|
accompanying her rejection. He who, she had been persuaded, would avoid
|
||
|
her as his greatest enemy, seemed, on this accidental meeting, most
|
||
|
eager to preserve the acquaintance, and without any indelicate display
|
||
|
of regard, or any peculiarity of manner, where their two selves only
|
||
|
were concerned, was soliciting the good opinion of her friends, and bent
|
||
|
on making her known to his sister. Such a change in a man of so much
|
||
|
pride exciting not only astonishment but gratitude--for to love, ardent
|
||
|
love, it must be attributed; and as such its impression on her was of a
|
||
|
sort to be encouraged, as by no means unpleasing, though it could not be
|
||
|
exactly defined. She respected, she esteemed, she was grateful to him,
|
||
|
she felt a real interest in his welfare; and she only wanted to know how
|
||
|
far she wished that welfare to depend upon herself, and how far it would
|
||
|
be for the happiness of both that she should employ the power, which her
|
||
|
fancy told her she still possessed, of bringing on her the renewal of
|
||
|
his addresses.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It had been settled in the evening between the aunt and the niece, that
|
||
|
such a striking civility as Miss Darcy's in coming to see them on the
|
||
|
very day of her arrival at Pemberley, for she had reached it only to a
|
||
|
late breakfast, ought to be imitated, though it could not be equalled,
|
||
|
by some exertion of politeness on their side; and, consequently, that
|
||
|
it would be highly expedient to wait on her at Pemberley the following
|
||
|
morning. They were, therefore, to go. Elizabeth was pleased; though when
|
||
|
she asked herself the reason, she had very little to say in reply.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Gardiner left them soon after breakfast. The fishing scheme had been
|
||
|
renewed the day before, and a positive engagement made of his meeting
|
||
|
some of the gentlemen at Pemberley before noon.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 45
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Convinced as Elizabeth now was that Miss Bingley's dislike of her had
|
||
|
originated in jealousy, she could not help feeling how unwelcome her
|
||
|
appearance at Pemberley must be to her, and was curious to know with how
|
||
|
much civility on that lady's side the acquaintance would now be renewed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On reaching the house, they were shown through the hall into the saloon,
|
||
|
whose northern aspect rendered it delightful for summer. Its windows
|
||
|
opening to the ground, admitted a most refreshing view of the high woody
|
||
|
hills behind the house, and of the beautiful oaks and Spanish chestnuts
|
||
|
which were scattered over the intermediate lawn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In this house they were received by Miss Darcy, who was sitting there
|
||
|
with Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley, and the lady with whom she lived in
|
||
|
London. Georgiana's reception of them was very civil, but attended with
|
||
|
all the embarrassment which, though proceeding from shyness and the fear
|
||
|
of doing wrong, would easily give to those who felt themselves inferior
|
||
|
the belief of her being proud and reserved. Mrs. Gardiner and her niece,
|
||
|
however, did her justice, and pitied her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
By Mrs. Hurst and Miss Bingley they were noticed only by a curtsey; and,
|
||
|
on their being seated, a pause, awkward as such pauses must always be,
|
||
|
succeeded for a few moments. It was first broken by Mrs. Annesley, a
|
||
|
genteel, agreeable-looking woman, whose endeavour to introduce some kind
|
||
|
of discourse proved her to be more truly well-bred than either of the
|
||
|
others; and between her and Mrs. Gardiner, with occasional help from
|
||
|
Elizabeth, the conversation was carried on. Miss Darcy looked as if she
|
||
|
wished for courage enough to join in it; and sometimes did venture a
|
||
|
short sentence when there was least danger of its being heard.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth soon saw that she was herself closely watched by Miss Bingley,
|
||
|
and that she could not speak a word, especially to Miss Darcy, without
|
||
|
calling her attention. This observation would not have prevented her
|
||
|
from trying to talk to the latter, had they not been seated at an
|
||
|
inconvenient distance; but she was not sorry to be spared the necessity
|
||
|
of saying much. Her own thoughts were employing her. She expected every
|
||
|
moment that some of the gentlemen would enter the room. She wished, she
|
||
|
feared that the master of the house might be amongst them; and whether
|
||
|
she wished or feared it most, she could scarcely determine. After
|
||
|
sitting in this manner a quarter of an hour without hearing Miss
|
||
|
Bingley's voice, Elizabeth was roused by receiving from her a cold
|
||
|
inquiry after the health of her family. She answered with equal
|
||
|
indifference and brevity, and the other said no more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next variation which their visit afforded was produced by the
|
||
|
entrance of servants with cold meat, cake, and a variety of all the
|
||
|
finest fruits in season; but this did not take place till after many
|
||
|
a significant look and smile from Mrs. Annesley to Miss Darcy had been
|
||
|
given, to remind her of her post. There was now employment for the whole
|
||
|
party--for though they could not all talk, they could all eat; and the
|
||
|
beautiful pyramids of grapes, nectarines, and peaches soon collected
|
||
|
them round the table.
|
||
|
|
||
|
While thus engaged, Elizabeth had a fair opportunity of deciding whether
|
||
|
she most feared or wished for the appearance of Mr. Darcy, by the
|
||
|
feelings which prevailed on his entering the room; and then, though but
|
||
|
a moment before she had believed her wishes to predominate, she began to
|
||
|
regret that he came.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He had been some time with Mr. Gardiner, who, with two or three other
|
||
|
gentlemen from the house, was engaged by the river, and had left him
|
||
|
only on learning that the ladies of the family intended a visit to
|
||
|
Georgiana that morning. No sooner did he appear than Elizabeth wisely
|
||
|
resolved to be perfectly easy and unembarrassed; a resolution the more
|
||
|
necessary to be made, but perhaps not the more easily kept, because she
|
||
|
saw that the suspicions of the whole party were awakened against them,
|
||
|
and that there was scarcely an eye which did not watch his behaviour
|
||
|
when he first came into the room. In no countenance was attentive
|
||
|
curiosity so strongly marked as in Miss Bingley's, in spite of the
|
||
|
smiles which overspread her face whenever she spoke to one of its
|
||
|
objects; for jealousy had not yet made her desperate, and her attentions
|
||
|
to Mr. Darcy were by no means over. Miss Darcy, on her brother's
|
||
|
entrance, exerted herself much more to talk, and Elizabeth saw that he
|
||
|
was anxious for his sister and herself to get acquainted, and forwarded
|
||
|
as much as possible, every attempt at conversation on either side. Miss
|
||
|
Bingley saw all this likewise; and, in the imprudence of anger, took the
|
||
|
first opportunity of saying, with sneering civility:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pray, Miss Eliza, are not the ----shire Militia removed from Meryton?
|
||
|
They must be a great loss to _your_ family."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In Darcy's presence she dared not mention Wickham's name; but Elizabeth
|
||
|
instantly comprehended that he was uppermost in her thoughts; and the
|
||
|
various recollections connected with him gave her a moment's distress;
|
||
|
but exerting herself vigorously to repel the ill-natured attack, she
|
||
|
presently answered the question in a tolerably detached tone. While
|
||
|
she spoke, an involuntary glance showed her Darcy, with a heightened
|
||
|
complexion, earnestly looking at her, and his sister overcome with
|
||
|
confusion, and unable to lift up her eyes. Had Miss Bingley known what
|
||
|
pain she was then giving her beloved friend, she undoubtedly would
|
||
|
have refrained from the hint; but she had merely intended to discompose
|
||
|
Elizabeth by bringing forward the idea of a man to whom she believed
|
||
|
her partial, to make her betray a sensibility which might injure her in
|
||
|
Darcy's opinion, and, perhaps, to remind the latter of all the follies
|
||
|
and absurdities by which some part of her family were connected
|
||
|
with that corps. Not a syllable had ever reached her of Miss Darcy's
|
||
|
meditated elopement. To no creature had it been revealed, where secrecy
|
||
|
was possible, except to Elizabeth; and from all Bingley's connections
|
||
|
her brother was particularly anxious to conceal it, from the very
|
||
|
wish which Elizabeth had long ago attributed to him, of their becoming
|
||
|
hereafter her own. He had certainly formed such a plan, and without
|
||
|
meaning that it should effect his endeavour to separate him from Miss
|
||
|
Bennet, it is probable that it might add something to his lively concern
|
||
|
for the welfare of his friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's collected behaviour, however, soon quieted his emotion; and
|
||
|
as Miss Bingley, vexed and disappointed, dared not approach nearer to
|
||
|
Wickham, Georgiana also recovered in time, though not enough to be able
|
||
|
to speak any more. Her brother, whose eye she feared to meet, scarcely
|
||
|
recollected her interest in the affair, and the very circumstance which
|
||
|
had been designed to turn his thoughts from Elizabeth seemed to have
|
||
|
fixed them on her more and more cheerfully.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their visit did not continue long after the question and answer above
|
||
|
mentioned; and while Mr. Darcy was attending them to their carriage Miss
|
||
|
Bingley was venting her feelings in criticisms on Elizabeth's person,
|
||
|
behaviour, and dress. But Georgiana would not join her. Her brother's
|
||
|
recommendation was enough to ensure her favour; his judgement could not
|
||
|
err. And he had spoken in such terms of Elizabeth as to leave Georgiana
|
||
|
without the power of finding her otherwise than lovely and amiable. When
|
||
|
Darcy returned to the saloon, Miss Bingley could not help repeating to
|
||
|
him some part of what she had been saying to his sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How very ill Miss Eliza Bennet looks this morning, Mr. Darcy," she
|
||
|
cried; "I never in my life saw anyone so much altered as she is since
|
||
|
the winter. She is grown so brown and coarse! Louisa and I were agreeing
|
||
|
that we should not have known her again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
However little Mr. Darcy might have liked such an address, he contented
|
||
|
himself with coolly replying that he perceived no other alteration than
|
||
|
her being rather tanned, no miraculous consequence of travelling in the
|
||
|
summer.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For my own part," she rejoined, "I must confess that I never could
|
||
|
see any beauty in her. Her face is too thin; her complexion has no
|
||
|
brilliancy; and her features are not at all handsome. Her nose
|
||
|
wants character--there is nothing marked in its lines. Her teeth are
|
||
|
tolerable, but not out of the common way; and as for her eyes,
|
||
|
which have sometimes been called so fine, I could never see anything
|
||
|
extraordinary in them. They have a sharp, shrewish look, which I do
|
||
|
not like at all; and in her air altogether there is a self-sufficiency
|
||
|
without fashion, which is intolerable."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Persuaded as Miss Bingley was that Darcy admired Elizabeth, this was not
|
||
|
the best method of recommending herself; but angry people are not always
|
||
|
wise; and in seeing him at last look somewhat nettled, she had all the
|
||
|
success she expected. He was resolutely silent, however, and, from a
|
||
|
determination of making him speak, she continued:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I remember, when we first knew her in Hertfordshire, how amazed we all
|
||
|
were to find that she was a reputed beauty; and I particularly recollect
|
||
|
your saying one night, after they had been dining at Netherfield, '_She_
|
||
|
a beauty!--I should as soon call her mother a wit.' But afterwards she
|
||
|
seemed to improve on you, and I believe you thought her rather pretty at
|
||
|
one time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes," replied Darcy, who could contain himself no longer, "but _that_
|
||
|
was only when I first saw her, for it is many months since I have
|
||
|
considered her as one of the handsomest women of my acquaintance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He then went away, and Miss Bingley was left to all the satisfaction of
|
||
|
having forced him to say what gave no one any pain but herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner and Elizabeth talked of all that had occurred during their
|
||
|
visit, as they returned, except what had particularly interested them
|
||
|
both. The look and behaviour of everybody they had seen were discussed,
|
||
|
except of the person who had mostly engaged their attention. They talked
|
||
|
of his sister, his friends, his house, his fruit--of everything but
|
||
|
himself; yet Elizabeth was longing to know what Mrs. Gardiner thought of
|
||
|
him, and Mrs. Gardiner would have been highly gratified by her niece's
|
||
|
beginning the subject.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 46
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth had been a good deal disappointed in not finding a letter from
|
||
|
Jane on their first arrival at Lambton; and this disappointment had been
|
||
|
renewed on each of the mornings that had now been spent there; but
|
||
|
on the third her repining was over, and her sister justified, by the
|
||
|
receipt of two letters from her at once, on one of which was marked that
|
||
|
it had been missent elsewhere. Elizabeth was not surprised at it, as
|
||
|
Jane had written the direction remarkably ill.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They had just been preparing to walk as the letters came in; and
|
||
|
her uncle and aunt, leaving her to enjoy them in quiet, set off by
|
||
|
themselves. The one missent must first be attended to; it had been
|
||
|
written five days ago. The beginning contained an account of all their
|
||
|
little parties and engagements, with such news as the country afforded;
|
||
|
but the latter half, which was dated a day later, and written in evident
|
||
|
agitation, gave more important intelligence. It was to this effect:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Since writing the above, dearest Lizzy, something has occurred of a
|
||
|
most unexpected and serious nature; but I am afraid of alarming you--be
|
||
|
assured that we are all well. What I have to say relates to poor Lydia.
|
||
|
An express came at twelve last night, just as we were all gone to bed,
|
||
|
from Colonel Forster, to inform us that she was gone off to Scotland
|
||
|
with one of his officers; to own the truth, with Wickham! Imagine our
|
||
|
surprise. To Kitty, however, it does not seem so wholly unexpected. I am
|
||
|
very, very sorry. So imprudent a match on both sides! But I am willing
|
||
|
to hope the best, and that his character has been misunderstood.
|
||
|
Thoughtless and indiscreet I can easily believe him, but this step
|
||
|
(and let us rejoice over it) marks nothing bad at heart. His choice is
|
||
|
disinterested at least, for he must know my father can give her nothing.
|
||
|
Our poor mother is sadly grieved. My father bears it better. How
|
||
|
thankful am I that we never let them know what has been said against
|
||
|
him; we must forget it ourselves. They were off Saturday night about
|
||
|
twelve, as is conjectured, but were not missed till yesterday morning at
|
||
|
eight. The express was sent off directly. My dear Lizzy, they must have
|
||
|
passed within ten miles of us. Colonel Forster gives us reason to expect
|
||
|
him here soon. Lydia left a few lines for his wife, informing her of
|
||
|
their intention. I must conclude, for I cannot be long from my poor
|
||
|
mother. I am afraid you will not be able to make it out, but I hardly
|
||
|
know what I have written."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Without allowing herself time for consideration, and scarcely knowing
|
||
|
what she felt, Elizabeth on finishing this letter instantly seized the
|
||
|
other, and opening it with the utmost impatience, read as follows: it
|
||
|
had been written a day later than the conclusion of the first.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"By this time, my dearest sister, you have received my hurried letter; I
|
||
|
wish this may be more intelligible, but though not confined for time, my
|
||
|
head is so bewildered that I cannot answer for being coherent. Dearest
|
||
|
Lizzy, I hardly know what I would write, but I have bad news for you,
|
||
|
and it cannot be delayed. Imprudent as the marriage between Mr. Wickham
|
||
|
and our poor Lydia would be, we are now anxious to be assured it has
|
||
|
taken place, for there is but too much reason to fear they are not gone
|
||
|
to Scotland. Colonel Forster came yesterday, having left Brighton the
|
||
|
day before, not many hours after the express. Though Lydia's short
|
||
|
letter to Mrs. F. gave them to understand that they were going to Gretna
|
||
|
Green, something was dropped by Denny expressing his belief that W.
|
||
|
never intended to go there, or to marry Lydia at all, which was
|
||
|
repeated to Colonel F., who, instantly taking the alarm, set off from B.
|
||
|
intending to trace their route. He did trace them easily to Clapham,
|
||
|
but no further; for on entering that place, they removed into a hackney
|
||
|
coach, and dismissed the chaise that brought them from Epsom. All that
|
||
|
is known after this is, that they were seen to continue the London road.
|
||
|
I know not what to think. After making every possible inquiry on that
|
||
|
side London, Colonel F. came on into Hertfordshire, anxiously renewing
|
||
|
them at all the turnpikes, and at the inns in Barnet and Hatfield, but
|
||
|
without any success--no such people had been seen to pass through. With
|
||
|
the kindest concern he came on to Longbourn, and broke his apprehensions
|
||
|
to us in a manner most creditable to his heart. I am sincerely grieved
|
||
|
for him and Mrs. F., but no one can throw any blame on them. Our
|
||
|
distress, my dear Lizzy, is very great. My father and mother believe the
|
||
|
worst, but I cannot think so ill of him. Many circumstances might make
|
||
|
it more eligible for them to be married privately in town than to pursue
|
||
|
their first plan; and even if _he_ could form such a design against a
|
||
|
young woman of Lydia's connections, which is not likely, can I suppose
|
||
|
her so lost to everything? Impossible! I grieve to find, however, that
|
||
|
Colonel F. is not disposed to depend upon their marriage; he shook his
|
||
|
head when I expressed my hopes, and said he feared W. was not a man to
|
||
|
be trusted. My poor mother is really ill, and keeps her room. Could she
|
||
|
exert herself, it would be better; but this is not to be expected. And
|
||
|
as to my father, I never in my life saw him so affected. Poor Kitty has
|
||
|
anger for having concealed their attachment; but as it was a matter of
|
||
|
confidence, one cannot wonder. I am truly glad, dearest Lizzy, that you
|
||
|
have been spared something of these distressing scenes; but now, as the
|
||
|
first shock is over, shall I own that I long for your return? I am not
|
||
|
so selfish, however, as to press for it, if inconvenient. Adieu! I
|
||
|
take up my pen again to do what I have just told you I would not; but
|
||
|
circumstances are such that I cannot help earnestly begging you all to
|
||
|
come here as soon as possible. I know my dear uncle and aunt so well,
|
||
|
that I am not afraid of requesting it, though I have still something
|
||
|
more to ask of the former. My father is going to London with Colonel
|
||
|
Forster instantly, to try to discover her. What he means to do I am sure
|
||
|
I know not; but his excessive distress will not allow him to pursue any
|
||
|
measure in the best and safest way, and Colonel Forster is obliged to
|
||
|
be at Brighton again to-morrow evening. In such an exigence, my
|
||
|
uncle's advice and assistance would be everything in the world; he will
|
||
|
immediately comprehend what I must feel, and I rely upon his goodness."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! where, where is my uncle?" cried Elizabeth, darting from her seat
|
||
|
as she finished the letter, in eagerness to follow him, without losing
|
||
|
a moment of the time so precious; but as she reached the door it was
|
||
|
opened by a servant, and Mr. Darcy appeared. Her pale face and impetuous
|
||
|
manner made him start, and before he could recover himself to speak,
|
||
|
she, in whose mind every idea was superseded by Lydia's situation,
|
||
|
hastily exclaimed, "I beg your pardon, but I must leave you. I must find
|
||
|
Mr. Gardiner this moment, on business that cannot be delayed; I have not
|
||
|
an instant to lose."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good God! what is the matter?" cried he, with more feeling than
|
||
|
politeness; then recollecting himself, "I will not detain you a minute;
|
||
|
but let me, or let the servant go after Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner. You are
|
||
|
not well enough; you cannot go yourself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth hesitated, but her knees trembled under her and she felt how
|
||
|
little would be gained by her attempting to pursue them. Calling back
|
||
|
the servant, therefore, she commissioned him, though in so breathless
|
||
|
an accent as made her almost unintelligible, to fetch his master and
|
||
|
mistress home instantly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On his quitting the room she sat down, unable to support herself, and
|
||
|
looking so miserably ill, that it was impossible for Darcy to leave her,
|
||
|
or to refrain from saying, in a tone of gentleness and commiseration,
|
||
|
"Let me call your maid. Is there nothing you could take to give you
|
||
|
present relief? A glass of wine; shall I get you one? You are very ill."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, I thank you," she replied, endeavouring to recover herself. "There
|
||
|
is nothing the matter with me. I am quite well; I am only distressed by
|
||
|
some dreadful news which I have just received from Longbourn."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She burst into tears as she alluded to it, and for a few minutes could
|
||
|
not speak another word. Darcy, in wretched suspense, could only say
|
||
|
something indistinctly of his concern, and observe her in compassionate
|
||
|
silence. At length she spoke again. "I have just had a letter from Jane,
|
||
|
with such dreadful news. It cannot be concealed from anyone. My younger
|
||
|
sister has left all her friends--has eloped; has thrown herself into
|
||
|
the power of--of Mr. Wickham. They are gone off together from Brighton.
|
||
|
_You_ know him too well to doubt the rest. She has no money, no
|
||
|
connections, nothing that can tempt him to--she is lost for ever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy was fixed in astonishment. "When I consider," she added in a yet
|
||
|
more agitated voice, "that I might have prevented it! I, who knew what
|
||
|
he was. Had I but explained some part of it only--some part of what I
|
||
|
learnt, to my own family! Had his character been known, this could not
|
||
|
have happened. But it is all--all too late now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am grieved indeed," cried Darcy; "grieved--shocked. But is it
|
||
|
certain--absolutely certain?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, yes! They left Brighton together on Sunday night, and were traced
|
||
|
almost to London, but not beyond; they are certainly not gone to
|
||
|
Scotland."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what has been done, what has been attempted, to recover her?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My father is gone to London, and Jane has written to beg my uncle's
|
||
|
immediate assistance; and we shall be off, I hope, in half-an-hour. But
|
||
|
nothing can be done--I know very well that nothing can be done. How is
|
||
|
such a man to be worked on? How are they even to be discovered? I have
|
||
|
not the smallest hope. It is every way horrible!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy shook his head in silent acquiescence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When _my_ eyes were opened to his real character--Oh! had I known what
|
||
|
I ought, what I dared to do! But I knew not--I was afraid of doing too
|
||
|
much. Wretched, wretched mistake!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy made no answer. He seemed scarcely to hear her, and was walking
|
||
|
up and down the room in earnest meditation, his brow contracted, his air
|
||
|
gloomy. Elizabeth soon observed, and instantly understood it. Her
|
||
|
power was sinking; everything _must_ sink under such a proof of family
|
||
|
weakness, such an assurance of the deepest disgrace. She could neither
|
||
|
wonder nor condemn, but the belief of his self-conquest brought nothing
|
||
|
consolatory to her bosom, afforded no palliation of her distress. It
|
||
|
was, on the contrary, exactly calculated to make her understand her own
|
||
|
wishes; and never had she so honestly felt that she could have loved
|
||
|
him, as now, when all love must be vain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But self, though it would intrude, could not engross her. Lydia--the
|
||
|
humiliation, the misery she was bringing on them all, soon swallowed
|
||
|
up every private care; and covering her face with her handkerchief,
|
||
|
Elizabeth was soon lost to everything else; and, after a pause of
|
||
|
several minutes, was only recalled to a sense of her situation by
|
||
|
the voice of her companion, who, in a manner which, though it spoke
|
||
|
compassion, spoke likewise restraint, said, "I am afraid you have been
|
||
|
long desiring my absence, nor have I anything to plead in excuse of my
|
||
|
stay, but real, though unavailing concern. Would to Heaven that anything
|
||
|
could be either said or done on my part that might offer consolation to
|
||
|
such distress! But I will not torment you with vain wishes, which may
|
||
|
seem purposely to ask for your thanks. This unfortunate affair will, I
|
||
|
fear, prevent my sister's having the pleasure of seeing you at Pemberley
|
||
|
to-day."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, yes. Be so kind as to apologise for us to Miss Darcy. Say that
|
||
|
urgent business calls us home immediately. Conceal the unhappy truth as
|
||
|
long as it is possible, I know it cannot be long."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He readily assured her of his secrecy; again expressed his sorrow for
|
||
|
her distress, wished it a happier conclusion than there was at present
|
||
|
reason to hope, and leaving his compliments for her relations, with only
|
||
|
one serious, parting look, went away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As he quitted the room, Elizabeth felt how improbable it was that they
|
||
|
should ever see each other again on such terms of cordiality as
|
||
|
had marked their several meetings in Derbyshire; and as she threw a
|
||
|
retrospective glance over the whole of their acquaintance, so full
|
||
|
of contradictions and varieties, sighed at the perverseness of those
|
||
|
feelings which would now have promoted its continuance, and would
|
||
|
formerly have rejoiced in its termination.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If gratitude and esteem are good foundations of affection, Elizabeth's
|
||
|
change of sentiment will be neither improbable nor faulty. But if
|
||
|
otherwise--if regard springing from such sources is unreasonable or
|
||
|
unnatural, in comparison of what is so often described as arising on
|
||
|
a first interview with its object, and even before two words have been
|
||
|
exchanged, nothing can be said in her defence, except that she had given
|
||
|
somewhat of a trial to the latter method in her partiality for Wickham,
|
||
|
and that its ill success might, perhaps, authorise her to seek the other
|
||
|
less interesting mode of attachment. Be that as it may, she saw him
|
||
|
go with regret; and in this early example of what Lydia's infamy must
|
||
|
produce, found additional anguish as she reflected on that wretched
|
||
|
business. Never, since reading Jane's second letter, had she entertained
|
||
|
a hope of Wickham's meaning to marry her. No one but Jane, she thought,
|
||
|
could flatter herself with such an expectation. Surprise was the least
|
||
|
of her feelings on this development. While the contents of the first
|
||
|
letter remained in her mind, she was all surprise--all astonishment that
|
||
|
Wickham should marry a girl whom it was impossible he could marry
|
||
|
for money; and how Lydia could ever have attached him had appeared
|
||
|
incomprehensible. But now it was all too natural. For such an attachment
|
||
|
as this she might have sufficient charms; and though she did not suppose
|
||
|
Lydia to be deliberately engaging in an elopement without the intention
|
||
|
of marriage, she had no difficulty in believing that neither her virtue
|
||
|
nor her understanding would preserve her from falling an easy prey.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She had never perceived, while the regiment was in Hertfordshire, that
|
||
|
Lydia had any partiality for him; but she was convinced that Lydia
|
||
|
wanted only encouragement to attach herself to anybody. Sometimes one
|
||
|
officer, sometimes another, had been her favourite, as their attentions
|
||
|
raised them in her opinion. Her affections had continually been
|
||
|
fluctuating but never without an object. The mischief of neglect and
|
||
|
mistaken indulgence towards such a girl--oh! how acutely did she now
|
||
|
feel it!
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was wild to be at home--to hear, to see, to be upon the spot to
|
||
|
share with Jane in the cares that must now fall wholly upon her, in a
|
||
|
family so deranged, a father absent, a mother incapable of exertion, and
|
||
|
requiring constant attendance; and though almost persuaded that nothing
|
||
|
could be done for Lydia, her uncle's interference seemed of the utmost
|
||
|
importance, and till he entered the room her impatience was severe. Mr.
|
||
|
and Mrs. Gardiner had hurried back in alarm, supposing by the servant's
|
||
|
account that their niece was taken suddenly ill; but satisfying them
|
||
|
instantly on that head, she eagerly communicated the cause of their
|
||
|
summons, reading the two letters aloud, and dwelling on the postscript
|
||
|
of the last with trembling energy, though Lydia had never been a
|
||
|
favourite with them, Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner could not but be deeply
|
||
|
afflicted. Not Lydia only, but all were concerned in it; and after the
|
||
|
first exclamations of surprise and horror, Mr. Gardiner promised every
|
||
|
assistance in his power. Elizabeth, though expecting no less, thanked
|
||
|
him with tears of gratitude; and all three being actuated by one spirit,
|
||
|
everything relating to their journey was speedily settled. They were to
|
||
|
be off as soon as possible. "But what is to be done about Pemberley?"
|
||
|
cried Mrs. Gardiner. "John told us Mr. Darcy was here when you sent for
|
||
|
us; was it so?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; and I told him we should not be able to keep our engagement.
|
||
|
_That_ is all settled."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is all settled?" repeated the other, as she ran into her room to
|
||
|
prepare. "And are they upon such terms as for her to disclose the real
|
||
|
truth? Oh, that I knew how it was!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
But wishes were vain, or at least could only serve to amuse her in the
|
||
|
hurry and confusion of the following hour. Had Elizabeth been at leisure
|
||
|
to be idle, she would have remained certain that all employment was
|
||
|
impossible to one so wretched as herself; but she had her share of
|
||
|
business as well as her aunt, and amongst the rest there were notes to
|
||
|
be written to all their friends at Lambton, with false excuses for their
|
||
|
sudden departure. An hour, however, saw the whole completed; and Mr.
|
||
|
Gardiner meanwhile having settled his account at the inn, nothing
|
||
|
remained to be done but to go; and Elizabeth, after all the misery of
|
||
|
the morning, found herself, in a shorter space of time than she could
|
||
|
have supposed, seated in the carriage, and on the road to Longbourn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 47
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have been thinking it over again, Elizabeth," said her uncle, as they
|
||
|
drove from the town; "and really, upon serious consideration, I am much
|
||
|
more inclined than I was to judge as your eldest sister does on the
|
||
|
matter. It appears to me so very unlikely that any young man should
|
||
|
form such a design against a girl who is by no means unprotected or
|
||
|
friendless, and who was actually staying in his colonel's family, that I
|
||
|
am strongly inclined to hope the best. Could he expect that her friends
|
||
|
would not step forward? Could he expect to be noticed again by the
|
||
|
regiment, after such an affront to Colonel Forster? His temptation is
|
||
|
not adequate to the risk!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you really think so?" cried Elizabeth, brightening up for a moment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Upon my word," said Mrs. Gardiner, "I begin to be of your uncle's
|
||
|
opinion. It is really too great a violation of decency, honour, and
|
||
|
interest, for him to be guilty of. I cannot think so very ill of
|
||
|
Wickham. Can you yourself, Lizzy, so wholly give him up, as to believe
|
||
|
him capable of it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not, perhaps, of neglecting his own interest; but of every other
|
||
|
neglect I can believe him capable. If, indeed, it should be so! But I
|
||
|
dare not hope it. Why should they not go on to Scotland if that had been
|
||
|
the case?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In the first place," replied Mr. Gardiner, "there is no absolute proof
|
||
|
that they are not gone to Scotland."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! but their removing from the chaise into a hackney coach is such
|
||
|
a presumption! And, besides, no traces of them were to be found on the
|
||
|
Barnet road."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, then--supposing them to be in London. They may be there, though
|
||
|
for the purpose of concealment, for no more exceptional purpose. It is
|
||
|
not likely that money should be very abundant on either side; and it
|
||
|
might strike them that they could be more economically, though less
|
||
|
expeditiously, married in London than in Scotland."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But why all this secrecy? Why any fear of detection? Why must their
|
||
|
marriage be private? Oh, no, no--this is not likely. His most particular
|
||
|
friend, you see by Jane's account, was persuaded of his never intending
|
||
|
to marry her. Wickham will never marry a woman without some money. He
|
||
|
cannot afford it. And what claims has Lydia--what attraction has she
|
||
|
beyond youth, health, and good humour that could make him, for her sake,
|
||
|
forego every chance of benefiting himself by marrying well? As to what
|
||
|
restraint the apprehensions of disgrace in the corps might throw on a
|
||
|
dishonourable elopement with her, I am not able to judge; for I know
|
||
|
nothing of the effects that such a step might produce. But as to your
|
||
|
other objection, I am afraid it will hardly hold good. Lydia has
|
||
|
no brothers to step forward; and he might imagine, from my father's
|
||
|
behaviour, from his indolence and the little attention he has ever
|
||
|
seemed to give to what was going forward in his family, that _he_ would
|
||
|
do as little, and think as little about it, as any father could do, in
|
||
|
such a matter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But can you think that Lydia is so lost to everything but love of him
|
||
|
as to consent to live with him on any terms other than marriage?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It does seem, and it is most shocking indeed," replied Elizabeth, with
|
||
|
tears in her eyes, "that a sister's sense of decency and virtue in such
|
||
|
a point should admit of doubt. But, really, I know not what to say.
|
||
|
Perhaps I am not doing her justice. But she is very young; she has never
|
||
|
been taught to think on serious subjects; and for the last half-year,
|
||
|
nay, for a twelvemonth--she has been given up to nothing but amusement
|
||
|
and vanity. She has been allowed to dispose of her time in the most idle
|
||
|
and frivolous manner, and to adopt any opinions that came in her way.
|
||
|
Since the ----shire were first quartered in Meryton, nothing but love,
|
||
|
flirtation, and officers have been in her head. She has been doing
|
||
|
everything in her power by thinking and talking on the subject, to give
|
||
|
greater--what shall I call it? susceptibility to her feelings; which are
|
||
|
naturally lively enough. And we all know that Wickham has every charm of
|
||
|
person and address that can captivate a woman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But you see that Jane," said her aunt, "does not think so very ill of
|
||
|
Wickham as to believe him capable of the attempt."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Of whom does Jane ever think ill? And who is there, whatever might be
|
||
|
their former conduct, that she would think capable of such an attempt,
|
||
|
till it were proved against them? But Jane knows, as well as I do, what
|
||
|
Wickham really is. We both know that he has been profligate in every
|
||
|
sense of the word; that he has neither integrity nor honour; that he is
|
||
|
as false and deceitful as he is insinuating."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And do you really know all this?" cried Mrs. Gardiner, whose curiosity
|
||
|
as to the mode of her intelligence was all alive.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do indeed," replied Elizabeth, colouring. "I told you, the other day,
|
||
|
of his infamous behaviour to Mr. Darcy; and you yourself, when last at
|
||
|
Longbourn, heard in what manner he spoke of the man who had behaved
|
||
|
with such forbearance and liberality towards him. And there are other
|
||
|
circumstances which I am not at liberty--which it is not worth while to
|
||
|
relate; but his lies about the whole Pemberley family are endless. From
|
||
|
what he said of Miss Darcy I was thoroughly prepared to see a proud,
|
||
|
reserved, disagreeable girl. Yet he knew to the contrary himself. He
|
||
|
must know that she was as amiable and unpretending as we have found
|
||
|
her."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But does Lydia know nothing of this? can she be ignorant of what you
|
||
|
and Jane seem so well to understand?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, yes!--that, that is the worst of all. Till I was in Kent, and saw
|
||
|
so much both of Mr. Darcy and his relation Colonel Fitzwilliam, I was
|
||
|
ignorant of the truth myself. And when I returned home, the ----shire
|
||
|
was to leave Meryton in a week or fortnight's time. As that was the
|
||
|
case, neither Jane, to whom I related the whole, nor I, thought it
|
||
|
necessary to make our knowledge public; for of what use could
|
||
|
it apparently be to any one, that the good opinion which all the
|
||
|
neighbourhood had of him should then be overthrown? And even when it was
|
||
|
settled that Lydia should go with Mrs. Forster, the necessity of opening
|
||
|
her eyes to his character never occurred to me. That _she_ could be
|
||
|
in any danger from the deception never entered my head. That such a
|
||
|
consequence as _this_ could ensue, you may easily believe, was far
|
||
|
enough from my thoughts."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When they all removed to Brighton, therefore, you had no reason, I
|
||
|
suppose, to believe them fond of each other?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not the slightest. I can remember no symptom of affection on either
|
||
|
side; and had anything of the kind been perceptible, you must be aware
|
||
|
that ours is not a family on which it could be thrown away. When first
|
||
|
he entered the corps, she was ready enough to admire him; but so we all
|
||
|
were. Every girl in or near Meryton was out of her senses about him for
|
||
|
the first two months; but he never distinguished _her_ by any particular
|
||
|
attention; and, consequently, after a moderate period of extravagant and
|
||
|
wild admiration, her fancy for him gave way, and others of the regiment,
|
||
|
who treated her with more distinction, again became her favourites."
|
||
|
|
||
|
* * * * *
|
||
|
|
||
|
It may be easily believed, that however little of novelty could be added
|
||
|
to their fears, hopes, and conjectures, on this interesting subject, by
|
||
|
its repeated discussion, no other could detain them from it long, during
|
||
|
the whole of the journey. From Elizabeth's thoughts it was never absent.
|
||
|
Fixed there by the keenest of all anguish, self-reproach, she could find
|
||
|
no interval of ease or forgetfulness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They travelled as expeditiously as possible, and, sleeping one night
|
||
|
on the road, reached Longbourn by dinner time the next day. It was a
|
||
|
comfort to Elizabeth to consider that Jane could not have been wearied
|
||
|
by long expectations.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The little Gardiners, attracted by the sight of a chaise, were standing
|
||
|
on the steps of the house as they entered the paddock; and, when the
|
||
|
carriage drove up to the door, the joyful surprise that lighted up their
|
||
|
faces, and displayed itself over their whole bodies, in a variety of
|
||
|
capers and frisks, was the first pleasing earnest of their welcome.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth jumped out; and, after giving each of them a hasty kiss,
|
||
|
hurried into the vestibule, where Jane, who came running down from her
|
||
|
mother's apartment, immediately met her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, as she affectionately embraced her, whilst tears filled the
|
||
|
eyes of both, lost not a moment in asking whether anything had been
|
||
|
heard of the fugitives.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not yet," replied Jane. "But now that my dear uncle is come, I hope
|
||
|
everything will be well."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is my father in town?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, he went on Tuesday, as I wrote you word."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And have you heard from him often?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We have heard only twice. He wrote me a few lines on Wednesday to say
|
||
|
that he had arrived in safety, and to give me his directions, which I
|
||
|
particularly begged him to do. He merely added that he should not write
|
||
|
again till he had something of importance to mention."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And my mother--how is she? How are you all?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My mother is tolerably well, I trust; though her spirits are greatly
|
||
|
shaken. She is up stairs and will have great satisfaction in seeing you
|
||
|
all. She does not yet leave her dressing-room. Mary and Kitty, thank
|
||
|
Heaven, are quite well."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But you--how are you?" cried Elizabeth. "You look pale. How much you
|
||
|
must have gone through!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her sister, however, assured her of her being perfectly well; and their
|
||
|
conversation, which had been passing while Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner were
|
||
|
engaged with their children, was now put an end to by the approach
|
||
|
of the whole party. Jane ran to her uncle and aunt, and welcomed and
|
||
|
thanked them both, with alternate smiles and tears.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When they were all in the drawing-room, the questions which Elizabeth
|
||
|
had already asked were of course repeated by the others, and they soon
|
||
|
found that Jane had no intelligence to give. The sanguine hope of
|
||
|
good, however, which the benevolence of her heart suggested had not yet
|
||
|
deserted her; she still expected that it would all end well, and that
|
||
|
every morning would bring some letter, either from Lydia or her father,
|
||
|
to explain their proceedings, and, perhaps, announce their marriage.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet, to whose apartment they all repaired, after a few minutes'
|
||
|
conversation together, received them exactly as might be expected; with
|
||
|
tears and lamentations of regret, invectives against the villainous
|
||
|
conduct of Wickham, and complaints of her own sufferings and ill-usage;
|
||
|
blaming everybody but the person to whose ill-judging indulgence the
|
||
|
errors of her daughter must principally be owing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I had been able," said she, "to carry my point in going to Brighton,
|
||
|
with all my family, _this_ would not have happened; but poor dear Lydia
|
||
|
had nobody to take care of her. Why did the Forsters ever let her go out
|
||
|
of their sight? I am sure there was some great neglect or other on their
|
||
|
side, for she is not the kind of girl to do such a thing if she had been
|
||
|
well looked after. I always thought they were very unfit to have the
|
||
|
charge of her; but I was overruled, as I always am. Poor dear child!
|
||
|
And now here's Mr. Bennet gone away, and I know he will fight Wickham,
|
||
|
wherever he meets him and then he will be killed, and what is to become
|
||
|
of us all? The Collinses will turn us out before he is cold in his
|
||
|
grave, and if you are not kind to us, brother, I do not know what we
|
||
|
shall do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
They all exclaimed against such terrific ideas; and Mr. Gardiner, after
|
||
|
general assurances of his affection for her and all her family, told her
|
||
|
that he meant to be in London the very next day, and would assist Mr.
|
||
|
Bennet in every endeavour for recovering Lydia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do not give way to useless alarm," added he; "though it is right to be
|
||
|
prepared for the worst, there is no occasion to look on it as certain.
|
||
|
It is not quite a week since they left Brighton. In a few days more we
|
||
|
may gain some news of them; and till we know that they are not married,
|
||
|
and have no design of marrying, do not let us give the matter over as
|
||
|
lost. As soon as I get to town I shall go to my brother, and make
|
||
|
him come home with me to Gracechurch Street; and then we may consult
|
||
|
together as to what is to be done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! my dear brother," replied Mrs. Bennet, "that is exactly what I
|
||
|
could most wish for. And now do, when you get to town, find them out,
|
||
|
wherever they may be; and if they are not married already, _make_ them
|
||
|
marry. And as for wedding clothes, do not let them wait for that, but
|
||
|
tell Lydia she shall have as much money as she chooses to buy them,
|
||
|
after they are married. And, above all, keep Mr. Bennet from fighting.
|
||
|
Tell him what a dreadful state I am in, that I am frighted out of my
|
||
|
wits--and have such tremblings, such flutterings, all over me--such
|
||
|
spasms in my side and pains in my head, and such beatings at heart, that
|
||
|
I can get no rest by night nor by day. And tell my dear Lydia not to
|
||
|
give any directions about her clothes till she has seen me, for she does
|
||
|
not know which are the best warehouses. Oh, brother, how kind you are! I
|
||
|
know you will contrive it all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But Mr. Gardiner, though he assured her again of his earnest endeavours
|
||
|
in the cause, could not avoid recommending moderation to her, as well
|
||
|
in her hopes as her fear; and after talking with her in this manner till
|
||
|
dinner was on the table, they all left her to vent all her feelings on
|
||
|
the housekeeper, who attended in the absence of her daughters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Though her brother and sister were persuaded that there was no real
|
||
|
occasion for such a seclusion from the family, they did not attempt to
|
||
|
oppose it, for they knew that she had not prudence enough to hold her
|
||
|
tongue before the servants, while they waited at table, and judged it
|
||
|
better that _one_ only of the household, and the one whom they could
|
||
|
most trust should comprehend all her fears and solicitude on the
|
||
|
subject.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the dining-room they were soon joined by Mary and Kitty, who had been
|
||
|
too busily engaged in their separate apartments to make their appearance
|
||
|
before. One came from her books, and the other from her toilette. The
|
||
|
faces of both, however, were tolerably calm; and no change was visible
|
||
|
in either, except that the loss of her favourite sister, or the anger
|
||
|
which she had herself incurred in this business, had given more of
|
||
|
fretfulness than usual to the accents of Kitty. As for Mary, she was
|
||
|
mistress enough of herself to whisper to Elizabeth, with a countenance
|
||
|
of grave reflection, soon after they were seated at table:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is a most unfortunate affair, and will probably be much talked of.
|
||
|
But we must stem the tide of malice, and pour into the wounded bosoms of
|
||
|
each other the balm of sisterly consolation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then, perceiving in Elizabeth no inclination of replying, she added,
|
||
|
"Unhappy as the event must be for Lydia, we may draw from it this useful
|
||
|
lesson: that loss of virtue in a female is irretrievable; that one
|
||
|
false step involves her in endless ruin; that her reputation is no less
|
||
|
brittle than it is beautiful; and that she cannot be too much guarded in
|
||
|
her behaviour towards the undeserving of the other sex."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth lifted up her eyes in amazement, but was too much oppressed
|
||
|
to make any reply. Mary, however, continued to console herself with such
|
||
|
kind of moral extractions from the evil before them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the afternoon, the two elder Miss Bennets were able to be for
|
||
|
half-an-hour by themselves; and Elizabeth instantly availed herself of
|
||
|
the opportunity of making any inquiries, which Jane was equally eager to
|
||
|
satisfy. After joining in general lamentations over the dreadful sequel
|
||
|
of this event, which Elizabeth considered as all but certain, and Miss
|
||
|
Bennet could not assert to be wholly impossible, the former continued
|
||
|
the subject, by saying, "But tell me all and everything about it which
|
||
|
I have not already heard. Give me further particulars. What did Colonel
|
||
|
Forster say? Had they no apprehension of anything before the elopement
|
||
|
took place? They must have seen them together for ever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Colonel Forster did own that he had often suspected some partiality,
|
||
|
especially on Lydia's side, but nothing to give him any alarm. I am so
|
||
|
grieved for him! His behaviour was attentive and kind to the utmost. He
|
||
|
_was_ coming to us, in order to assure us of his concern, before he had
|
||
|
any idea of their not being gone to Scotland: when that apprehension
|
||
|
first got abroad, it hastened his journey."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And was Denny convinced that Wickham would not marry? Did he know of
|
||
|
their intending to go off? Had Colonel Forster seen Denny himself?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; but, when questioned by _him_, Denny denied knowing anything of
|
||
|
their plans, and would not give his real opinion about it. He did not
|
||
|
repeat his persuasion of their not marrying--and from _that_, I am
|
||
|
inclined to hope, he might have been misunderstood before."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And till Colonel Forster came himself, not one of you entertained a
|
||
|
doubt, I suppose, of their being really married?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How was it possible that such an idea should enter our brains? I felt
|
||
|
a little uneasy--a little fearful of my sister's happiness with him
|
||
|
in marriage, because I knew that his conduct had not been always quite
|
||
|
right. My father and mother knew nothing of that; they only felt how
|
||
|
imprudent a match it must be. Kitty then owned, with a very natural
|
||
|
triumph on knowing more than the rest of us, that in Lydia's last letter
|
||
|
she had prepared her for such a step. She had known, it seems, of their
|
||
|
being in love with each other, many weeks."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But not before they went to Brighton?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, I believe not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And did Colonel Forster appear to think well of Wickham himself? Does
|
||
|
he know his real character?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I must confess that he did not speak so well of Wickham as he formerly
|
||
|
did. He believed him to be imprudent and extravagant. And since this sad
|
||
|
affair has taken place, it is said that he left Meryton greatly in debt;
|
||
|
but I hope this may be false."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, Jane, had we been less secret, had we told what we knew of him,
|
||
|
this could not have happened!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps it would have been better," replied her sister. "But to expose
|
||
|
the former faults of any person without knowing what their present
|
||
|
feelings were, seemed unjustifiable. We acted with the best intentions."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Could Colonel Forster repeat the particulars of Lydia's note to his
|
||
|
wife?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He brought it with him for us to see."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane then took it from her pocket-book, and gave it to Elizabeth. These
|
||
|
were the contents:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"MY DEAR HARRIET,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You will laugh when you know where I am gone, and I cannot help
|
||
|
laughing myself at your surprise to-morrow morning, as soon as I am
|
||
|
missed. I am going to Gretna Green, and if you cannot guess with who,
|
||
|
I shall think you a simpleton, for there is but one man in the world I
|
||
|
love, and he is an angel. I should never be happy without him, so think
|
||
|
it no harm to be off. You need not send them word at Longbourn of my
|
||
|
going, if you do not like it, for it will make the surprise the greater,
|
||
|
when I write to them and sign my name 'Lydia Wickham.' What a good joke
|
||
|
it will be! I can hardly write for laughing. Pray make my excuses to
|
||
|
Pratt for not keeping my engagement, and dancing with him to-night.
|
||
|
Tell him I hope he will excuse me when he knows all; and tell him I will
|
||
|
dance with him at the next ball we meet, with great pleasure. I shall
|
||
|
send for my clothes when I get to Longbourn; but I wish you would tell
|
||
|
Sally to mend a great slit in my worked muslin gown before they are
|
||
|
packed up. Good-bye. Give my love to Colonel Forster. I hope you will
|
||
|
drink to our good journey.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your affectionate friend,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"LYDIA BENNET."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! thoughtless, thoughtless Lydia!" cried Elizabeth when she had
|
||
|
finished it. "What a letter is this, to be written at such a moment!
|
||
|
But at least it shows that _she_ was serious on the subject of their
|
||
|
journey. Whatever he might afterwards persuade her to, it was not on her
|
||
|
side a _scheme_ of infamy. My poor father! how he must have felt it!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never saw anyone so shocked. He could not speak a word for full ten
|
||
|
minutes. My mother was taken ill immediately, and the whole house in
|
||
|
such confusion!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! Jane," cried Elizabeth, "was there a servant belonging to it who
|
||
|
did not know the whole story before the end of the day?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not know. I hope there was. But to be guarded at such a time is
|
||
|
very difficult. My mother was in hysterics, and though I endeavoured to
|
||
|
give her every assistance in my power, I am afraid I did not do so
|
||
|
much as I might have done! But the horror of what might possibly happen
|
||
|
almost took from me my faculties."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your attendance upon her has been too much for you. You do not look
|
||
|
well. Oh that I had been with you! you have had every care and anxiety
|
||
|
upon yourself alone."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mary and Kitty have been very kind, and would have shared in every
|
||
|
fatigue, I am sure; but I did not think it right for either of them.
|
||
|
Kitty is slight and delicate; and Mary studies so much, that her hours
|
||
|
of repose should not be broken in on. My aunt Phillips came to Longbourn
|
||
|
on Tuesday, after my father went away; and was so good as to stay till
|
||
|
Thursday with me. She was of great use and comfort to us all. And
|
||
|
Lady Lucas has been very kind; she walked here on Wednesday morning to
|
||
|
condole with us, and offered her services, or any of her daughters', if
|
||
|
they should be of use to us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She had better have stayed at home," cried Elizabeth; "perhaps she
|
||
|
_meant_ well, but, under such a misfortune as this, one cannot see
|
||
|
too little of one's neighbours. Assistance is impossible; condolence
|
||
|
insufferable. Let them triumph over us at a distance, and be satisfied."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She then proceeded to inquire into the measures which her father had
|
||
|
intended to pursue, while in town, for the recovery of his daughter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He meant I believe," replied Jane, "to go to Epsom, the place where
|
||
|
they last changed horses, see the postilions and try if anything could
|
||
|
be made out from them. His principal object must be to discover the
|
||
|
number of the hackney coach which took them from Clapham. It had come
|
||
|
with a fare from London; and as he thought that the circumstance of a
|
||
|
gentleman and lady's removing from one carriage into another might
|
||
|
be remarked he meant to make inquiries at Clapham. If he could anyhow
|
||
|
discover at what house the coachman had before set down his fare, he
|
||
|
determined to make inquiries there, and hoped it might not be impossible
|
||
|
to find out the stand and number of the coach. I do not know of any
|
||
|
other designs that he had formed; but he was in such a hurry to be gone,
|
||
|
and his spirits so greatly discomposed, that I had difficulty in finding
|
||
|
out even so much as this."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 48
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The whole party were in hopes of a letter from Mr. Bennet the next
|
||
|
morning, but the post came in without bringing a single line from him.
|
||
|
His family knew him to be, on all common occasions, a most negligent and
|
||
|
dilatory correspondent; but at such a time they had hoped for exertion.
|
||
|
They were forced to conclude that he had no pleasing intelligence to
|
||
|
send; but even of _that_ they would have been glad to be certain. Mr.
|
||
|
Gardiner had waited only for the letters before he set off.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When he was gone, they were certain at least of receiving constant
|
||
|
information of what was going on, and their uncle promised, at parting,
|
||
|
to prevail on Mr. Bennet to return to Longbourn, as soon as he could,
|
||
|
to the great consolation of his sister, who considered it as the only
|
||
|
security for her husband's not being killed in a duel.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner and the children were to remain in Hertfordshire a few
|
||
|
days longer, as the former thought her presence might be serviceable
|
||
|
to her nieces. She shared in their attendance on Mrs. Bennet, and was a
|
||
|
great comfort to them in their hours of freedom. Their other aunt also
|
||
|
visited them frequently, and always, as she said, with the design of
|
||
|
cheering and heartening them up--though, as she never came without
|
||
|
reporting some fresh instance of Wickham's extravagance or irregularity,
|
||
|
she seldom went away without leaving them more dispirited than she found
|
||
|
them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
All Meryton seemed striving to blacken the man who, but three months
|
||
|
before, had been almost an angel of light. He was declared to be in debt
|
||
|
to every tradesman in the place, and his intrigues, all honoured with
|
||
|
the title of seduction, had been extended into every tradesman's family.
|
||
|
Everybody declared that he was the wickedest young man in the world;
|
||
|
and everybody began to find out that they had always distrusted the
|
||
|
appearance of his goodness. Elizabeth, though she did not credit above
|
||
|
half of what was said, believed enough to make her former assurance of
|
||
|
her sister's ruin more certain; and even Jane, who believed still less
|
||
|
of it, became almost hopeless, more especially as the time was now come
|
||
|
when, if they had gone to Scotland, which she had never before entirely
|
||
|
despaired of, they must in all probability have gained some news of
|
||
|
them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Gardiner left Longbourn on Sunday; on Tuesday his wife received a
|
||
|
letter from him; it told them that, on his arrival, he had immediately
|
||
|
found out his brother, and persuaded him to come to Gracechurch Street;
|
||
|
that Mr. Bennet had been to Epsom and Clapham, before his arrival,
|
||
|
but without gaining any satisfactory information; and that he was now
|
||
|
determined to inquire at all the principal hotels in town, as Mr. Bennet
|
||
|
thought it possible they might have gone to one of them, on their first
|
||
|
coming to London, before they procured lodgings. Mr. Gardiner himself
|
||
|
did not expect any success from this measure, but as his brother was
|
||
|
eager in it, he meant to assist him in pursuing it. He added that Mr.
|
||
|
Bennet seemed wholly disinclined at present to leave London and promised
|
||
|
to write again very soon. There was also a postscript to this effect:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have written to Colonel Forster to desire him to find out, if
|
||
|
possible, from some of the young man's intimates in the regiment,
|
||
|
whether Wickham has any relations or connections who would be likely to
|
||
|
know in what part of town he has now concealed himself. If there were
|
||
|
anyone that one could apply to with a probability of gaining such a
|
||
|
clue as that, it might be of essential consequence. At present we have
|
||
|
nothing to guide us. Colonel Forster will, I dare say, do everything in
|
||
|
his power to satisfy us on this head. But, on second thoughts, perhaps,
|
||
|
Lizzy could tell us what relations he has now living, better than any
|
||
|
other person."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was at no loss to understand from whence this deference to her
|
||
|
authority proceeded; but it was not in her power to give any information
|
||
|
of so satisfactory a nature as the compliment deserved. She had never
|
||
|
heard of his having had any relations, except a father and mother, both
|
||
|
of whom had been dead many years. It was possible, however, that some of
|
||
|
his companions in the ----shire might be able to give more information;
|
||
|
and though she was not very sanguine in expecting it, the application
|
||
|
was a something to look forward to.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Every day at Longbourn was now a day of anxiety; but the most anxious
|
||
|
part of each was when the post was expected. The arrival of letters
|
||
|
was the grand object of every morning's impatience. Through letters,
|
||
|
whatever of good or bad was to be told would be communicated, and every
|
||
|
succeeding day was expected to bring some news of importance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But before they heard again from Mr. Gardiner, a letter arrived for
|
||
|
their father, from a different quarter, from Mr. Collins; which, as Jane
|
||
|
had received directions to open all that came for him in his absence,
|
||
|
she accordingly read; and Elizabeth, who knew what curiosities his
|
||
|
letters always were, looked over her, and read it likewise. It was as
|
||
|
follows:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"MY DEAR SIR,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I feel myself called upon, by our relationship, and my situation
|
||
|
in life, to condole with you on the grievous affliction you are now
|
||
|
suffering under, of which we were yesterday informed by a letter from
|
||
|
Hertfordshire. Be assured, my dear sir, that Mrs. Collins and myself
|
||
|
sincerely sympathise with you and all your respectable family, in
|
||
|
your present distress, which must be of the bitterest kind, because
|
||
|
proceeding from a cause which no time can remove. No arguments shall be
|
||
|
wanting on my part that can alleviate so severe a misfortune--or that
|
||
|
may comfort you, under a circumstance that must be of all others the
|
||
|
most afflicting to a parent's mind. The death of your daughter would
|
||
|
have been a blessing in comparison of this. And it is the more to
|
||
|
be lamented, because there is reason to suppose as my dear Charlotte
|
||
|
informs me, that this licentiousness of behaviour in your daughter has
|
||
|
proceeded from a faulty degree of indulgence; though, at the same time,
|
||
|
for the consolation of yourself and Mrs. Bennet, I am inclined to think
|
||
|
that her own disposition must be naturally bad, or she could not be
|
||
|
guilty of such an enormity, at so early an age. Howsoever that may be,
|
||
|
you are grievously to be pitied; in which opinion I am not only joined
|
||
|
by Mrs. Collins, but likewise by Lady Catherine and her daughter, to
|
||
|
whom I have related the affair. They agree with me in apprehending that
|
||
|
this false step in one daughter will be injurious to the fortunes of
|
||
|
all the others; for who, as Lady Catherine herself condescendingly says,
|
||
|
will connect themselves with such a family? And this consideration leads
|
||
|
me moreover to reflect, with augmented satisfaction, on a certain event
|
||
|
of last November; for had it been otherwise, I must have been involved
|
||
|
in all your sorrow and disgrace. Let me then advise you, dear sir, to
|
||
|
console yourself as much as possible, to throw off your unworthy child
|
||
|
from your affection for ever, and leave her to reap the fruits of her
|
||
|
own heinous offense.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am, dear sir, etc., etc."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Gardiner did not write again till he had received an answer from
|
||
|
Colonel Forster; and then he had nothing of a pleasant nature to send.
|
||
|
It was not known that Wickham had a single relationship with whom he
|
||
|
kept up any connection, and it was certain that he had no near one
|
||
|
living. His former acquaintances had been numerous; but since he
|
||
|
had been in the militia, it did not appear that he was on terms of
|
||
|
particular friendship with any of them. There was no one, therefore,
|
||
|
who could be pointed out as likely to give any news of him. And in the
|
||
|
wretched state of his own finances, there was a very powerful motive for
|
||
|
secrecy, in addition to his fear of discovery by Lydia's relations, for
|
||
|
it had just transpired that he had left gaming debts behind him to a
|
||
|
very considerable amount. Colonel Forster believed that more than a
|
||
|
thousand pounds would be necessary to clear his expenses at Brighton.
|
||
|
He owed a good deal in town, but his debts of honour were still more
|
||
|
formidable. Mr. Gardiner did not attempt to conceal these particulars
|
||
|
from the Longbourn family. Jane heard them with horror. "A gamester!"
|
||
|
she cried. "This is wholly unexpected. I had not an idea of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Gardiner added in his letter, that they might expect to see their
|
||
|
father at home on the following day, which was Saturday. Rendered
|
||
|
spiritless by the ill-success of all their endeavours, he had yielded
|
||
|
to his brother-in-law's entreaty that he would return to his family, and
|
||
|
leave it to him to do whatever occasion might suggest to be advisable
|
||
|
for continuing their pursuit. When Mrs. Bennet was told of this, she did
|
||
|
not express so much satisfaction as her children expected, considering
|
||
|
what her anxiety for his life had been before.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What, is he coming home, and without poor Lydia?" she cried. "Sure he
|
||
|
will not leave London before he has found them. Who is to fight Wickham,
|
||
|
and make him marry her, if he comes away?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
As Mrs. Gardiner began to wish to be at home, it was settled that she
|
||
|
and the children should go to London, at the same time that Mr. Bennet
|
||
|
came from it. The coach, therefore, took them the first stage of their
|
||
|
journey, and brought its master back to Longbourn.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Gardiner went away in all the perplexity about Elizabeth and her
|
||
|
Derbyshire friend that had attended her from that part of the world. His
|
||
|
name had never been voluntarily mentioned before them by her niece; and
|
||
|
the kind of half-expectation which Mrs. Gardiner had formed, of their
|
||
|
being followed by a letter from him, had ended in nothing. Elizabeth had
|
||
|
received none since her return that could come from Pemberley.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The present unhappy state of the family rendered any other excuse for
|
||
|
the lowness of her spirits unnecessary; nothing, therefore, could be
|
||
|
fairly conjectured from _that_, though Elizabeth, who was by this time
|
||
|
tolerably well acquainted with her own feelings, was perfectly aware
|
||
|
that, had she known nothing of Darcy, she could have borne the dread of
|
||
|
Lydia's infamy somewhat better. It would have spared her, she thought,
|
||
|
one sleepless night out of two.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When Mr. Bennet arrived, he had all the appearance of his usual
|
||
|
philosophic composure. He said as little as he had ever been in the
|
||
|
habit of saying; made no mention of the business that had taken him
|
||
|
away, and it was some time before his daughters had courage to speak of
|
||
|
it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was not till the afternoon, when he had joined them at tea, that
|
||
|
Elizabeth ventured to introduce the subject; and then, on her briefly
|
||
|
expressing her sorrow for what he must have endured, he replied, "Say
|
||
|
nothing of that. Who should suffer but myself? It has been my own doing,
|
||
|
and I ought to feel it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You must not be too severe upon yourself," replied Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may well warn me against such an evil. Human nature is so prone
|
||
|
to fall into it! No, Lizzy, let me once in my life feel how much I have
|
||
|
been to blame. I am not afraid of being overpowered by the impression.
|
||
|
It will pass away soon enough."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Do you suppose them to be in London?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; where else can they be so well concealed?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And Lydia used to want to go to London," added Kitty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is happy then," said her father drily; "and her residence there
|
||
|
will probably be of some duration."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Then after a short silence he continued:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lizzy, I bear you no ill-will for being justified in your advice to me
|
||
|
last May, which, considering the event, shows some greatness of mind."
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were interrupted by Miss Bennet, who came to fetch her mother's
|
||
|
tea.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is a parade," he cried, "which does one good; it gives such an
|
||
|
elegance to misfortune! Another day I will do the same; I will sit in my
|
||
|
library, in my nightcap and powdering gown, and give as much trouble as
|
||
|
I can; or, perhaps, I may defer it till Kitty runs away."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am not going to run away, papa," said Kitty fretfully. "If I should
|
||
|
ever go to Brighton, I would behave better than Lydia."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_You_ go to Brighton. I would not trust you so near it as Eastbourne
|
||
|
for fifty pounds! No, Kitty, I have at last learnt to be cautious, and
|
||
|
you will feel the effects of it. No officer is ever to enter into
|
||
|
my house again, nor even to pass through the village. Balls will be
|
||
|
absolutely prohibited, unless you stand up with one of your sisters.
|
||
|
And you are never to stir out of doors till you can prove that you have
|
||
|
spent ten minutes of every day in a rational manner."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Kitty, who took all these threats in a serious light, began to cry.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well," said he, "do not make yourself unhappy. If you are a good
|
||
|
girl for the next ten years, I will take you to a review at the end of
|
||
|
them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 49
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Two days after Mr. Bennet's return, as Jane and Elizabeth were walking
|
||
|
together in the shrubbery behind the house, they saw the housekeeper
|
||
|
coming towards them, and, concluding that she came to call them to their
|
||
|
mother, went forward to meet her; but, instead of the expected summons,
|
||
|
when they approached her, she said to Miss Bennet, "I beg your pardon,
|
||
|
madam, for interrupting you, but I was in hopes you might have got some
|
||
|
good news from town, so I took the liberty of coming to ask."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean, Hill? We have heard nothing from town."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dear madam," cried Mrs. Hill, in great astonishment, "don't you know
|
||
|
there is an express come for master from Mr. Gardiner? He has been here
|
||
|
this half-hour, and master has had a letter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Away ran the girls, too eager to get in to have time for speech. They
|
||
|
ran through the vestibule into the breakfast-room; from thence to the
|
||
|
library; their father was in neither; and they were on the point of
|
||
|
seeking him up stairs with their mother, when they were met by the
|
||
|
butler, who said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you are looking for my master, ma'am, he is walking towards the
|
||
|
little copse."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Upon this information, they instantly passed through the hall once
|
||
|
more, and ran across the lawn after their father, who was deliberately
|
||
|
pursuing his way towards a small wood on one side of the paddock.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane, who was not so light nor so much in the habit of running as
|
||
|
Elizabeth, soon lagged behind, while her sister, panting for breath,
|
||
|
came up with him, and eagerly cried out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, papa, what news--what news? Have you heard from my uncle?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes I have had a letter from him by express."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, and what news does it bring--good or bad?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What is there of good to be expected?" said he, taking the letter from
|
||
|
his pocket. "But perhaps you would like to read it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth impatiently caught it from his hand. Jane now came up.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Read it aloud," said their father, "for I hardly know myself what it is
|
||
|
about."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Gracechurch Street, Monday, August 2.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"MY DEAR BROTHER,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At last I am able to send you some tidings of my niece, and such as,
|
||
|
upon the whole, I hope it will give you satisfaction. Soon after you
|
||
|
left me on Saturday, I was fortunate enough to find out in what part of
|
||
|
London they were. The particulars I reserve till we meet; it is enough
|
||
|
to know they are discovered. I have seen them both--"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Then it is as I always hoped," cried Jane; "they are married!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth read on:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have seen them both. They are not married, nor can I find there
|
||
|
was any intention of being so; but if you are willing to perform the
|
||
|
engagements which I have ventured to make on your side, I hope it will
|
||
|
not be long before they are. All that is required of you is, to assure
|
||
|
to your daughter, by settlement, her equal share of the five thousand
|
||
|
pounds secured among your children after the decease of yourself and
|
||
|
my sister; and, moreover, to enter into an engagement of allowing her,
|
||
|
during your life, one hundred pounds per annum. These are conditions
|
||
|
which, considering everything, I had no hesitation in complying with,
|
||
|
as far as I thought myself privileged, for you. I shall send this by
|
||
|
express, that no time may be lost in bringing me your answer. You
|
||
|
will easily comprehend, from these particulars, that Mr. Wickham's
|
||
|
circumstances are not so hopeless as they are generally believed to be.
|
||
|
The world has been deceived in that respect; and I am happy to say there
|
||
|
will be some little money, even when all his debts are discharged, to
|
||
|
settle on my niece, in addition to her own fortune. If, as I conclude
|
||
|
will be the case, you send me full powers to act in your name throughout
|
||
|
the whole of this business, I will immediately give directions to
|
||
|
Haggerston for preparing a proper settlement. There will not be the
|
||
|
smallest occasion for your coming to town again; therefore stay quiet at
|
||
|
Longbourn, and depend on my diligence and care. Send back your answer as
|
||
|
fast as you can, and be careful to write explicitly. We have judged it
|
||
|
best that my niece should be married from this house, of which I hope
|
||
|
you will approve. She comes to us to-day. I shall write again as soon as
|
||
|
anything more is determined on. Yours, etc.,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"EDW. GARDINER."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is it possible?" cried Elizabeth, when she had finished. "Can it be
|
||
|
possible that he will marry her?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Wickham is not so undeserving, then, as we thought him," said her
|
||
|
sister. "My dear father, I congratulate you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And have you answered the letter?" cried Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No; but it must be done soon."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Most earnestly did she then entreaty him to lose no more time before he
|
||
|
wrote.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! my dear father," she cried, "come back and write immediately.
|
||
|
Consider how important every moment is in such a case."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let me write for you," said Jane, "if you dislike the trouble
|
||
|
yourself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I dislike it very much," he replied; "but it must be done."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And so saying, he turned back with them, and walked towards the house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And may I ask--" said Elizabeth; "but the terms, I suppose, must be
|
||
|
complied with."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Complied with! I am only ashamed of his asking so little."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And they _must_ marry! Yet he is _such_ a man!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, yes, they must marry. There is nothing else to be done. But there
|
||
|
are two things that I want very much to know; one is, how much money
|
||
|
your uncle has laid down to bring it about; and the other, how am I ever
|
||
|
to pay him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Money! My uncle!" cried Jane, "what do you mean, sir?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I mean, that no man in his senses would marry Lydia on so slight a
|
||
|
temptation as one hundred a year during my life, and fifty after I am
|
||
|
gone."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is very true," said Elizabeth; "though it had not occurred to me
|
||
|
before. His debts to be discharged, and something still to remain! Oh!
|
||
|
it must be my uncle's doings! Generous, good man, I am afraid he has
|
||
|
distressed himself. A small sum could not do all this."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No," said her father; "Wickham's a fool if he takes her with a farthing
|
||
|
less than ten thousand pounds. I should be sorry to think so ill of him,
|
||
|
in the very beginning of our relationship."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Ten thousand pounds! Heaven forbid! How is half such a sum to be
|
||
|
repaid?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet made no answer, and each of them, deep in thought, continued
|
||
|
silent till they reached the house. Their father then went on to the
|
||
|
library to write, and the girls walked into the breakfast-room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And they are really to be married!" cried Elizabeth, as soon as they
|
||
|
were by themselves. "How strange this is! And for _this_ we are to be
|
||
|
thankful. That they should marry, small as is their chance of happiness,
|
||
|
and wretched as is his character, we are forced to rejoice. Oh, Lydia!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I comfort myself with thinking," replied Jane, "that he certainly would
|
||
|
not marry Lydia if he had not a real regard for her. Though our kind
|
||
|
uncle has done something towards clearing him, I cannot believe that ten
|
||
|
thousand pounds, or anything like it, has been advanced. He has children
|
||
|
of his own, and may have more. How could he spare half ten thousand
|
||
|
pounds?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If he were ever able to learn what Wickham's debts have been," said
|
||
|
Elizabeth, "and how much is settled on his side on our sister, we shall
|
||
|
exactly know what Mr. Gardiner has done for them, because Wickham has
|
||
|
not sixpence of his own. The kindness of my uncle and aunt can never
|
||
|
be requited. Their taking her home, and affording her their personal
|
||
|
protection and countenance, is such a sacrifice to her advantage as
|
||
|
years of gratitude cannot enough acknowledge. By this time she is
|
||
|
actually with them! If such goodness does not make her miserable now,
|
||
|
she will never deserve to be happy! What a meeting for her, when she
|
||
|
first sees my aunt!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We must endeavour to forget all that has passed on either side," said
|
||
|
Jane: "I hope and trust they will yet be happy. His consenting to
|
||
|
marry her is a proof, I will believe, that he is come to a right way of
|
||
|
thinking. Their mutual affection will steady them; and I flatter myself
|
||
|
they will settle so quietly, and live in so rational a manner, as may in
|
||
|
time make their past imprudence forgotten."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Their conduct has been such," replied Elizabeth, "as neither you, nor
|
||
|
I, nor anybody can ever forget. It is useless to talk of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It now occurred to the girls that their mother was in all likelihood
|
||
|
perfectly ignorant of what had happened. They went to the library,
|
||
|
therefore, and asked their father whether he would not wish them to make
|
||
|
it known to her. He was writing and, without raising his head, coolly
|
||
|
replied:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Just as you please."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"May we take my uncle's letter to read to her?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Take whatever you like, and get away."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth took the letter from his writing-table, and they went up stairs
|
||
|
together. Mary and Kitty were both with Mrs. Bennet: one communication
|
||
|
would, therefore, do for all. After a slight preparation for good news,
|
||
|
the letter was read aloud. Mrs. Bennet could hardly contain herself. As
|
||
|
soon as Jane had read Mr. Gardiner's hope of Lydia's being soon
|
||
|
married, her joy burst forth, and every following sentence added to its
|
||
|
exuberance. She was now in an irritation as violent from delight, as she
|
||
|
had ever been fidgety from alarm and vexation. To know that her daughter
|
||
|
would be married was enough. She was disturbed by no fear for her
|
||
|
felicity, nor humbled by any remembrance of her misconduct.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear, dear Lydia!" she cried. "This is delightful indeed! She will
|
||
|
be married! I shall see her again! She will be married at sixteen!
|
||
|
My good, kind brother! I knew how it would be. I knew he would manage
|
||
|
everything! How I long to see her! and to see dear Wickham too! But the
|
||
|
clothes, the wedding clothes! I will write to my sister Gardiner about
|
||
|
them directly. Lizzy, my dear, run down to your father, and ask him
|
||
|
how much he will give her. Stay, stay, I will go myself. Ring the bell,
|
||
|
Kitty, for Hill. I will put on my things in a moment. My dear, dear
|
||
|
Lydia! How merry we shall be together when we meet!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her eldest daughter endeavoured to give some relief to the violence of
|
||
|
these transports, by leading her thoughts to the obligations which Mr.
|
||
|
Gardiner's behaviour laid them all under.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For we must attribute this happy conclusion," she added, "in a great
|
||
|
measure to his kindness. We are persuaded that he has pledged himself to
|
||
|
assist Mr. Wickham with money."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well," cried her mother, "it is all very right; who should do it but
|
||
|
her own uncle? If he had not had a family of his own, I and my children
|
||
|
must have had all his money, you know; and it is the first time we have
|
||
|
ever had anything from him, except a few presents. Well! I am so happy!
|
||
|
In a short time I shall have a daughter married. Mrs. Wickham! How well
|
||
|
it sounds! And she was only sixteen last June. My dear Jane, I am in
|
||
|
such a flutter, that I am sure I can't write; so I will dictate, and
|
||
|
you write for me. We will settle with your father about the money
|
||
|
afterwards; but the things should be ordered immediately."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was then proceeding to all the particulars of calico, muslin, and
|
||
|
cambric, and would shortly have dictated some very plentiful orders, had
|
||
|
not Jane, though with some difficulty, persuaded her to wait till her
|
||
|
father was at leisure to be consulted. One day's delay, she observed,
|
||
|
would be of small importance; and her mother was too happy to be quite
|
||
|
so obstinate as usual. Other schemes, too, came into her head.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will go to Meryton," said she, "as soon as I am dressed, and tell the
|
||
|
good, good news to my sister Philips. And as I come back, I can call
|
||
|
on Lady Lucas and Mrs. Long. Kitty, run down and order the carriage.
|
||
|
An airing would do me a great deal of good, I am sure. Girls, can I do
|
||
|
anything for you in Meryton? Oh! Here comes Hill! My dear Hill, have you
|
||
|
heard the good news? Miss Lydia is going to be married; and you shall
|
||
|
all have a bowl of punch to make merry at her wedding."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Hill began instantly to express her joy. Elizabeth received her
|
||
|
congratulations amongst the rest, and then, sick of this folly, took
|
||
|
refuge in her own room, that she might think with freedom.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Poor Lydia's situation must, at best, be bad enough; but that it was
|
||
|
no worse, she had need to be thankful. She felt it so; and though, in
|
||
|
looking forward, neither rational happiness nor worldly prosperity could
|
||
|
be justly expected for her sister, in looking back to what they had
|
||
|
feared, only two hours ago, she felt all the advantages of what they had
|
||
|
gained.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 50
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet had very often wished before this period of his life that,
|
||
|
instead of spending his whole income, he had laid by an annual sum for
|
||
|
the better provision of his children, and of his wife, if she survived
|
||
|
him. He now wished it more than ever. Had he done his duty in that
|
||
|
respect, Lydia need not have been indebted to her uncle for whatever
|
||
|
of honour or credit could now be purchased for her. The satisfaction of
|
||
|
prevailing on one of the most worthless young men in Great Britain to be
|
||
|
her husband might then have rested in its proper place.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He was seriously concerned that a cause of so little advantage to anyone
|
||
|
should be forwarded at the sole expense of his brother-in-law, and he
|
||
|
was determined, if possible, to find out the extent of his assistance,
|
||
|
and to discharge the obligation as soon as he could.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When first Mr. Bennet had married, economy was held to be perfectly
|
||
|
useless, for, of course, they were to have a son. The son was to join
|
||
|
in cutting off the entail, as soon as he should be of age, and the widow
|
||
|
and younger children would by that means be provided for. Five daughters
|
||
|
successively entered the world, but yet the son was to come; and Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet, for many years after Lydia's birth, had been certain that he
|
||
|
would. This event had at last been despaired of, but it was then
|
||
|
too late to be saving. Mrs. Bennet had no turn for economy, and her
|
||
|
husband's love of independence had alone prevented their exceeding their
|
||
|
income.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Five thousand pounds was settled by marriage articles on Mrs. Bennet and
|
||
|
the children. But in what proportions it should be divided amongst the
|
||
|
latter depended on the will of the parents. This was one point, with
|
||
|
regard to Lydia, at least, which was now to be settled, and Mr. Bennet
|
||
|
could have no hesitation in acceding to the proposal before him. In
|
||
|
terms of grateful acknowledgment for the kindness of his brother,
|
||
|
though expressed most concisely, he then delivered on paper his perfect
|
||
|
approbation of all that was done, and his willingness to fulfil the
|
||
|
engagements that had been made for him. He had never before supposed
|
||
|
that, could Wickham be prevailed on to marry his daughter, it would
|
||
|
be done with so little inconvenience to himself as by the present
|
||
|
arrangement. He would scarcely be ten pounds a year the loser by the
|
||
|
hundred that was to be paid them; for, what with her board and pocket
|
||
|
allowance, and the continual presents in money which passed to her
|
||
|
through her mother's hands, Lydia's expenses had been very little within
|
||
|
that sum.
|
||
|
|
||
|
That it would be done with such trifling exertion on his side, too, was
|
||
|
another very welcome surprise; for his wish at present was to have as
|
||
|
little trouble in the business as possible. When the first transports
|
||
|
of rage which had produced his activity in seeking her were over, he
|
||
|
naturally returned to all his former indolence. His letter was soon
|
||
|
dispatched; for, though dilatory in undertaking business, he was quick
|
||
|
in its execution. He begged to know further particulars of what he
|
||
|
was indebted to his brother, but was too angry with Lydia to send any
|
||
|
message to her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The good news spread quickly through the house, and with proportionate
|
||
|
speed through the neighbourhood. It was borne in the latter with decent
|
||
|
philosophy. To be sure, it would have been more for the advantage
|
||
|
of conversation had Miss Lydia Bennet come upon the town; or, as the
|
||
|
happiest alternative, been secluded from the world, in some distant
|
||
|
farmhouse. But there was much to be talked of in marrying her; and the
|
||
|
good-natured wishes for her well-doing which had proceeded before from
|
||
|
all the spiteful old ladies in Meryton lost but a little of their spirit
|
||
|
in this change of circumstances, because with such an husband her misery
|
||
|
was considered certain.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was a fortnight since Mrs. Bennet had been downstairs; but on this
|
||
|
happy day she again took her seat at the head of her table, and in
|
||
|
spirits oppressively high. No sentiment of shame gave a damp to her
|
||
|
triumph. The marriage of a daughter, which had been the first object
|
||
|
of her wishes since Jane was sixteen, was now on the point of
|
||
|
accomplishment, and her thoughts and her words ran wholly on those
|
||
|
attendants of elegant nuptials, fine muslins, new carriages, and
|
||
|
servants. She was busily searching through the neighbourhood for a
|
||
|
proper situation for her daughter, and, without knowing or considering
|
||
|
what their income might be, rejected many as deficient in size and
|
||
|
importance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Haye Park might do," said she, "if the Gouldings could quit it--or the
|
||
|
great house at Stoke, if the drawing-room were larger; but Ashworth is
|
||
|
too far off! I could not bear to have her ten miles from me; and as for
|
||
|
Pulvis Lodge, the attics are dreadful."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her husband allowed her to talk on without interruption while the
|
||
|
servants remained. But when they had withdrawn, he said to her: "Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet, before you take any or all of these houses for your son and
|
||
|
daughter, let us come to a right understanding. Into _one_ house in this
|
||
|
neighbourhood they shall never have admittance. I will not encourage the
|
||
|
impudence of either, by receiving them at Longbourn."
|
||
|
|
||
|
A long dispute followed this declaration; but Mr. Bennet was firm. It
|
||
|
soon led to another; and Mrs. Bennet found, with amazement and horror,
|
||
|
that her husband would not advance a guinea to buy clothes for his
|
||
|
daughter. He protested that she should receive from him no mark of
|
||
|
affection whatever on the occasion. Mrs. Bennet could hardly comprehend
|
||
|
it. That his anger could be carried to such a point of inconceivable
|
||
|
resentment as to refuse his daughter a privilege without which her
|
||
|
marriage would scarcely seem valid, exceeded all she could believe
|
||
|
possible. She was more alive to the disgrace which her want of new
|
||
|
clothes must reflect on her daughter's nuptials, than to any sense of
|
||
|
shame at her eloping and living with Wickham a fortnight before they
|
||
|
took place.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was now most heartily sorry that she had, from the distress of
|
||
|
the moment, been led to make Mr. Darcy acquainted with their fears for
|
||
|
her sister; for since her marriage would so shortly give the
|
||
|
proper termination to the elopement, they might hope to conceal its
|
||
|
unfavourable beginning from all those who were not immediately on the
|
||
|
spot.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She had no fear of its spreading farther through his means. There were
|
||
|
few people on whose secrecy she would have more confidently depended;
|
||
|
but, at the same time, there was no one whose knowledge of a sister's
|
||
|
frailty would have mortified her so much--not, however, from any fear
|
||
|
of disadvantage from it individually to herself, for, at any rate,
|
||
|
there seemed a gulf impassable between them. Had Lydia's marriage been
|
||
|
concluded on the most honourable terms, it was not to be supposed that
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy would connect himself with a family where, to every other
|
||
|
objection, would now be added an alliance and relationship of the
|
||
|
nearest kind with a man whom he so justly scorned.
|
||
|
|
||
|
From such a connection she could not wonder that he would shrink. The
|
||
|
wish of procuring her regard, which she had assured herself of his
|
||
|
feeling in Derbyshire, could not in rational expectation survive such a
|
||
|
blow as this. She was humbled, she was grieved; she repented, though she
|
||
|
hardly knew of what. She became jealous of his esteem, when she could no
|
||
|
longer hope to be benefited by it. She wanted to hear of him, when there
|
||
|
seemed the least chance of gaining intelligence. She was convinced that
|
||
|
she could have been happy with him, when it was no longer likely they
|
||
|
should meet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
What a triumph for him, as she often thought, could he know that the
|
||
|
proposals which she had proudly spurned only four months ago, would now
|
||
|
have been most gladly and gratefully received! He was as generous, she
|
||
|
doubted not, as the most generous of his sex; but while he was mortal,
|
||
|
there must be a triumph.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She began now to comprehend that he was exactly the man who, in
|
||
|
disposition and talents, would most suit her. His understanding and
|
||
|
temper, though unlike her own, would have answered all her wishes. It
|
||
|
was an union that must have been to the advantage of both; by her ease
|
||
|
and liveliness, his mind might have been softened, his manners improved;
|
||
|
and from his judgement, information, and knowledge of the world, she
|
||
|
must have received benefit of greater importance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But no such happy marriage could now teach the admiring multitude what
|
||
|
connubial felicity really was. An union of a different tendency, and
|
||
|
precluding the possibility of the other, was soon to be formed in their
|
||
|
family.
|
||
|
|
||
|
How Wickham and Lydia were to be supported in tolerable independence,
|
||
|
she could not imagine. But how little of permanent happiness could
|
||
|
belong to a couple who were only brought together because their passions
|
||
|
were stronger than their virtue, she could easily conjecture.
|
||
|
|
||
|
* * * * *
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Gardiner soon wrote again to his brother. To Mr. Bennet's
|
||
|
acknowledgments he briefly replied, with assurance of his eagerness to
|
||
|
promote the welfare of any of his family; and concluded with entreaties
|
||
|
that the subject might never be mentioned to him again. The principal
|
||
|
purport of his letter was to inform them that Mr. Wickham had resolved
|
||
|
on quitting the militia.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It was greatly my wish that he should do so," he added, "as soon as
|
||
|
his marriage was fixed on. And I think you will agree with me, in
|
||
|
considering the removal from that corps as highly advisable, both on
|
||
|
his account and my niece's. It is Mr. Wickham's intention to go into
|
||
|
the regulars; and among his former friends, there are still some who
|
||
|
are able and willing to assist him in the army. He has the promise of an
|
||
|
ensigncy in General ----'s regiment, now quartered in the North. It
|
||
|
is an advantage to have it so far from this part of the kingdom. He
|
||
|
promises fairly; and I hope among different people, where they may each
|
||
|
have a character to preserve, they will both be more prudent. I have
|
||
|
written to Colonel Forster, to inform him of our present arrangements,
|
||
|
and to request that he will satisfy the various creditors of Mr. Wickham
|
||
|
in and near Brighton, with assurances of speedy payment, for which I
|
||
|
have pledged myself. And will you give yourself the trouble of carrying
|
||
|
similar assurances to his creditors in Meryton, of whom I shall subjoin
|
||
|
a list according to his information? He has given in all his debts; I
|
||
|
hope at least he has not deceived us. Haggerston has our directions,
|
||
|
and all will be completed in a week. They will then join his regiment,
|
||
|
unless they are first invited to Longbourn; and I understand from Mrs.
|
||
|
Gardiner, that my niece is very desirous of seeing you all before she
|
||
|
leaves the South. She is well, and begs to be dutifully remembered to
|
||
|
you and your mother.--Yours, etc.,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"E. GARDINER."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet and his daughters saw all the advantages of Wickham's removal
|
||
|
from the ----shire as clearly as Mr. Gardiner could do. But Mrs. Bennet
|
||
|
was not so well pleased with it. Lydia's being settled in the North,
|
||
|
just when she had expected most pleasure and pride in her company,
|
||
|
for she had by no means given up her plan of their residing in
|
||
|
Hertfordshire, was a severe disappointment; and, besides, it was such a
|
||
|
pity that Lydia should be taken from a regiment where she was acquainted
|
||
|
with everybody, and had so many favourites.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is so fond of Mrs. Forster," said she, "it will be quite shocking
|
||
|
to send her away! And there are several of the young men, too, that she
|
||
|
likes very much. The officers may not be so pleasant in General ----'s
|
||
|
regiment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
His daughter's request, for such it might be considered, of being
|
||
|
admitted into her family again before she set off for the North,
|
||
|
received at first an absolute negative. But Jane and Elizabeth,
|
||
|
who agreed in wishing, for the sake of their sister's feelings and
|
||
|
consequence, that she should be noticed on her marriage by her parents,
|
||
|
urged him so earnestly yet so rationally and so mildly, to receive her
|
||
|
and her husband at Longbourn, as soon as they were married, that he was
|
||
|
prevailed on to think as they thought, and act as they wished. And their
|
||
|
mother had the satisfaction of knowing that she would be able to show
|
||
|
her married daughter in the neighbourhood before she was banished to the
|
||
|
North. When Mr. Bennet wrote again to his brother, therefore, he sent
|
||
|
his permission for them to come; and it was settled, that as soon as
|
||
|
the ceremony was over, they should proceed to Longbourn. Elizabeth was
|
||
|
surprised, however, that Wickham should consent to such a scheme, and
|
||
|
had she consulted only her own inclination, any meeting with him would
|
||
|
have been the last object of her wishes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 51
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their sister's wedding day arrived; and Jane and Elizabeth felt for her
|
||
|
probably more than she felt for herself. The carriage was sent to
|
||
|
meet them at ----, and they were to return in it by dinner-time. Their
|
||
|
arrival was dreaded by the elder Miss Bennets, and Jane more especially,
|
||
|
who gave Lydia the feelings which would have attended herself, had she
|
||
|
been the culprit, and was wretched in the thought of what her sister
|
||
|
must endure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They came. The family were assembled in the breakfast room to receive
|
||
|
them. Smiles decked the face of Mrs. Bennet as the carriage drove up to
|
||
|
the door; her husband looked impenetrably grave; her daughters, alarmed,
|
||
|
anxious, uneasy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lydia's voice was heard in the vestibule; the door was thrown open, and
|
||
|
she ran into the room. Her mother stepped forwards, embraced her, and
|
||
|
welcomed her with rapture; gave her hand, with an affectionate smile,
|
||
|
to Wickham, who followed his lady; and wished them both joy with an
|
||
|
alacrity which shewed no doubt of their happiness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their reception from Mr. Bennet, to whom they then turned, was not quite
|
||
|
so cordial. His countenance rather gained in austerity; and he scarcely
|
||
|
opened his lips. The easy assurance of the young couple, indeed, was
|
||
|
enough to provoke him. Elizabeth was disgusted, and even Miss Bennet
|
||
|
was shocked. Lydia was Lydia still; untamed, unabashed, wild, noisy,
|
||
|
and fearless. She turned from sister to sister, demanding their
|
||
|
congratulations; and when at length they all sat down, looked eagerly
|
||
|
round the room, took notice of some little alteration in it, and
|
||
|
observed, with a laugh, that it was a great while since she had been
|
||
|
there.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Wickham was not at all more distressed than herself, but his manners
|
||
|
were always so pleasing, that had his character and his marriage been
|
||
|
exactly what they ought, his smiles and his easy address, while he
|
||
|
claimed their relationship, would have delighted them all. Elizabeth had
|
||
|
not before believed him quite equal to such assurance; but she sat down,
|
||
|
resolving within herself to draw no limits in future to the impudence
|
||
|
of an impudent man. She blushed, and Jane blushed; but the cheeks of the
|
||
|
two who caused their confusion suffered no variation of colour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
There was no want of discourse. The bride and her mother could neither
|
||
|
of them talk fast enough; and Wickham, who happened to sit near
|
||
|
Elizabeth, began inquiring after his acquaintance in that neighbourhood,
|
||
|
with a good humoured ease which she felt very unable to equal in her
|
||
|
replies. They seemed each of them to have the happiest memories in the
|
||
|
world. Nothing of the past was recollected with pain; and Lydia led
|
||
|
voluntarily to subjects which her sisters would not have alluded to for
|
||
|
the world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Only think of its being three months," she cried, "since I went away;
|
||
|
it seems but a fortnight I declare; and yet there have been things
|
||
|
enough happened in the time. Good gracious! when I went away, I am sure
|
||
|
I had no more idea of being married till I came back again! though I
|
||
|
thought it would be very good fun if I was."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her father lifted up his eyes. Jane was distressed. Elizabeth looked
|
||
|
expressively at Lydia; but she, who never heard nor saw anything of
|
||
|
which she chose to be insensible, gaily continued, "Oh! mamma, do the
|
||
|
people hereabouts know I am married to-day? I was afraid they might not;
|
||
|
and we overtook William Goulding in his curricle, so I was determined he
|
||
|
should know it, and so I let down the side-glass next to him, and took
|
||
|
off my glove, and let my hand just rest upon the window frame, so that
|
||
|
he might see the ring, and then I bowed and smiled like anything."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could bear it no longer. She got up, and ran out of the room;
|
||
|
and returned no more, till she heard them passing through the hall to
|
||
|
the dining parlour. She then joined them soon enough to see Lydia, with
|
||
|
anxious parade, walk up to her mother's right hand, and hear her say
|
||
|
to her eldest sister, "Ah! Jane, I take your place now, and you must go
|
||
|
lower, because I am a married woman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was not to be supposed that time would give Lydia that embarrassment
|
||
|
from which she had been so wholly free at first. Her ease and good
|
||
|
spirits increased. She longed to see Mrs. Phillips, the Lucases, and
|
||
|
all their other neighbours, and to hear herself called "Mrs. Wickham"
|
||
|
by each of them; and in the mean time, she went after dinner to show her
|
||
|
ring, and boast of being married, to Mrs. Hill and the two housemaids.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, mamma," said she, when they were all returned to the breakfast
|
||
|
room, "and what do you think of my husband? Is not he a charming man? I
|
||
|
am sure my sisters must all envy me. I only hope they may have half
|
||
|
my good luck. They must all go to Brighton. That is the place to get
|
||
|
husbands. What a pity it is, mamma, we did not all go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very true; and if I had my will, we should. But my dear Lydia, I don't
|
||
|
at all like your going such a way off. Must it be so?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, lord! yes;--there is nothing in that. I shall like it of all
|
||
|
things. You and papa, and my sisters, must come down and see us. We
|
||
|
shall be at Newcastle all the winter, and I dare say there will be some
|
||
|
balls, and I will take care to get good partners for them all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should like it beyond anything!" said her mother.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And then when you go away, you may leave one or two of my sisters
|
||
|
behind you; and I dare say I shall get husbands for them before the
|
||
|
winter is over."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I thank you for my share of the favour," said Elizabeth; "but I do not
|
||
|
particularly like your way of getting husbands."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Their visitors were not to remain above ten days with them. Mr. Wickham
|
||
|
had received his commission before he left London, and he was to join
|
||
|
his regiment at the end of a fortnight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
No one but Mrs. Bennet regretted that their stay would be so short; and
|
||
|
she made the most of the time by visiting about with her daughter, and
|
||
|
having very frequent parties at home. These parties were acceptable to
|
||
|
all; to avoid a family circle was even more desirable to such as did
|
||
|
think, than such as did not.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Wickham's affection for Lydia was just what Elizabeth had expected
|
||
|
to find it; not equal to Lydia's for him. She had scarcely needed her
|
||
|
present observation to be satisfied, from the reason of things, that
|
||
|
their elopement had been brought on by the strength of her love, rather
|
||
|
than by his; and she would have wondered why, without violently caring
|
||
|
for her, he chose to elope with her at all, had she not felt certain
|
||
|
that his flight was rendered necessary by distress of circumstances; and
|
||
|
if that were the case, he was not the young man to resist an opportunity
|
||
|
of having a companion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lydia was exceedingly fond of him. He was her dear Wickham on every
|
||
|
occasion; no one was to be put in competition with him. He did every
|
||
|
thing best in the world; and she was sure he would kill more birds on
|
||
|
the first of September, than any body else in the country.
|
||
|
|
||
|
One morning, soon after their arrival, as she was sitting with her two
|
||
|
elder sisters, she said to Elizabeth:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lizzy, I never gave _you_ an account of my wedding, I believe. You
|
||
|
were not by, when I told mamma and the others all about it. Are not you
|
||
|
curious to hear how it was managed?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No really," replied Elizabeth; "I think there cannot be too little said
|
||
|
on the subject."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"La! You are so strange! But I must tell you how it went off. We were
|
||
|
married, you know, at St. Clement's, because Wickham's lodgings were in
|
||
|
that parish. And it was settled that we should all be there by eleven
|
||
|
o'clock. My uncle and aunt and I were to go together; and the others
|
||
|
were to meet us at the church. Well, Monday morning came, and I was in
|
||
|
such a fuss! I was so afraid, you know, that something would happen to
|
||
|
put it off, and then I should have gone quite distracted. And there was
|
||
|
my aunt, all the time I was dressing, preaching and talking away just as
|
||
|
if she was reading a sermon. However, I did not hear above one word in
|
||
|
ten, for I was thinking, you may suppose, of my dear Wickham. I longed
|
||
|
to know whether he would be married in his blue coat."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, and so we breakfasted at ten as usual; I thought it would never
|
||
|
be over; for, by the bye, you are to understand, that my uncle and aunt
|
||
|
were horrid unpleasant all the time I was with them. If you'll believe
|
||
|
me, I did not once put my foot out of doors, though I was there a
|
||
|
fortnight. Not one party, or scheme, or anything. To be sure London was
|
||
|
rather thin, but, however, the Little Theatre was open. Well, and so
|
||
|
just as the carriage came to the door, my uncle was called away upon
|
||
|
business to that horrid man Mr. Stone. And then, you know, when once
|
||
|
they get together, there is no end of it. Well, I was so frightened I
|
||
|
did not know what to do, for my uncle was to give me away; and if we
|
||
|
were beyond the hour, we could not be married all day. But, luckily, he
|
||
|
came back again in ten minutes' time, and then we all set out. However,
|
||
|
I recollected afterwards that if he had been prevented going, the
|
||
|
wedding need not be put off, for Mr. Darcy might have done as well."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Darcy!" repeated Elizabeth, in utter amazement.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, yes!--he was to come there with Wickham, you know. But gracious
|
||
|
me! I quite forgot! I ought not to have said a word about it. I promised
|
||
|
them so faithfully! What will Wickham say? It was to be such a secret!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If it was to be secret," said Jane, "say not another word on the
|
||
|
subject. You may depend upon my seeking no further."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! certainly," said Elizabeth, though burning with curiosity; "we will
|
||
|
ask you no questions."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Thank you," said Lydia, "for if you did, I should certainly tell you
|
||
|
all, and then Wickham would be angry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
On such encouragement to ask, Elizabeth was forced to put it out of her
|
||
|
power, by running away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But to live in ignorance on such a point was impossible; or at least
|
||
|
it was impossible not to try for information. Mr. Darcy had been at
|
||
|
her sister's wedding. It was exactly a scene, and exactly among people,
|
||
|
where he had apparently least to do, and least temptation to go.
|
||
|
Conjectures as to the meaning of it, rapid and wild, hurried into her
|
||
|
brain; but she was satisfied with none. Those that best pleased her, as
|
||
|
placing his conduct in the noblest light, seemed most improbable. She
|
||
|
could not bear such suspense; and hastily seizing a sheet of paper,
|
||
|
wrote a short letter to her aunt, to request an explanation of what
|
||
|
Lydia had dropt, if it were compatible with the secrecy which had been
|
||
|
intended.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may readily comprehend," she added, "what my curiosity must be
|
||
|
to know how a person unconnected with any of us, and (comparatively
|
||
|
speaking) a stranger to our family, should have been amongst you at such
|
||
|
a time. Pray write instantly, and let me understand it--unless it is,
|
||
|
for very cogent reasons, to remain in the secrecy which Lydia seems
|
||
|
to think necessary; and then I must endeavour to be satisfied with
|
||
|
ignorance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not that I _shall_, though," she added to herself, as she finished
|
||
|
the letter; "and my dear aunt, if you do not tell me in an honourable
|
||
|
manner, I shall certainly be reduced to tricks and stratagems to find it
|
||
|
out."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane's delicate sense of honour would not allow her to speak to
|
||
|
Elizabeth privately of what Lydia had let fall; Elizabeth was glad
|
||
|
of it;--till it appeared whether her inquiries would receive any
|
||
|
satisfaction, she had rather be without a confidante.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 52
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth had the satisfaction of receiving an answer to her letter as
|
||
|
soon as she possibly could. She was no sooner in possession of it
|
||
|
than, hurrying into the little copse, where she was least likely to
|
||
|
be interrupted, she sat down on one of the benches and prepared to
|
||
|
be happy; for the length of the letter convinced her that it did not
|
||
|
contain a denial.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Gracechurch street, Sept. 6.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"MY DEAR NIECE,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have just received your letter, and shall devote this whole morning
|
||
|
to answering it, as I foresee that a _little_ writing will not comprise
|
||
|
what I have to tell you. I must confess myself surprised by your
|
||
|
application; I did not expect it from _you_. Don't think me angry,
|
||
|
however, for I only mean to let you know that I had not imagined such
|
||
|
inquiries to be necessary on _your_ side. If you do not choose to
|
||
|
understand me, forgive my impertinence. Your uncle is as much surprised
|
||
|
as I am--and nothing but the belief of your being a party concerned
|
||
|
would have allowed him to act as he has done. But if you are really
|
||
|
innocent and ignorant, I must be more explicit.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"On the very day of my coming home from Longbourn, your uncle had a most
|
||
|
unexpected visitor. Mr. Darcy called, and was shut up with him several
|
||
|
hours. It was all over before I arrived; so my curiosity was not so
|
||
|
dreadfully racked as _yours_ seems to have been. He came to tell Mr.
|
||
|
Gardiner that he had found out where your sister and Mr. Wickham were,
|
||
|
and that he had seen and talked with them both; Wickham repeatedly,
|
||
|
Lydia once. From what I can collect, he left Derbyshire only one day
|
||
|
after ourselves, and came to town with the resolution of hunting for
|
||
|
them. The motive professed was his conviction of its being owing to
|
||
|
himself that Wickham's worthlessness had not been so well known as to
|
||
|
make it impossible for any young woman of character to love or confide
|
||
|
in him. He generously imputed the whole to his mistaken pride, and
|
||
|
confessed that he had before thought it beneath him to lay his private
|
||
|
actions open to the world. His character was to speak for itself. He
|
||
|
called it, therefore, his duty to step forward, and endeavour to remedy
|
||
|
an evil which had been brought on by himself. If he _had another_
|
||
|
motive, I am sure it would never disgrace him. He had been some days
|
||
|
in town, before he was able to discover them; but he had something to
|
||
|
direct his search, which was more than _we_ had; and the consciousness
|
||
|
of this was another reason for his resolving to follow us.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is a lady, it seems, a Mrs. Younge, who was some time ago
|
||
|
governess to Miss Darcy, and was dismissed from her charge on some cause
|
||
|
of disapprobation, though he did not say what. She then took a large
|
||
|
house in Edward-street, and has since maintained herself by letting
|
||
|
lodgings. This Mrs. Younge was, he knew, intimately acquainted with
|
||
|
Wickham; and he went to her for intelligence of him as soon as he got to
|
||
|
town. But it was two or three days before he could get from her what he
|
||
|
wanted. She would not betray her trust, I suppose, without bribery and
|
||
|
corruption, for she really did know where her friend was to be found.
|
||
|
Wickham indeed had gone to her on their first arrival in London, and had
|
||
|
she been able to receive them into her house, they would have taken up
|
||
|
their abode with her. At length, however, our kind friend procured the
|
||
|
wished-for direction. They were in ---- street. He saw Wickham, and
|
||
|
afterwards insisted on seeing Lydia. His first object with her, he
|
||
|
acknowledged, had been to persuade her to quit her present disgraceful
|
||
|
situation, and return to her friends as soon as they could be prevailed
|
||
|
on to receive her, offering his assistance, as far as it would go. But
|
||
|
he found Lydia absolutely resolved on remaining where she was. She cared
|
||
|
for none of her friends; she wanted no help of his; she would not hear
|
||
|
of leaving Wickham. She was sure they should be married some time or
|
||
|
other, and it did not much signify when. Since such were her feelings,
|
||
|
it only remained, he thought, to secure and expedite a marriage, which,
|
||
|
in his very first conversation with Wickham, he easily learnt had never
|
||
|
been _his_ design. He confessed himself obliged to leave the regiment,
|
||
|
on account of some debts of honour, which were very pressing; and
|
||
|
scrupled not to lay all the ill-consequences of Lydia's flight on her
|
||
|
own folly alone. He meant to resign his commission immediately; and as
|
||
|
to his future situation, he could conjecture very little about it. He
|
||
|
must go somewhere, but he did not know where, and he knew he should have
|
||
|
nothing to live on.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Darcy asked him why he had not married your sister at once. Though
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet was not imagined to be very rich, he would have been able
|
||
|
to do something for him, and his situation must have been benefited by
|
||
|
marriage. But he found, in reply to this question, that Wickham still
|
||
|
cherished the hope of more effectually making his fortune by marriage in
|
||
|
some other country. Under such circumstances, however, he was not likely
|
||
|
to be proof against the temptation of immediate relief.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They met several times, for there was much to be discussed. Wickham of
|
||
|
course wanted more than he could get; but at length was reduced to be
|
||
|
reasonable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Every thing being settled between _them_, Mr. Darcy's next step was to
|
||
|
make your uncle acquainted with it, and he first called in Gracechurch
|
||
|
street the evening before I came home. But Mr. Gardiner could not be
|
||
|
seen, and Mr. Darcy found, on further inquiry, that your father was
|
||
|
still with him, but would quit town the next morning. He did not judge
|
||
|
your father to be a person whom he could so properly consult as your
|
||
|
uncle, and therefore readily postponed seeing him till after the
|
||
|
departure of the former. He did not leave his name, and till the next
|
||
|
day it was only known that a gentleman had called on business.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"On Saturday he came again. Your father was gone, your uncle at home,
|
||
|
and, as I said before, they had a great deal of talk together.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They met again on Sunday, and then _I_ saw him too. It was not all
|
||
|
settled before Monday: as soon as it was, the express was sent off to
|
||
|
Longbourn. But our visitor was very obstinate. I fancy, Lizzy, that
|
||
|
obstinacy is the real defect of his character, after all. He has been
|
||
|
accused of many faults at different times, but _this_ is the true one.
|
||
|
Nothing was to be done that he did not do himself; though I am sure (and
|
||
|
I do not speak it to be thanked, therefore say nothing about it), your
|
||
|
uncle would most readily have settled the whole.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"They battled it together for a long time, which was more than either
|
||
|
the gentleman or lady concerned in it deserved. But at last your uncle
|
||
|
was forced to yield, and instead of being allowed to be of use to his
|
||
|
niece, was forced to put up with only having the probable credit of it,
|
||
|
which went sorely against the grain; and I really believe your letter
|
||
|
this morning gave him great pleasure, because it required an explanation
|
||
|
that would rob him of his borrowed feathers, and give the praise where
|
||
|
it was due. But, Lizzy, this must go no farther than yourself, or Jane
|
||
|
at most.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know pretty well, I suppose, what has been done for the young
|
||
|
people. His debts are to be paid, amounting, I believe, to considerably
|
||
|
more than a thousand pounds, another thousand in addition to her own
|
||
|
settled upon _her_, and his commission purchased. The reason why all
|
||
|
this was to be done by him alone, was such as I have given above. It
|
||
|
was owing to him, to his reserve and want of proper consideration, that
|
||
|
Wickham's character had been so misunderstood, and consequently that he
|
||
|
had been received and noticed as he was. Perhaps there was some truth
|
||
|
in _this_; though I doubt whether _his_ reserve, or _anybody's_ reserve,
|
||
|
can be answerable for the event. But in spite of all this fine talking,
|
||
|
my dear Lizzy, you may rest perfectly assured that your uncle would
|
||
|
never have yielded, if we had not given him credit for _another
|
||
|
interest_ in the affair.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When all this was resolved on, he returned again to his friends, who
|
||
|
were still staying at Pemberley; but it was agreed that he should be in
|
||
|
London once more when the wedding took place, and all money matters were
|
||
|
then to receive the last finish.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I believe I have now told you every thing. It is a relation which
|
||
|
you tell me is to give you great surprise; I hope at least it will not
|
||
|
afford you any displeasure. Lydia came to us; and Wickham had constant
|
||
|
admission to the house. _He_ was exactly what he had been, when I
|
||
|
knew him in Hertfordshire; but I would not tell you how little I was
|
||
|
satisfied with her behaviour while she staid with us, if I had not
|
||
|
perceived, by Jane's letter last Wednesday, that her conduct on coming
|
||
|
home was exactly of a piece with it, and therefore what I now tell
|
||
|
you can give you no fresh pain. I talked to her repeatedly in the most
|
||
|
serious manner, representing to her all the wickedness of what she had
|
||
|
done, and all the unhappiness she had brought on her family. If she
|
||
|
heard me, it was by good luck, for I am sure she did not listen. I was
|
||
|
sometimes quite provoked, but then I recollected my dear Elizabeth and
|
||
|
Jane, and for their sakes had patience with her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Darcy was punctual in his return, and as Lydia informed you,
|
||
|
attended the wedding. He dined with us the next day, and was to leave
|
||
|
town again on Wednesday or Thursday. Will you be very angry with me, my
|
||
|
dear Lizzy, if I take this opportunity of saying (what I was never bold
|
||
|
enough to say before) how much I like him. His behaviour to us has,
|
||
|
in every respect, been as pleasing as when we were in Derbyshire. His
|
||
|
understanding and opinions all please me; he wants nothing but a little
|
||
|
more liveliness, and _that_, if he marry _prudently_, his wife may teach
|
||
|
him. I thought him very sly;--he hardly ever mentioned your name. But
|
||
|
slyness seems the fashion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Pray forgive me if I have been very presuming, or at least do not
|
||
|
punish me so far as to exclude me from P. I shall never be quite happy
|
||
|
till I have been all round the park. A low phaeton, with a nice little
|
||
|
pair of ponies, would be the very thing.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But I must write no more. The children have been wanting me this half
|
||
|
hour.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yours, very sincerely,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"M. GARDINER."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The contents of this letter threw Elizabeth into a flutter of spirits,
|
||
|
in which it was difficult to determine whether pleasure or pain bore the
|
||
|
greatest share. The vague and unsettled suspicions which uncertainty had
|
||
|
produced of what Mr. Darcy might have been doing to forward her sister's
|
||
|
match, which she had feared to encourage as an exertion of goodness too
|
||
|
great to be probable, and at the same time dreaded to be just, from the
|
||
|
pain of obligation, were proved beyond their greatest extent to be true!
|
||
|
He had followed them purposely to town, he had taken on himself all
|
||
|
the trouble and mortification attendant on such a research; in which
|
||
|
supplication had been necessary to a woman whom he must abominate and
|
||
|
despise, and where he was reduced to meet, frequently meet, reason
|
||
|
with, persuade, and finally bribe, the man whom he always most wished to
|
||
|
avoid, and whose very name it was punishment to him to pronounce. He had
|
||
|
done all this for a girl whom he could neither regard nor esteem. Her
|
||
|
heart did whisper that he had done it for her. But it was a hope shortly
|
||
|
checked by other considerations, and she soon felt that even her vanity
|
||
|
was insufficient, when required to depend on his affection for her--for
|
||
|
a woman who had already refused him--as able to overcome a sentiment so
|
||
|
natural as abhorrence against relationship with Wickham. Brother-in-law
|
||
|
of Wickham! Every kind of pride must revolt from the connection. He had,
|
||
|
to be sure, done much. She was ashamed to think how much. But he had
|
||
|
given a reason for his interference, which asked no extraordinary
|
||
|
stretch of belief. It was reasonable that he should feel he had been
|
||
|
wrong; he had liberality, and he had the means of exercising it; and
|
||
|
though she would not place herself as his principal inducement, she
|
||
|
could, perhaps, believe that remaining partiality for her might assist
|
||
|
his endeavours in a cause where her peace of mind must be materially
|
||
|
concerned. It was painful, exceedingly painful, to know that they were
|
||
|
under obligations to a person who could never receive a return. They
|
||
|
owed the restoration of Lydia, her character, every thing, to him. Oh!
|
||
|
how heartily did she grieve over every ungracious sensation she had ever
|
||
|
encouraged, every saucy speech she had ever directed towards him. For
|
||
|
herself she was humbled; but she was proud of him. Proud that in a cause
|
||
|
of compassion and honour, he had been able to get the better of himself.
|
||
|
She read over her aunt's commendation of him again and again. It
|
||
|
was hardly enough; but it pleased her. She was even sensible of some
|
||
|
pleasure, though mixed with regret, on finding how steadfastly both she
|
||
|
and her uncle had been persuaded that affection and confidence subsisted
|
||
|
between Mr. Darcy and herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was roused from her seat, and her reflections, by some one's
|
||
|
approach; and before she could strike into another path, she was
|
||
|
overtaken by Wickham.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am afraid I interrupt your solitary ramble, my dear sister?" said he,
|
||
|
as he joined her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You certainly do," she replied with a smile; "but it does not follow
|
||
|
that the interruption must be unwelcome."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I should be sorry indeed, if it were. We were always good friends; and
|
||
|
now we are better."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True. Are the others coming out?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not know. Mrs. Bennet and Lydia are going in the carriage to
|
||
|
Meryton. And so, my dear sister, I find, from our uncle and aunt, that
|
||
|
you have actually seen Pemberley."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She replied in the affirmative.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I almost envy you the pleasure, and yet I believe it would be too much
|
||
|
for me, or else I could take it in my way to Newcastle. And you saw the
|
||
|
old housekeeper, I suppose? Poor Reynolds, she was always very fond of
|
||
|
me. But of course she did not mention my name to you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, she did."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And what did she say?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That you were gone into the army, and she was afraid had--not turned
|
||
|
out well. At such a distance as _that_, you know, things are strangely
|
||
|
misrepresented."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Certainly," he replied, biting his lips. Elizabeth hoped she had
|
||
|
silenced him; but he soon afterwards said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I was surprised to see Darcy in town last month. We passed each other
|
||
|
several times. I wonder what he can be doing there."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Perhaps preparing for his marriage with Miss de Bourgh," said
|
||
|
Elizabeth. "It must be something particular, to take him there at this
|
||
|
time of year."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Undoubtedly. Did you see him while you were at Lambton? I thought I
|
||
|
understood from the Gardiners that you had."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes; he introduced us to his sister."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And do you like her?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very much."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have heard, indeed, that she is uncommonly improved within this year
|
||
|
or two. When I last saw her, she was not very promising. I am very glad
|
||
|
you liked her. I hope she will turn out well."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I dare say she will; she has got over the most trying age."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did you go by the village of Kympton?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not recollect that we did."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I mention it, because it is the living which I ought to have had. A
|
||
|
most delightful place!--Excellent Parsonage House! It would have suited
|
||
|
me in every respect."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How should you have liked making sermons?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Exceedingly well. I should have considered it as part of my duty,
|
||
|
and the exertion would soon have been nothing. One ought not to
|
||
|
repine;--but, to be sure, it would have been such a thing for me! The
|
||
|
quiet, the retirement of such a life would have answered all my ideas
|
||
|
of happiness! But it was not to be. Did you ever hear Darcy mention the
|
||
|
circumstance, when you were in Kent?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have heard from authority, which I thought _as good_, that it was
|
||
|
left you conditionally only, and at the will of the present patron."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have. Yes, there was something in _that_; I told you so from the
|
||
|
first, you may remember."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I _did_ hear, too, that there was a time, when sermon-making was not
|
||
|
so palatable to you as it seems to be at present; that you actually
|
||
|
declared your resolution of never taking orders, and that the business
|
||
|
had been compromised accordingly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You did! and it was not wholly without foundation. You may remember
|
||
|
what I told you on that point, when first we talked of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were now almost at the door of the house, for she had walked fast
|
||
|
to get rid of him; and unwilling, for her sister's sake, to provoke him,
|
||
|
she only said in reply, with a good-humoured smile:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Come, Mr. Wickham, we are brother and sister, you know. Do not let
|
||
|
us quarrel about the past. In future, I hope we shall be always of one
|
||
|
mind."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She held out her hand; he kissed it with affectionate gallantry, though
|
||
|
he hardly knew how to look, and they entered the house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 53
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham was so perfectly satisfied with this conversation that he
|
||
|
never again distressed himself, or provoked his dear sister Elizabeth,
|
||
|
by introducing the subject of it; and she was pleased to find that she
|
||
|
had said enough to keep him quiet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The day of his and Lydia's departure soon came, and Mrs. Bennet was
|
||
|
forced to submit to a separation, which, as her husband by no means
|
||
|
entered into her scheme of their all going to Newcastle, was likely to
|
||
|
continue at least a twelvemonth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! my dear Lydia," she cried, "when shall we meet again?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, lord! I don't know. Not these two or three years, perhaps."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Write to me very often, my dear."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As often as I can. But you know married women have never much time for
|
||
|
writing. My sisters may write to _me_. They will have nothing else to
|
||
|
do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Wickham's adieus were much more affectionate than his wife's. He
|
||
|
smiled, looked handsome, and said many pretty things.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He is as fine a fellow," said Mr. Bennet, as soon as they were out of
|
||
|
the house, "as ever I saw. He simpers, and smirks, and makes love to
|
||
|
us all. I am prodigiously proud of him. I defy even Sir William Lucas
|
||
|
himself to produce a more valuable son-in-law."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The loss of her daughter made Mrs. Bennet very dull for several days.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I often think," said she, "that there is nothing so bad as parting with
|
||
|
one's friends. One seems so forlorn without them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is the consequence, you see, Madam, of marrying a daughter," said
|
||
|
Elizabeth. "It must make you better satisfied that your other four are
|
||
|
single."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is no such thing. Lydia does not leave me because she is married,
|
||
|
but only because her husband's regiment happens to be so far off. If
|
||
|
that had been nearer, she would not have gone so soon."
|
||
|
|
||
|
But the spiritless condition which this event threw her into was shortly
|
||
|
relieved, and her mind opened again to the agitation of hope, by an
|
||
|
article of news which then began to be in circulation. The housekeeper
|
||
|
at Netherfield had received orders to prepare for the arrival of her
|
||
|
master, who was coming down in a day or two, to shoot there for several
|
||
|
weeks. Mrs. Bennet was quite in the fidgets. She looked at Jane, and
|
||
|
smiled and shook her head by turns.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, well, and so Mr. Bingley is coming down, sister," (for Mrs.
|
||
|
Phillips first brought her the news). "Well, so much the better. Not
|
||
|
that I care about it, though. He is nothing to us, you know, and I am
|
||
|
sure _I_ never want to see him again. But, however, he is very welcome
|
||
|
to come to Netherfield, if he likes it. And who knows what _may_ happen?
|
||
|
But that is nothing to us. You know, sister, we agreed long ago never to
|
||
|
mention a word about it. And so, is it quite certain he is coming?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may depend on it," replied the other, "for Mrs. Nicholls was in
|
||
|
Meryton last night; I saw her passing by, and went out myself on purpose
|
||
|
to know the truth of it; and she told me that it was certain true. He
|
||
|
comes down on Thursday at the latest, very likely on Wednesday. She was
|
||
|
going to the butcher's, she told me, on purpose to order in some meat on
|
||
|
Wednesday, and she has got three couple of ducks just fit to be killed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bennet had not been able to hear of his coming without changing
|
||
|
colour. It was many months since she had mentioned his name to
|
||
|
Elizabeth; but now, as soon as they were alone together, she said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I saw you look at me to-day, Lizzy, when my aunt told us of the present
|
||
|
report; and I know I appeared distressed. But don't imagine it was from
|
||
|
any silly cause. I was only confused for the moment, because I felt that
|
||
|
I _should_ be looked at. I do assure you that the news does not affect
|
||
|
me either with pleasure or pain. I am glad of one thing, that he comes
|
||
|
alone; because we shall see the less of him. Not that I am afraid of
|
||
|
_myself_, but I dread other people's remarks."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth did not know what to make of it. Had she not seen him in
|
||
|
Derbyshire, she might have supposed him capable of coming there with no
|
||
|
other view than what was acknowledged; but she still thought him partial
|
||
|
to Jane, and she wavered as to the greater probability of his coming
|
||
|
there _with_ his friend's permission, or being bold enough to come
|
||
|
without it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yet it is hard," she sometimes thought, "that this poor man cannot
|
||
|
come to a house which he has legally hired, without raising all this
|
||
|
speculation! I _will_ leave him to himself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In spite of what her sister declared, and really believed to be her
|
||
|
feelings in the expectation of his arrival, Elizabeth could easily
|
||
|
perceive that her spirits were affected by it. They were more disturbed,
|
||
|
more unequal, than she had often seen them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The subject which had been so warmly canvassed between their parents,
|
||
|
about a twelvemonth ago, was now brought forward again.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"As soon as ever Mr. Bingley comes, my dear," said Mrs. Bennet, "you
|
||
|
will wait on him of course."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No, no. You forced me into visiting him last year, and promised, if I
|
||
|
went to see him, he should marry one of my daughters. But it ended in
|
||
|
nothing, and I will not be sent on a fool's errand again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
His wife represented to him how absolutely necessary such an attention
|
||
|
would be from all the neighbouring gentlemen, on his returning to
|
||
|
Netherfield.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'Tis an etiquette I despise," said he. "If he wants our society,
|
||
|
let him seek it. He knows where we live. I will not spend my hours
|
||
|
in running after my neighbours every time they go away and come back
|
||
|
again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, all I know is, that it will be abominably rude if you do not wait
|
||
|
on him. But, however, that shan't prevent my asking him to dine here, I
|
||
|
am determined. We must have Mrs. Long and the Gouldings soon. That will
|
||
|
make thirteen with ourselves, so there will be just room at table for
|
||
|
him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Consoled by this resolution, she was the better able to bear her
|
||
|
husband's incivility; though it was very mortifying to know that her
|
||
|
neighbours might all see Mr. Bingley, in consequence of it, before
|
||
|
_they_ did. As the day of his arrival drew near,--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I begin to be sorry that he comes at all," said Jane to her sister. "It
|
||
|
would be nothing; I could see him with perfect indifference, but I can
|
||
|
hardly bear to hear it thus perpetually talked of. My mother means well;
|
||
|
but she does not know, no one can know, how much I suffer from what she
|
||
|
says. Happy shall I be, when his stay at Netherfield is over!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I wish I could say anything to comfort you," replied Elizabeth; "but it
|
||
|
is wholly out of my power. You must feel it; and the usual satisfaction
|
||
|
of preaching patience to a sufferer is denied me, because you have
|
||
|
always so much."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley arrived. Mrs. Bennet, through the assistance of servants,
|
||
|
contrived to have the earliest tidings of it, that the period of anxiety
|
||
|
and fretfulness on her side might be as long as it could. She counted
|
||
|
the days that must intervene before their invitation could be sent;
|
||
|
hopeless of seeing him before. But on the third morning after his
|
||
|
arrival in Hertfordshire, she saw him, from her dressing-room window,
|
||
|
enter the paddock and ride towards the house.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her daughters were eagerly called to partake of her joy. Jane resolutely
|
||
|
kept her place at the table; but Elizabeth, to satisfy her mother, went
|
||
|
to the window--she looked,--she saw Mr. Darcy with him, and sat down
|
||
|
again by her sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There is a gentleman with him, mamma," said Kitty; "who can it be?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Some acquaintance or other, my dear, I suppose; I am sure I do not
|
||
|
know."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"La!" replied Kitty, "it looks just like that man that used to be with
|
||
|
him before. Mr. what's-his-name. That tall, proud man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good gracious! Mr. Darcy!--and so it does, I vow. Well, any friend of
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley's will always be welcome here, to be sure; but else I must
|
||
|
say that I hate the very sight of him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane looked at Elizabeth with surprise and concern. She knew but little
|
||
|
of their meeting in Derbyshire, and therefore felt for the awkwardness
|
||
|
which must attend her sister, in seeing him almost for the first time
|
||
|
after receiving his explanatory letter. Both sisters were uncomfortable
|
||
|
enough. Each felt for the other, and of course for themselves; and their
|
||
|
mother talked on, of her dislike of Mr. Darcy, and her resolution to be
|
||
|
civil to him only as Mr. Bingley's friend, without being heard by either
|
||
|
of them. But Elizabeth had sources of uneasiness which could not be
|
||
|
suspected by Jane, to whom she had never yet had courage to shew Mrs.
|
||
|
Gardiner's letter, or to relate her own change of sentiment towards him.
|
||
|
To Jane, he could be only a man whose proposals she had refused,
|
||
|
and whose merit she had undervalued; but to her own more extensive
|
||
|
information, he was the person to whom the whole family were indebted
|
||
|
for the first of benefits, and whom she regarded herself with an
|
||
|
interest, if not quite so tender, at least as reasonable and just as
|
||
|
what Jane felt for Bingley. Her astonishment at his coming--at his
|
||
|
coming to Netherfield, to Longbourn, and voluntarily seeking her again,
|
||
|
was almost equal to what she had known on first witnessing his altered
|
||
|
behaviour in Derbyshire.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The colour which had been driven from her face, returned for half a
|
||
|
minute with an additional glow, and a smile of delight added lustre to
|
||
|
her eyes, as she thought for that space of time that his affection and
|
||
|
wishes must still be unshaken. But she would not be secure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let me first see how he behaves," said she; "it will then be early
|
||
|
enough for expectation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She sat intently at work, striving to be composed, and without daring to
|
||
|
lift up her eyes, till anxious curiosity carried them to the face of
|
||
|
her sister as the servant was approaching the door. Jane looked a little
|
||
|
paler than usual, but more sedate than Elizabeth had expected. On the
|
||
|
gentlemen's appearing, her colour increased; yet she received them with
|
||
|
tolerable ease, and with a propriety of behaviour equally free from any
|
||
|
symptom of resentment or any unnecessary complaisance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth said as little to either as civility would allow, and sat down
|
||
|
again to her work, with an eagerness which it did not often command. She
|
||
|
had ventured only one glance at Darcy. He looked serious, as usual; and,
|
||
|
she thought, more as he had been used to look in Hertfordshire, than as
|
||
|
she had seen him at Pemberley. But, perhaps he could not in her mother's
|
||
|
presence be what he was before her uncle and aunt. It was a painful, but
|
||
|
not an improbable, conjecture.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Bingley, she had likewise seen for an instant, and in that short period
|
||
|
saw him looking both pleased and embarrassed. He was received by Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet with a degree of civility which made her two daughters ashamed,
|
||
|
especially when contrasted with the cold and ceremonious politeness of
|
||
|
her curtsey and address to his friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, particularly, who knew that her mother owed to the latter
|
||
|
the preservation of her favourite daughter from irremediable infamy,
|
||
|
was hurt and distressed to a most painful degree by a distinction so ill
|
||
|
applied.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy, after inquiring of her how Mr. and Mrs. Gardiner did, a question
|
||
|
which she could not answer without confusion, said scarcely anything. He
|
||
|
was not seated by her; perhaps that was the reason of his silence; but
|
||
|
it had not been so in Derbyshire. There he had talked to her friends,
|
||
|
when he could not to herself. But now several minutes elapsed without
|
||
|
bringing the sound of his voice; and when occasionally, unable to resist
|
||
|
the impulse of curiosity, she raised her eyes to his face, she as often
|
||
|
found him looking at Jane as at herself, and frequently on no object but
|
||
|
the ground. More thoughtfulness and less anxiety to please, than when
|
||
|
they last met, were plainly expressed. She was disappointed, and angry
|
||
|
with herself for being so.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Could I expect it to be otherwise!" said she. "Yet why did he come?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was in no humour for conversation with anyone but himself; and to
|
||
|
him she had hardly courage to speak.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She inquired after his sister, but could do no more.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a long time, Mr. Bingley, since you went away," said Mrs. Bennet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He readily agreed to it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I began to be afraid you would never come back again. People _did_ say
|
||
|
you meant to quit the place entirely at Michaelmas; but, however, I hope
|
||
|
it is not true. A great many changes have happened in the neighbourhood,
|
||
|
since you went away. Miss Lucas is married and settled. And one of my
|
||
|
own daughters. I suppose you have heard of it; indeed, you must have
|
||
|
seen it in the papers. It was in The Times and The Courier, I know;
|
||
|
though it was not put in as it ought to be. It was only said, 'Lately,
|
||
|
George Wickham, Esq. to Miss Lydia Bennet,' without there being a
|
||
|
syllable said of her father, or the place where she lived, or anything.
|
||
|
It was my brother Gardiner's drawing up too, and I wonder how he came to
|
||
|
make such an awkward business of it. Did you see it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Bingley replied that he did, and made his congratulations. Elizabeth
|
||
|
dared not lift up her eyes. How Mr. Darcy looked, therefore, she could
|
||
|
not tell.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is a delightful thing, to be sure, to have a daughter well married,"
|
||
|
continued her mother, "but at the same time, Mr. Bingley, it is very
|
||
|
hard to have her taken such a way from me. They are gone down to
|
||
|
Newcastle, a place quite northward, it seems, and there they are to stay
|
||
|
I do not know how long. His regiment is there; for I suppose you have
|
||
|
heard of his leaving the ----shire, and of his being gone into the
|
||
|
regulars. Thank Heaven! he has _some_ friends, though perhaps not so
|
||
|
many as he deserves."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, who knew this to be levelled at Mr. Darcy, was in such
|
||
|
misery of shame, that she could hardly keep her seat. It drew from her,
|
||
|
however, the exertion of speaking, which nothing else had so effectually
|
||
|
done before; and she asked Bingley whether he meant to make any stay in
|
||
|
the country at present. A few weeks, he believed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When you have killed all your own birds, Mr. Bingley," said her mother,
|
||
|
"I beg you will come here, and shoot as many as you please on Mr.
|
||
|
Bennet's manor. I am sure he will be vastly happy to oblige you, and
|
||
|
will save all the best of the covies for you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's misery increased, at such unnecessary, such officious
|
||
|
attention! Were the same fair prospect to arise at present as had
|
||
|
flattered them a year ago, every thing, she was persuaded, would be
|
||
|
hastening to the same vexatious conclusion. At that instant, she felt
|
||
|
that years of happiness could not make Jane or herself amends for
|
||
|
moments of such painful confusion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The first wish of my heart," said she to herself, "is never more to
|
||
|
be in company with either of them. Their society can afford no pleasure
|
||
|
that will atone for such wretchedness as this! Let me never see either
|
||
|
one or the other again!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yet the misery, for which years of happiness were to offer no
|
||
|
compensation, received soon afterwards material relief, from observing
|
||
|
how much the beauty of her sister re-kindled the admiration of her
|
||
|
former lover. When first he came in, he had spoken to her but little;
|
||
|
but every five minutes seemed to be giving her more of his attention. He
|
||
|
found her as handsome as she had been last year; as good natured, and
|
||
|
as unaffected, though not quite so chatty. Jane was anxious that no
|
||
|
difference should be perceived in her at all, and was really persuaded
|
||
|
that she talked as much as ever. But her mind was so busily engaged,
|
||
|
that she did not always know when she was silent.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the gentlemen rose to go away, Mrs. Bennet was mindful of her
|
||
|
intended civility, and they were invited and engaged to dine at
|
||
|
Longbourn in a few days time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are quite a visit in my debt, Mr. Bingley," she added, "for when
|
||
|
you went to town last winter, you promised to take a family dinner with
|
||
|
us, as soon as you returned. I have not forgot, you see; and I assure
|
||
|
you, I was very much disappointed that you did not come back and keep
|
||
|
your engagement."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Bingley looked a little silly at this reflection, and said something of
|
||
|
his concern at having been prevented by business. They then went away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet had been strongly inclined to ask them to stay and dine
|
||
|
there that day; but, though she always kept a very good table, she did
|
||
|
not think anything less than two courses could be good enough for a man
|
||
|
on whom she had such anxious designs, or satisfy the appetite and pride
|
||
|
of one who had ten thousand a year.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 54
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as they were gone, Elizabeth walked out to recover her spirits;
|
||
|
or in other words, to dwell without interruption on those subjects that
|
||
|
must deaden them more. Mr. Darcy's behaviour astonished and vexed her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, if he came only to be silent, grave, and indifferent," said she,
|
||
|
"did he come at all?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She could settle it in no way that gave her pleasure.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He could be still amiable, still pleasing, to my uncle and aunt, when
|
||
|
he was in town; and why not to me? If he fears me, why come hither? If
|
||
|
he no longer cares for me, why silent? Teasing, teasing, man! I will
|
||
|
think no more about him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her resolution was for a short time involuntarily kept by the approach
|
||
|
of her sister, who joined her with a cheerful look, which showed her
|
||
|
better satisfied with their visitors, than Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now," said she, "that this first meeting is over, I feel perfectly
|
||
|
easy. I know my own strength, and I shall never be embarrassed again by
|
||
|
his coming. I am glad he dines here on Tuesday. It will then be publicly
|
||
|
seen that, on both sides, we meet only as common and indifferent
|
||
|
acquaintance."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, very indifferent indeed," said Elizabeth, laughingly. "Oh, Jane,
|
||
|
take care."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Lizzy, you cannot think me so weak, as to be in danger now?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I think you are in very great danger of making him as much in love with
|
||
|
you as ever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
* * * * *
|
||
|
|
||
|
They did not see the gentlemen again till Tuesday; and Mrs. Bennet, in
|
||
|
the meanwhile, was giving way to all the happy schemes, which the good
|
||
|
humour and common politeness of Bingley, in half an hour's visit, had
|
||
|
revived.
|
||
|
|
||
|
On Tuesday there was a large party assembled at Longbourn; and the two
|
||
|
who were most anxiously expected, to the credit of their punctuality
|
||
|
as sportsmen, were in very good time. When they repaired to the
|
||
|
dining-room, Elizabeth eagerly watched to see whether Bingley would take
|
||
|
the place, which, in all their former parties, had belonged to him, by
|
||
|
her sister. Her prudent mother, occupied by the same ideas, forbore
|
||
|
to invite him to sit by herself. On entering the room, he seemed to
|
||
|
hesitate; but Jane happened to look round, and happened to smile: it was
|
||
|
decided. He placed himself by her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, with a triumphant sensation, looked towards his friend.
|
||
|
He bore it with noble indifference, and she would have imagined that
|
||
|
Bingley had received his sanction to be happy, had she not seen his eyes
|
||
|
likewise turned towards Mr. Darcy, with an expression of half-laughing
|
||
|
alarm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
His behaviour to her sister was such, during dinner time, as showed an
|
||
|
admiration of her, which, though more guarded than formerly, persuaded
|
||
|
Elizabeth, that if left wholly to himself, Jane's happiness, and his
|
||
|
own, would be speedily secured. Though she dared not depend upon the
|
||
|
consequence, she yet received pleasure from observing his behaviour. It
|
||
|
gave her all the animation that her spirits could boast; for she was in
|
||
|
no cheerful humour. Mr. Darcy was almost as far from her as the table
|
||
|
could divide them. He was on one side of her mother. She knew how little
|
||
|
such a situation would give pleasure to either, or make either appear to
|
||
|
advantage. She was not near enough to hear any of their discourse, but
|
||
|
she could see how seldom they spoke to each other, and how formal and
|
||
|
cold was their manner whenever they did. Her mother's ungraciousness,
|
||
|
made the sense of what they owed him more painful to Elizabeth's mind;
|
||
|
and she would, at times, have given anything to be privileged to tell
|
||
|
him that his kindness was neither unknown nor unfelt by the whole of the
|
||
|
family.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was in hopes that the evening would afford some opportunity of
|
||
|
bringing them together; that the whole of the visit would not pass away
|
||
|
without enabling them to enter into something more of conversation than
|
||
|
the mere ceremonious salutation attending his entrance. Anxious
|
||
|
and uneasy, the period which passed in the drawing-room, before the
|
||
|
gentlemen came, was wearisome and dull to a degree that almost made her
|
||
|
uncivil. She looked forward to their entrance as the point on which all
|
||
|
her chance of pleasure for the evening must depend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If he does not come to me, _then_," said she, "I shall give him up for
|
||
|
ever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The gentlemen came; and she thought he looked as if he would have
|
||
|
answered her hopes; but, alas! the ladies had crowded round the table,
|
||
|
where Miss Bennet was making tea, and Elizabeth pouring out the coffee,
|
||
|
in so close a confederacy that there was not a single vacancy near her
|
||
|
which would admit of a chair. And on the gentlemen's approaching, one of
|
||
|
the girls moved closer to her than ever, and said, in a whisper:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The men shan't come and part us, I am determined. We want none of them;
|
||
|
do we?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy had walked away to another part of the room. She followed him with
|
||
|
her eyes, envied everyone to whom he spoke, had scarcely patience enough
|
||
|
to help anybody to coffee; and then was enraged against herself for
|
||
|
being so silly!
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A man who has once been refused! How could I ever be foolish enough to
|
||
|
expect a renewal of his love? Is there one among the sex, who would not
|
||
|
protest against such a weakness as a second proposal to the same woman?
|
||
|
There is no indignity so abhorrent to their feelings!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She was a little revived, however, by his bringing back his coffee cup
|
||
|
himself; and she seized the opportunity of saying:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Is your sister at Pemberley still?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, she will remain there till Christmas."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And quite alone? Have all her friends left her?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mrs. Annesley is with her. The others have been gone on to Scarborough,
|
||
|
these three weeks."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She could think of nothing more to say; but if he wished to converse
|
||
|
with her, he might have better success. He stood by her, however, for
|
||
|
some minutes, in silence; and, at last, on the young lady's whispering
|
||
|
to Elizabeth again, he walked away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When the tea-things were removed, and the card-tables placed, the ladies
|
||
|
all rose, and Elizabeth was then hoping to be soon joined by him,
|
||
|
when all her views were overthrown by seeing him fall a victim to her
|
||
|
mother's rapacity for whist players, and in a few moments after seated
|
||
|
with the rest of the party. She now lost every expectation of pleasure.
|
||
|
They were confined for the evening at different tables, and she had
|
||
|
nothing to hope, but that his eyes were so often turned towards her side
|
||
|
of the room, as to make him play as unsuccessfully as herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet had designed to keep the two Netherfield gentlemen to
|
||
|
supper; but their carriage was unluckily ordered before any of the
|
||
|
others, and she had no opportunity of detaining them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well girls," said she, as soon as they were left to themselves, "What
|
||
|
say you to the day? I think every thing has passed off uncommonly well,
|
||
|
I assure you. The dinner was as well dressed as any I ever saw. The
|
||
|
venison was roasted to a turn--and everybody said they never saw so
|
||
|
fat a haunch. The soup was fifty times better than what we had at the
|
||
|
Lucases' last week; and even Mr. Darcy acknowledged, that the partridges
|
||
|
were remarkably well done; and I suppose he has two or three French
|
||
|
cooks at least. And, my dear Jane, I never saw you look in greater
|
||
|
beauty. Mrs. Long said so too, for I asked her whether you did not. And
|
||
|
what do you think she said besides? 'Ah! Mrs. Bennet, we shall have her
|
||
|
at Netherfield at last.' She did indeed. I do think Mrs. Long is as good
|
||
|
a creature as ever lived--and her nieces are very pretty behaved girls,
|
||
|
and not at all handsome: I like them prodigiously."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet, in short, was in very great spirits; she had seen enough of
|
||
|
Bingley's behaviour to Jane, to be convinced that she would get him at
|
||
|
last; and her expectations of advantage to her family, when in a happy
|
||
|
humour, were so far beyond reason, that she was quite disappointed at
|
||
|
not seeing him there again the next day, to make his proposals.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It has been a very agreeable day," said Miss Bennet to Elizabeth. "The
|
||
|
party seemed so well selected, so suitable one with the other. I hope we
|
||
|
may often meet again."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth smiled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lizzy, you must not do so. You must not suspect me. It mortifies me.
|
||
|
I assure you that I have now learnt to enjoy his conversation as an
|
||
|
agreeable and sensible young man, without having a wish beyond it. I am
|
||
|
perfectly satisfied, from what his manners now are, that he never had
|
||
|
any design of engaging my affection. It is only that he is blessed
|
||
|
with greater sweetness of address, and a stronger desire of generally
|
||
|
pleasing, than any other man."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are very cruel," said her sister, "you will not let me smile, and
|
||
|
are provoking me to it every moment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How hard it is in some cases to be believed!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And how impossible in others!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But why should you wish to persuade me that I feel more than I
|
||
|
acknowledge?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is a question which I hardly know how to answer. We all love to
|
||
|
instruct, though we can teach only what is not worth knowing. Forgive
|
||
|
me; and if you persist in indifference, do not make me your confidante."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 55
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
A few days after this visit, Mr. Bingley called again, and alone. His
|
||
|
friend had left him that morning for London, but was to return home in
|
||
|
ten days time. He sat with them above an hour, and was in remarkably
|
||
|
good spirits. Mrs. Bennet invited him to dine with them; but, with many
|
||
|
expressions of concern, he confessed himself engaged elsewhere.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Next time you call," said she, "I hope we shall be more lucky."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He should be particularly happy at any time, etc. etc.; and if she would
|
||
|
give him leave, would take an early opportunity of waiting on them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can you come to-morrow?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Yes, he had no engagement at all for to-morrow; and her invitation was
|
||
|
accepted with alacrity.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He came, and in such very good time that the ladies were none of them
|
||
|
dressed. In ran Mrs. Bennet to her daughter's room, in her dressing
|
||
|
gown, and with her hair half finished, crying out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Jane, make haste and hurry down. He is come--Mr. Bingley is
|
||
|
come. He is, indeed. Make haste, make haste. Here, Sarah, come to Miss
|
||
|
Bennet this moment, and help her on with her gown. Never mind Miss
|
||
|
Lizzy's hair."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We will be down as soon as we can," said Jane; "but I dare say Kitty is
|
||
|
forwarder than either of us, for she went up stairs half an hour ago."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! hang Kitty! what has she to do with it? Come be quick, be quick!
|
||
|
Where is your sash, my dear?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
But when her mother was gone, Jane would not be prevailed on to go down
|
||
|
without one of her sisters.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The same anxiety to get them by themselves was visible again in the
|
||
|
evening. After tea, Mr. Bennet retired to the library, as was his
|
||
|
custom, and Mary went up stairs to her instrument. Two obstacles of
|
||
|
the five being thus removed, Mrs. Bennet sat looking and winking at
|
||
|
Elizabeth and Catherine for a considerable time, without making any
|
||
|
impression on them. Elizabeth would not observe her; and when at last
|
||
|
Kitty did, she very innocently said, "What is the matter mamma? What do
|
||
|
you keep winking at me for? What am I to do?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Nothing child, nothing. I did not wink at you." She then sat still
|
||
|
five minutes longer; but unable to waste such a precious occasion, she
|
||
|
suddenly got up, and saying to Kitty, "Come here, my love, I want to
|
||
|
speak to you," took her out of the room. Jane instantly gave a look
|
||
|
at Elizabeth which spoke her distress at such premeditation, and her
|
||
|
entreaty that _she_ would not give in to it. In a few minutes, Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet half-opened the door and called out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lizzy, my dear, I want to speak with you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was forced to go.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We may as well leave them by themselves you know;" said her mother, as
|
||
|
soon as she was in the hall. "Kitty and I are going up stairs to sit in
|
||
|
my dressing-room."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth made no attempt to reason with her mother, but remained
|
||
|
quietly in the hall, till she and Kitty were out of sight, then returned
|
||
|
into the drawing-room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet's schemes for this day were ineffectual. Bingley was every
|
||
|
thing that was charming, except the professed lover of her daughter. His
|
||
|
ease and cheerfulness rendered him a most agreeable addition to their
|
||
|
evening party; and he bore with the ill-judged officiousness of the
|
||
|
mother, and heard all her silly remarks with a forbearance and command
|
||
|
of countenance particularly grateful to the daughter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
He scarcely needed an invitation to stay supper; and before he went
|
||
|
away, an engagement was formed, chiefly through his own and Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet's means, for his coming next morning to shoot with her husband.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After this day, Jane said no more of her indifference. Not a word passed
|
||
|
between the sisters concerning Bingley; but Elizabeth went to bed in
|
||
|
the happy belief that all must speedily be concluded, unless Mr. Darcy
|
||
|
returned within the stated time. Seriously, however, she felt tolerably
|
||
|
persuaded that all this must have taken place with that gentleman's
|
||
|
concurrence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Bingley was punctual to his appointment; and he and Mr. Bennet spent
|
||
|
the morning together, as had been agreed on. The latter was much more
|
||
|
agreeable than his companion expected. There was nothing of presumption
|
||
|
or folly in Bingley that could provoke his ridicule, or disgust him into
|
||
|
silence; and he was more communicative, and less eccentric, than the
|
||
|
other had ever seen him. Bingley of course returned with him to dinner;
|
||
|
and in the evening Mrs. Bennet's invention was again at work to get
|
||
|
every body away from him and her daughter. Elizabeth, who had a letter
|
||
|
to write, went into the breakfast room for that purpose soon after tea;
|
||
|
for as the others were all going to sit down to cards, she could not be
|
||
|
wanted to counteract her mother's schemes.
|
||
|
|
||
|
But on returning to the drawing-room, when her letter was finished, she
|
||
|
saw, to her infinite surprise, there was reason to fear that her mother
|
||
|
had been too ingenious for her. On opening the door, she perceived her
|
||
|
sister and Bingley standing together over the hearth, as if engaged in
|
||
|
earnest conversation; and had this led to no suspicion, the faces of
|
||
|
both, as they hastily turned round and moved away from each other, would
|
||
|
have told it all. Their situation was awkward enough; but _hers_ she
|
||
|
thought was still worse. Not a syllable was uttered by either; and
|
||
|
Elizabeth was on the point of going away again, when Bingley, who as
|
||
|
well as the other had sat down, suddenly rose, and whispering a few
|
||
|
words to her sister, ran out of the room.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane could have no reserves from Elizabeth, where confidence would give
|
||
|
pleasure; and instantly embracing her, acknowledged, with the liveliest
|
||
|
emotion, that she was the happiest creature in the world.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'Tis too much!" she added, "by far too much. I do not deserve it. Oh!
|
||
|
why is not everybody as happy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's congratulations were given with a sincerity, a warmth,
|
||
|
a delight, which words could but poorly express. Every sentence of
|
||
|
kindness was a fresh source of happiness to Jane. But she would not
|
||
|
allow herself to stay with her sister, or say half that remained to be
|
||
|
said for the present.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I must go instantly to my mother;" she cried. "I would not on any
|
||
|
account trifle with her affectionate solicitude; or allow her to hear it
|
||
|
from anyone but myself. He is gone to my father already. Oh! Lizzy, to
|
||
|
know that what I have to relate will give such pleasure to all my dear
|
||
|
family! how shall I bear so much happiness!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She then hastened away to her mother, who had purposely broken up the
|
||
|
card party, and was sitting up stairs with Kitty.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, who was left by herself, now smiled at the rapidity and ease
|
||
|
with which an affair was finally settled, that had given them so many
|
||
|
previous months of suspense and vexation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And this," said she, "is the end of all his friend's anxious
|
||
|
circumspection! of all his sister's falsehood and contrivance! the
|
||
|
happiest, wisest, most reasonable end!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
In a few minutes she was joined by Bingley, whose conference with her
|
||
|
father had been short and to the purpose.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Where is your sister?" said he hastily, as he opened the door.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"With my mother up stairs. She will be down in a moment, I dare say."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He then shut the door, and, coming up to her, claimed the good wishes
|
||
|
and affection of a sister. Elizabeth honestly and heartily expressed
|
||
|
her delight in the prospect of their relationship. They shook hands with
|
||
|
great cordiality; and then, till her sister came down, she had to listen
|
||
|
to all he had to say of his own happiness, and of Jane's perfections;
|
||
|
and in spite of his being a lover, Elizabeth really believed all his
|
||
|
expectations of felicity to be rationally founded, because they had for
|
||
|
basis the excellent understanding, and super-excellent disposition of
|
||
|
Jane, and a general similarity of feeling and taste between her and
|
||
|
himself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
It was an evening of no common delight to them all; the satisfaction of
|
||
|
Miss Bennet's mind gave a glow of such sweet animation to her face, as
|
||
|
made her look handsomer than ever. Kitty simpered and smiled, and hoped
|
||
|
her turn was coming soon. Mrs. Bennet could not give her consent or
|
||
|
speak her approbation in terms warm enough to satisfy her feelings,
|
||
|
though she talked to Bingley of nothing else for half an hour; and when
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet joined them at supper, his voice and manner plainly showed
|
||
|
how really happy he was.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Not a word, however, passed his lips in allusion to it, till their
|
||
|
visitor took his leave for the night; but as soon as he was gone, he
|
||
|
turned to his daughter, and said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Jane, I congratulate you. You will be a very happy woman."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane went to him instantly, kissed him, and thanked him for his
|
||
|
goodness.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are a good girl;" he replied, "and I have great pleasure in
|
||
|
thinking you will be so happily settled. I have not a doubt of your
|
||
|
doing very well together. Your tempers are by no means unlike. You are
|
||
|
each of you so complying, that nothing will ever be resolved on; so
|
||
|
easy, that every servant will cheat you; and so generous, that you will
|
||
|
always exceed your income."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope not so. Imprudence or thoughtlessness in money matters would be
|
||
|
unpardonable in me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Exceed their income! My dear Mr. Bennet," cried his wife, "what are you
|
||
|
talking of? Why, he has four or five thousand a year, and very likely
|
||
|
more." Then addressing her daughter, "Oh! my dear, dear Jane, I am so
|
||
|
happy! I am sure I shan't get a wink of sleep all night. I knew how it
|
||
|
would be. I always said it must be so, at last. I was sure you could not
|
||
|
be so beautiful for nothing! I remember, as soon as ever I saw him, when
|
||
|
he first came into Hertfordshire last year, I thought how likely it was
|
||
|
that you should come together. Oh! he is the handsomest young man that
|
||
|
ever was seen!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Wickham, Lydia, were all forgotten. Jane was beyond competition her
|
||
|
favourite child. At that moment, she cared for no other. Her younger
|
||
|
sisters soon began to make interest with her for objects of happiness
|
||
|
which she might in future be able to dispense.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mary petitioned for the use of the library at Netherfield; and Kitty
|
||
|
begged very hard for a few balls there every winter.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Bingley, from this time, was of course a daily visitor at Longbourn;
|
||
|
coming frequently before breakfast, and always remaining till after
|
||
|
supper; unless when some barbarous neighbour, who could not be enough
|
||
|
detested, had given him an invitation to dinner which he thought himself
|
||
|
obliged to accept.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth had now but little time for conversation with her sister; for
|
||
|
while he was present, Jane had no attention to bestow on anyone else;
|
||
|
but she found herself considerably useful to both of them in those hours
|
||
|
of separation that must sometimes occur. In the absence of Jane, he
|
||
|
always attached himself to Elizabeth, for the pleasure of talking of
|
||
|
her; and when Bingley was gone, Jane constantly sought the same means of
|
||
|
relief.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He has made me so happy," said she, one evening, "by telling me that he
|
||
|
was totally ignorant of my being in town last spring! I had not believed
|
||
|
it possible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I suspected as much," replied Elizabeth. "But how did he account for
|
||
|
it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It must have been his sister's doing. They were certainly no friends to
|
||
|
his acquaintance with me, which I cannot wonder at, since he might have
|
||
|
chosen so much more advantageously in many respects. But when they see,
|
||
|
as I trust they will, that their brother is happy with me, they will
|
||
|
learn to be contented, and we shall be on good terms again; though we
|
||
|
can never be what we once were to each other."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is the most unforgiving speech," said Elizabeth, "that I ever
|
||
|
heard you utter. Good girl! It would vex me, indeed, to see you again
|
||
|
the dupe of Miss Bingley's pretended regard."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Would you believe it, Lizzy, that when he went to town last November,
|
||
|
he really loved me, and nothing but a persuasion of _my_ being
|
||
|
indifferent would have prevented his coming down again!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"He made a little mistake to be sure; but it is to the credit of his
|
||
|
modesty."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This naturally introduced a panegyric from Jane on his diffidence, and
|
||
|
the little value he put on his own good qualities. Elizabeth was pleased
|
||
|
to find that he had not betrayed the interference of his friend; for,
|
||
|
though Jane had the most generous and forgiving heart in the world, she
|
||
|
knew it was a circumstance which must prejudice her against him.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am certainly the most fortunate creature that ever existed!" cried
|
||
|
Jane. "Oh! Lizzy, why am I thus singled from my family, and blessed
|
||
|
above them all! If I could but see _you_ as happy! If there _were_ but
|
||
|
such another man for you!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you were to give me forty such men, I never could be so happy as
|
||
|
you. Till I have your disposition, your goodness, I never can have your
|
||
|
happiness. No, no, let me shift for myself; and, perhaps, if I have very
|
||
|
good luck, I may meet with another Mr. Collins in time."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The situation of affairs in the Longbourn family could not be long a
|
||
|
secret. Mrs. Bennet was privileged to whisper it to Mrs. Phillips,
|
||
|
and she ventured, without any permission, to do the same by all her
|
||
|
neighbours in Meryton.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Bennets were speedily pronounced to be the luckiest family in the
|
||
|
world, though only a few weeks before, when Lydia had first run away,
|
||
|
they had been generally proved to be marked out for misfortune.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 56
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
One morning, about a week after Bingley's engagement with Jane had been
|
||
|
formed, as he and the females of the family were sitting together in the
|
||
|
dining-room, their attention was suddenly drawn to the window, by the
|
||
|
sound of a carriage; and they perceived a chaise and four driving up
|
||
|
the lawn. It was too early in the morning for visitors, and besides, the
|
||
|
equipage did not answer to that of any of their neighbours. The horses
|
||
|
were post; and neither the carriage, nor the livery of the servant who
|
||
|
preceded it, were familiar to them. As it was certain, however, that
|
||
|
somebody was coming, Bingley instantly prevailed on Miss Bennet to avoid
|
||
|
the confinement of such an intrusion, and walk away with him into the
|
||
|
shrubbery. They both set off, and the conjectures of the remaining three
|
||
|
continued, though with little satisfaction, till the door was thrown
|
||
|
open and their visitor entered. It was Lady Catherine de Bourgh.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They were of course all intending to be surprised; but their
|
||
|
astonishment was beyond their expectation; and on the part of Mrs.
|
||
|
Bennet and Kitty, though she was perfectly unknown to them, even
|
||
|
inferior to what Elizabeth felt.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She entered the room with an air more than usually ungracious, made no
|
||
|
other reply to Elizabeth's salutation than a slight inclination of the
|
||
|
head, and sat down without saying a word. Elizabeth had mentioned her
|
||
|
name to her mother on her ladyship's entrance, though no request of
|
||
|
introduction had been made.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet, all amazement, though flattered by having a guest of such
|
||
|
high importance, received her with the utmost politeness. After sitting
|
||
|
for a moment in silence, she said very stiffly to Elizabeth,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I hope you are well, Miss Bennet. That lady, I suppose, is your
|
||
|
mother."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth replied very concisely that she was.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And _that_ I suppose is one of your sisters."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, madam," said Mrs. Bennet, delighted to speak to Lady Catherine.
|
||
|
"She is my youngest girl but one. My youngest of all is lately married,
|
||
|
and my eldest is somewhere about the grounds, walking with a young man
|
||
|
who, I believe, will soon become a part of the family."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have a very small park here," returned Lady Catherine after a short
|
||
|
silence.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is nothing in comparison of Rosings, my lady, I dare say; but I
|
||
|
assure you it is much larger than Sir William Lucas's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This must be a most inconvenient sitting room for the evening, in
|
||
|
summer; the windows are full west."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet assured her that they never sat there after dinner, and then
|
||
|
added:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"May I take the liberty of asking your ladyship whether you left Mr. and
|
||
|
Mrs. Collins well."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, very well. I saw them the night before last."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth now expected that she would produce a letter for her from
|
||
|
Charlotte, as it seemed the only probable motive for her calling. But no
|
||
|
letter appeared, and she was completely puzzled.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Bennet, with great civility, begged her ladyship to take some
|
||
|
refreshment; but Lady Catherine very resolutely, and not very politely,
|
||
|
declined eating anything; and then, rising up, said to Elizabeth,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Bennet, there seemed to be a prettyish kind of a little wilderness
|
||
|
on one side of your lawn. I should be glad to take a turn in it, if you
|
||
|
will favour me with your company."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Go, my dear," cried her mother, "and show her ladyship about the
|
||
|
different walks. I think she will be pleased with the hermitage."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth obeyed, and running into her own room for her parasol,
|
||
|
attended her noble guest downstairs. As they passed through the
|
||
|
hall, Lady Catherine opened the doors into the dining-parlour and
|
||
|
drawing-room, and pronouncing them, after a short survey, to be decent
|
||
|
looking rooms, walked on.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her carriage remained at the door, and Elizabeth saw that her
|
||
|
waiting-woman was in it. They proceeded in silence along the gravel walk
|
||
|
that led to the copse; Elizabeth was determined to make no effort for
|
||
|
conversation with a woman who was now more than usually insolent and
|
||
|
disagreeable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How could I ever think her like her nephew?" said she, as she looked in
|
||
|
her face.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as they entered the copse, Lady Catherine began in the following
|
||
|
manner:--
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You can be at no loss, Miss Bennet, to understand the reason of my
|
||
|
journey hither. Your own heart, your own conscience, must tell you why I
|
||
|
come."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth looked with unaffected astonishment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed, you are mistaken, Madam. I have not been at all able to account
|
||
|
for the honour of seeing you here."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Bennet," replied her ladyship, in an angry tone, "you ought to
|
||
|
know, that I am not to be trifled with. But however insincere _you_ may
|
||
|
choose to be, you shall not find _me_ so. My character has ever been
|
||
|
celebrated for its sincerity and frankness, and in a cause of such
|
||
|
moment as this, I shall certainly not depart from it. A report of a most
|
||
|
alarming nature reached me two days ago. I was told that not only your
|
||
|
sister was on the point of being most advantageously married, but that
|
||
|
you, that Miss Elizabeth Bennet, would, in all likelihood, be soon
|
||
|
afterwards united to my nephew, my own nephew, Mr. Darcy. Though I
|
||
|
_know_ it must be a scandalous falsehood, though I would not injure him
|
||
|
so much as to suppose the truth of it possible, I instantly resolved
|
||
|
on setting off for this place, that I might make my sentiments known to
|
||
|
you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you believed it impossible to be true," said Elizabeth, colouring
|
||
|
with astonishment and disdain, "I wonder you took the trouble of coming
|
||
|
so far. What could your ladyship propose by it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"At once to insist upon having such a report universally contradicted."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your coming to Longbourn, to see me and my family," said Elizabeth
|
||
|
coolly, "will be rather a confirmation of it; if, indeed, such a report
|
||
|
is in existence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If! Do you then pretend to be ignorant of it? Has it not been
|
||
|
industriously circulated by yourselves? Do you not know that such a
|
||
|
report is spread abroad?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I never heard that it was."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And can you likewise declare, that there is no foundation for it?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do not pretend to possess equal frankness with your ladyship. You may
|
||
|
ask questions which I shall not choose to answer."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is not to be borne. Miss Bennet, I insist on being satisfied. Has
|
||
|
he, has my nephew, made you an offer of marriage?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your ladyship has declared it to be impossible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It ought to be so; it must be so, while he retains the use of his
|
||
|
reason. But your arts and allurements may, in a moment of infatuation,
|
||
|
have made him forget what he owes to himself and to all his family. You
|
||
|
may have drawn him in."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If I have, I shall be the last person to confess it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Bennet, do you know who I am? I have not been accustomed to such
|
||
|
language as this. I am almost the nearest relation he has in the world,
|
||
|
and am entitled to know all his dearest concerns."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But you are not entitled to know mine; nor will such behaviour as this,
|
||
|
ever induce me to be explicit."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Let me be rightly understood. This match, to which you have the
|
||
|
presumption to aspire, can never take place. No, never. Mr. Darcy is
|
||
|
engaged to my daughter. Now what have you to say?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Only this; that if he is so, you can have no reason to suppose he will
|
||
|
make an offer to me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Catherine hesitated for a moment, and then replied:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The engagement between them is of a peculiar kind. From their infancy,
|
||
|
they have been intended for each other. It was the favourite wish of
|
||
|
_his_ mother, as well as of hers. While in their cradles, we planned
|
||
|
the union: and now, at the moment when the wishes of both sisters would
|
||
|
be accomplished in their marriage, to be prevented by a young woman of
|
||
|
inferior birth, of no importance in the world, and wholly unallied to
|
||
|
the family! Do you pay no regard to the wishes of his friends? To his
|
||
|
tacit engagement with Miss de Bourgh? Are you lost to every feeling of
|
||
|
propriety and delicacy? Have you not heard me say that from his earliest
|
||
|
hours he was destined for his cousin?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes, and I had heard it before. But what is that to me? If there is
|
||
|
no other objection to my marrying your nephew, I shall certainly not
|
||
|
be kept from it by knowing that his mother and aunt wished him to
|
||
|
marry Miss de Bourgh. You both did as much as you could in planning the
|
||
|
marriage. Its completion depended on others. If Mr. Darcy is neither
|
||
|
by honour nor inclination confined to his cousin, why is not he to make
|
||
|
another choice? And if I am that choice, why may not I accept him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Because honour, decorum, prudence, nay, interest, forbid it. Yes,
|
||
|
Miss Bennet, interest; for do not expect to be noticed by his family or
|
||
|
friends, if you wilfully act against the inclinations of all. You will
|
||
|
be censured, slighted, and despised, by everyone connected with him.
|
||
|
Your alliance will be a disgrace; your name will never even be mentioned
|
||
|
by any of us."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"These are heavy misfortunes," replied Elizabeth. "But the wife of Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy must have such extraordinary sources of happiness necessarily
|
||
|
attached to her situation, that she could, upon the whole, have no cause
|
||
|
to repine."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Obstinate, headstrong girl! I am ashamed of you! Is this your gratitude
|
||
|
for my attentions to you last spring? Is nothing due to me on that
|
||
|
score? Let us sit down. You are to understand, Miss Bennet, that I came
|
||
|
here with the determined resolution of carrying my purpose; nor will
|
||
|
I be dissuaded from it. I have not been used to submit to any person's
|
||
|
whims. I have not been in the habit of brooking disappointment."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_That_ will make your ladyship's situation at present more pitiable;
|
||
|
but it will have no effect on me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will not be interrupted. Hear me in silence. My daughter and my
|
||
|
nephew are formed for each other. They are descended, on the maternal
|
||
|
side, from the same noble line; and, on the father's, from respectable,
|
||
|
honourable, and ancient--though untitled--families. Their fortune on
|
||
|
both sides is splendid. They are destined for each other by the voice of
|
||
|
every member of their respective houses; and what is to divide them?
|
||
|
The upstart pretensions of a young woman without family, connections,
|
||
|
or fortune. Is this to be endured! But it must not, shall not be. If you
|
||
|
were sensible of your own good, you would not wish to quit the sphere in
|
||
|
which you have been brought up."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"In marrying your nephew, I should not consider myself as quitting that
|
||
|
sphere. He is a gentleman; I am a gentleman's daughter; so far we are
|
||
|
equal."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"True. You _are_ a gentleman's daughter. But who was your mother?
|
||
|
Who are your uncles and aunts? Do not imagine me ignorant of their
|
||
|
condition."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Whatever my connections may be," said Elizabeth, "if your nephew does
|
||
|
not object to them, they can be nothing to _you_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Tell me once for all, are you engaged to him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Though Elizabeth would not, for the mere purpose of obliging Lady
|
||
|
Catherine, have answered this question, she could not but say, after a
|
||
|
moment's deliberation:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am not."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Catherine seemed pleased.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And will you promise me, never to enter into such an engagement?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I will make no promise of the kind."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Miss Bennet I am shocked and astonished. I expected to find a more
|
||
|
reasonable young woman. But do not deceive yourself into a belief that
|
||
|
I will ever recede. I shall not go away till you have given me the
|
||
|
assurance I require."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And I certainly _never_ shall give it. I am not to be intimidated into
|
||
|
anything so wholly unreasonable. Your ladyship wants Mr. Darcy to marry
|
||
|
your daughter; but would my giving you the wished-for promise make their
|
||
|
marriage at all more probable? Supposing him to be attached to me, would
|
||
|
my refusing to accept his hand make him wish to bestow it on his cousin?
|
||
|
Allow me to say, Lady Catherine, that the arguments with which you have
|
||
|
supported this extraordinary application have been as frivolous as the
|
||
|
application was ill-judged. You have widely mistaken my character, if
|
||
|
you think I can be worked on by such persuasions as these. How far your
|
||
|
nephew might approve of your interference in his affairs, I cannot tell;
|
||
|
but you have certainly no right to concern yourself in mine. I must beg,
|
||
|
therefore, to be importuned no farther on the subject."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not so hasty, if you please. I have by no means done. To all the
|
||
|
objections I have already urged, I have still another to add. I am
|
||
|
no stranger to the particulars of your youngest sister's infamous
|
||
|
elopement. I know it all; that the young man's marrying her was a
|
||
|
patched-up business, at the expence of your father and uncles. And is
|
||
|
such a girl to be my nephew's sister? Is her husband, is the son of his
|
||
|
late father's steward, to be his brother? Heaven and earth!--of what are
|
||
|
you thinking? Are the shades of Pemberley to be thus polluted?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You can now have nothing further to say," she resentfully answered.
|
||
|
"You have insulted me in every possible method. I must beg to return to
|
||
|
the house."
|
||
|
|
||
|
And she rose as she spoke. Lady Catherine rose also, and they turned
|
||
|
back. Her ladyship was highly incensed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You have no regard, then, for the honour and credit of my nephew!
|
||
|
Unfeeling, selfish girl! Do you not consider that a connection with you
|
||
|
must disgrace him in the eyes of everybody?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lady Catherine, I have nothing further to say. You know my sentiments."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are then resolved to have him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have said no such thing. I am only resolved to act in that manner,
|
||
|
which will, in my own opinion, constitute my happiness, without
|
||
|
reference to _you_, or to any person so wholly unconnected with me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It is well. You refuse, then, to oblige me. You refuse to obey the
|
||
|
claims of duty, honour, and gratitude. You are determined to ruin him in
|
||
|
the opinion of all his friends, and make him the contempt of the world."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Neither duty, nor honour, nor gratitude," replied Elizabeth, "have any
|
||
|
possible claim on me, in the present instance. No principle of either
|
||
|
would be violated by my marriage with Mr. Darcy. And with regard to the
|
||
|
resentment of his family, or the indignation of the world, if the former
|
||
|
_were_ excited by his marrying me, it would not give me one moment's
|
||
|
concern--and the world in general would have too much sense to join in
|
||
|
the scorn."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And this is your real opinion! This is your final resolve! Very well.
|
||
|
I shall now know how to act. Do not imagine, Miss Bennet, that your
|
||
|
ambition will ever be gratified. I came to try you. I hoped to find you
|
||
|
reasonable; but, depend upon it, I will carry my point."
|
||
|
|
||
|
In this manner Lady Catherine talked on, till they were at the door of
|
||
|
the carriage, when, turning hastily round, she added, "I take no leave
|
||
|
of you, Miss Bennet. I send no compliments to your mother. You deserve
|
||
|
no such attention. I am most seriously displeased."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth made no answer; and without attempting to persuade her
|
||
|
ladyship to return into the house, walked quietly into it herself. She
|
||
|
heard the carriage drive away as she proceeded up stairs. Her mother
|
||
|
impatiently met her at the door of the dressing-room, to ask why Lady
|
||
|
Catherine would not come in again and rest herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She did not choose it," said her daughter, "she would go."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"She is a very fine-looking woman! and her calling here was prodigiously
|
||
|
civil! for she only came, I suppose, to tell us the Collinses were
|
||
|
well. She is on her road somewhere, I dare say, and so, passing through
|
||
|
Meryton, thought she might as well call on you. I suppose she had
|
||
|
nothing particular to say to you, Lizzy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was forced to give into a little falsehood here; for to
|
||
|
acknowledge the substance of their conversation was impossible.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 57
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
The discomposure of spirits which this extraordinary visit threw
|
||
|
Elizabeth into, could not be easily overcome; nor could she, for many
|
||
|
hours, learn to think of it less than incessantly. Lady Catherine, it
|
||
|
appeared, had actually taken the trouble of this journey from Rosings,
|
||
|
for the sole purpose of breaking off her supposed engagement with Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy. It was a rational scheme, to be sure! but from what the report
|
||
|
of their engagement could originate, Elizabeth was at a loss to imagine;
|
||
|
till she recollected that _his_ being the intimate friend of Bingley,
|
||
|
and _her_ being the sister of Jane, was enough, at a time when the
|
||
|
expectation of one wedding made everybody eager for another, to supply
|
||
|
the idea. She had not herself forgotten to feel that the marriage of her
|
||
|
sister must bring them more frequently together. And her neighbours
|
||
|
at Lucas Lodge, therefore (for through their communication with the
|
||
|
Collinses, the report, she concluded, had reached Lady Catherine), had
|
||
|
only set that down as almost certain and immediate, which she had looked
|
||
|
forward to as possible at some future time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
In revolving Lady Catherine's expressions, however, she could not help
|
||
|
feeling some uneasiness as to the possible consequence of her persisting
|
||
|
in this interference. From what she had said of her resolution to
|
||
|
prevent their marriage, it occurred to Elizabeth that she must meditate
|
||
|
an application to her nephew; and how _he_ might take a similar
|
||
|
representation of the evils attached to a connection with her, she dared
|
||
|
not pronounce. She knew not the exact degree of his affection for his
|
||
|
aunt, or his dependence on her judgment, but it was natural to suppose
|
||
|
that he thought much higher of her ladyship than _she_ could do; and it
|
||
|
was certain that, in enumerating the miseries of a marriage with _one_,
|
||
|
whose immediate connections were so unequal to his own, his aunt would
|
||
|
address him on his weakest side. With his notions of dignity, he would
|
||
|
probably feel that the arguments, which to Elizabeth had appeared weak
|
||
|
and ridiculous, contained much good sense and solid reasoning.
|
||
|
|
||
|
If he had been wavering before as to what he should do, which had often
|
||
|
seemed likely, the advice and entreaty of so near a relation might
|
||
|
settle every doubt, and determine him at once to be as happy as dignity
|
||
|
unblemished could make him. In that case he would return no more. Lady
|
||
|
Catherine might see him in her way through town; and his engagement to
|
||
|
Bingley of coming again to Netherfield must give way.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If, therefore, an excuse for not keeping his promise should come to his
|
||
|
friend within a few days," she added, "I shall know how to understand
|
||
|
it. I shall then give over every expectation, every wish of his
|
||
|
constancy. If he is satisfied with only regretting me, when he might
|
||
|
have obtained my affections and hand, I shall soon cease to regret him
|
||
|
at all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
* * * * *
|
||
|
|
||
|
The surprise of the rest of the family, on hearing who their visitor had
|
||
|
been, was very great; but they obligingly satisfied it, with the same
|
||
|
kind of supposition which had appeased Mrs. Bennet's curiosity; and
|
||
|
Elizabeth was spared from much teasing on the subject.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The next morning, as she was going downstairs, she was met by her
|
||
|
father, who came out of his library with a letter in his hand.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lizzy," said he, "I was going to look for you; come into my room."
|
||
|
|
||
|
She followed him thither; and her curiosity to know what he had to
|
||
|
tell her was heightened by the supposition of its being in some manner
|
||
|
connected with the letter he held. It suddenly struck her that it
|
||
|
might be from Lady Catherine; and she anticipated with dismay all the
|
||
|
consequent explanations.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She followed her father to the fire place, and they both sat down. He
|
||
|
then said,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I have received a letter this morning that has astonished me
|
||
|
exceedingly. As it principally concerns yourself, you ought to know its
|
||
|
contents. I did not know before, that I had two daughters on the brink
|
||
|
of matrimony. Let me congratulate you on a very important conquest."
|
||
|
|
||
|
The colour now rushed into Elizabeth's cheeks in the instantaneous
|
||
|
conviction of its being a letter from the nephew, instead of the aunt;
|
||
|
and she was undetermined whether most to be pleased that he explained
|
||
|
himself at all, or offended that his letter was not rather addressed to
|
||
|
herself; when her father continued:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You look conscious. Young ladies have great penetration in such matters
|
||
|
as these; but I think I may defy even _your_ sagacity, to discover the
|
||
|
name of your admirer. This letter is from Mr. Collins."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From Mr. Collins! and what can _he_ have to say?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Something very much to the purpose of course. He begins with
|
||
|
congratulations on the approaching nuptials of my eldest daughter, of
|
||
|
which, it seems, he has been told by some of the good-natured, gossiping
|
||
|
Lucases. I shall not sport with your impatience, by reading what he says
|
||
|
on that point. What relates to yourself, is as follows: 'Having thus
|
||
|
offered you the sincere congratulations of Mrs. Collins and myself on
|
||
|
this happy event, let me now add a short hint on the subject of another;
|
||
|
of which we have been advertised by the same authority. Your daughter
|
||
|
Elizabeth, it is presumed, will not long bear the name of Bennet, after
|
||
|
her elder sister has resigned it, and the chosen partner of her fate may
|
||
|
be reasonably looked up to as one of the most illustrious personages in
|
||
|
this land.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Can you possibly guess, Lizzy, who is meant by this?" 'This young
|
||
|
gentleman is blessed, in a peculiar way, with every thing the heart of
|
||
|
mortal can most desire,--splendid property, noble kindred, and extensive
|
||
|
patronage. Yet in spite of all these temptations, let me warn my cousin
|
||
|
Elizabeth, and yourself, of what evils you may incur by a precipitate
|
||
|
closure with this gentleman's proposals, which, of course, you will be
|
||
|
inclined to take immediate advantage of.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Have you any idea, Lizzy, who this gentleman is? But now it comes out:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'My motive for cautioning you is as follows. We have reason to imagine
|
||
|
that his aunt, Lady Catherine de Bourgh, does not look on the match with
|
||
|
a friendly eye.'
|
||
|
|
||
|
"_Mr. Darcy_, you see, is the man! Now, Lizzy, I think I _have_
|
||
|
surprised you. Could he, or the Lucases, have pitched on any man within
|
||
|
the circle of our acquaintance, whose name would have given the lie
|
||
|
more effectually to what they related? Mr. Darcy, who never looks at any
|
||
|
woman but to see a blemish, and who probably never looked at you in his
|
||
|
life! It is admirable!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth tried to join in her father's pleasantry, but could only force
|
||
|
one most reluctant smile. Never had his wit been directed in a manner so
|
||
|
little agreeable to her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Are you not diverted?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! yes. Pray read on."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"'After mentioning the likelihood of this marriage to her ladyship last
|
||
|
night, she immediately, with her usual condescension, expressed what she
|
||
|
felt on the occasion; when it became apparent, that on the score of some
|
||
|
family objections on the part of my cousin, she would never give her
|
||
|
consent to what she termed so disgraceful a match. I thought it my duty
|
||
|
to give the speediest intelligence of this to my cousin, that she and
|
||
|
her noble admirer may be aware of what they are about, and not run
|
||
|
hastily into a marriage which has not been properly sanctioned.' Mr.
|
||
|
Collins moreover adds, 'I am truly rejoiced that my cousin Lydia's sad
|
||
|
business has been so well hushed up, and am only concerned that their
|
||
|
living together before the marriage took place should be so generally
|
||
|
known. I must not, however, neglect the duties of my station, or refrain
|
||
|
from declaring my amazement at hearing that you received the young
|
||
|
couple into your house as soon as they were married. It was an
|
||
|
encouragement of vice; and had I been the rector of Longbourn, I should
|
||
|
very strenuously have opposed it. You ought certainly to forgive them,
|
||
|
as a Christian, but never to admit them in your sight, or allow their
|
||
|
names to be mentioned in your hearing.' That is his notion of Christian
|
||
|
forgiveness! The rest of his letter is only about his dear Charlotte's
|
||
|
situation, and his expectation of a young olive-branch. But, Lizzy, you
|
||
|
look as if you did not enjoy it. You are not going to be _missish_,
|
||
|
I hope, and pretend to be affronted at an idle report. For what do we
|
||
|
live, but to make sport for our neighbours, and laugh at them in our
|
||
|
turn?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh!" cried Elizabeth, "I am excessively diverted. But it is so
|
||
|
strange!"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yes--_that_ is what makes it amusing. Had they fixed on any other man
|
||
|
it would have been nothing; but _his_ perfect indifference, and _your_
|
||
|
pointed dislike, make it so delightfully absurd! Much as I abominate
|
||
|
writing, I would not give up Mr. Collins's correspondence for any
|
||
|
consideration. Nay, when I read a letter of his, I cannot help giving
|
||
|
him the preference even over Wickham, much as I value the impudence and
|
||
|
hypocrisy of my son-in-law. And pray, Lizzy, what said Lady Catherine
|
||
|
about this report? Did she call to refuse her consent?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
To this question his daughter replied only with a laugh; and as it had
|
||
|
been asked without the least suspicion, she was not distressed by
|
||
|
his repeating it. Elizabeth had never been more at a loss to make her
|
||
|
feelings appear what they were not. It was necessary to laugh, when she
|
||
|
would rather have cried. Her father had most cruelly mortified her, by
|
||
|
what he said of Mr. Darcy's indifference, and she could do nothing but
|
||
|
wonder at such a want of penetration, or fear that perhaps, instead of
|
||
|
his seeing too little, she might have fancied too much.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 58
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Instead of receiving any such letter of excuse from his friend, as
|
||
|
Elizabeth half expected Mr. Bingley to do, he was able to bring Darcy
|
||
|
with him to Longbourn before many days had passed after Lady Catherine's
|
||
|
visit. The gentlemen arrived early; and, before Mrs. Bennet had time
|
||
|
to tell him of their having seen his aunt, of which her daughter sat
|
||
|
in momentary dread, Bingley, who wanted to be alone with Jane, proposed
|
||
|
their all walking out. It was agreed to. Mrs. Bennet was not in the
|
||
|
habit of walking; Mary could never spare time; but the remaining five
|
||
|
set off together. Bingley and Jane, however, soon allowed the others
|
||
|
to outstrip them. They lagged behind, while Elizabeth, Kitty, and Darcy
|
||
|
were to entertain each other. Very little was said by either; Kitty
|
||
|
was too much afraid of him to talk; Elizabeth was secretly forming a
|
||
|
desperate resolution; and perhaps he might be doing the same.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They walked towards the Lucases, because Kitty wished to call upon
|
||
|
Maria; and as Elizabeth saw no occasion for making it a general concern,
|
||
|
when Kitty left them she went boldly on with him alone. Now was the
|
||
|
moment for her resolution to be executed, and, while her courage was
|
||
|
high, she immediately said:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Mr. Darcy, I am a very selfish creature; and, for the sake of giving
|
||
|
relief to my own feelings, care not how much I may be wounding yours. I
|
||
|
can no longer help thanking you for your unexampled kindness to my
|
||
|
poor sister. Ever since I have known it, I have been most anxious to
|
||
|
acknowledge to you how gratefully I feel it. Were it known to the rest
|
||
|
of my family, I should not have merely my own gratitude to express."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am sorry, exceedingly sorry," replied Darcy, in a tone of surprise
|
||
|
and emotion, "that you have ever been informed of what may, in a
|
||
|
mistaken light, have given you uneasiness. I did not think Mrs. Gardiner
|
||
|
was so little to be trusted."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You must not blame my aunt. Lydia's thoughtlessness first betrayed to
|
||
|
me that you had been concerned in the matter; and, of course, I could
|
||
|
not rest till I knew the particulars. Let me thank you again and again,
|
||
|
in the name of all my family, for that generous compassion which induced
|
||
|
you to take so much trouble, and bear so many mortifications, for the
|
||
|
sake of discovering them."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"If you _will_ thank me," he replied, "let it be for yourself alone.
|
||
|
That the wish of giving happiness to you might add force to the other
|
||
|
inducements which led me on, I shall not attempt to deny. But your
|
||
|
_family_ owe me nothing. Much as I respect them, I believe I thought
|
||
|
only of _you_."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth was too much embarrassed to say a word. After a short pause,
|
||
|
her companion added, "You are too generous to trifle with me. If your
|
||
|
feelings are still what they were last April, tell me so at once. _My_
|
||
|
affections and wishes are unchanged, but one word from you will silence
|
||
|
me on this subject for ever."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, feeling all the more than common awkwardness and anxiety of
|
||
|
his situation, now forced herself to speak; and immediately, though not
|
||
|
very fluently, gave him to understand that her sentiments had undergone
|
||
|
so material a change, since the period to which he alluded, as to make
|
||
|
her receive with gratitude and pleasure his present assurances. The
|
||
|
happiness which this reply produced, was such as he had probably never
|
||
|
felt before; and he expressed himself on the occasion as sensibly and as
|
||
|
warmly as a man violently in love can be supposed to do. Had Elizabeth
|
||
|
been able to encounter his eye, she might have seen how well the
|
||
|
expression of heartfelt delight, diffused over his face, became him;
|
||
|
but, though she could not look, she could listen, and he told her of
|
||
|
feelings, which, in proving of what importance she was to him, made his
|
||
|
affection every moment more valuable.
|
||
|
|
||
|
They walked on, without knowing in what direction. There was too much to
|
||
|
be thought, and felt, and said, for attention to any other objects. She
|
||
|
soon learnt that they were indebted for their present good understanding
|
||
|
to the efforts of his aunt, who did call on him in her return through
|
||
|
London, and there relate her journey to Longbourn, its motive, and the
|
||
|
substance of her conversation with Elizabeth; dwelling emphatically on
|
||
|
every expression of the latter which, in her ladyship's apprehension,
|
||
|
peculiarly denoted her perverseness and assurance; in the belief that
|
||
|
such a relation must assist her endeavours to obtain that promise
|
||
|
from her nephew which she had refused to give. But, unluckily for her
|
||
|
ladyship, its effect had been exactly contrariwise.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It taught me to hope," said he, "as I had scarcely ever allowed myself
|
||
|
to hope before. I knew enough of your disposition to be certain that,
|
||
|
had you been absolutely, irrevocably decided against me, you would have
|
||
|
acknowledged it to Lady Catherine, frankly and openly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth coloured and laughed as she replied, "Yes, you know enough
|
||
|
of my frankness to believe me capable of _that_. After abusing you so
|
||
|
abominably to your face, I could have no scruple in abusing you to all
|
||
|
your relations."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What did you say of me, that I did not deserve? For, though your
|
||
|
accusations were ill-founded, formed on mistaken premises, my
|
||
|
behaviour to you at the time had merited the severest reproof. It was
|
||
|
unpardonable. I cannot think of it without abhorrence."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"We will not quarrel for the greater share of blame annexed to that
|
||
|
evening," said Elizabeth. "The conduct of neither, if strictly examined,
|
||
|
will be irreproachable; but since then, we have both, I hope, improved
|
||
|
in civility."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot be so easily reconciled to myself. The recollection of what I
|
||
|
then said, of my conduct, my manners, my expressions during the whole of
|
||
|
it, is now, and has been many months, inexpressibly painful to me. Your
|
||
|
reproof, so well applied, I shall never forget: 'had you behaved in a
|
||
|
more gentlemanlike manner.' Those were your words. You know not, you can
|
||
|
scarcely conceive, how they have tortured me;--though it was some time,
|
||
|
I confess, before I was reasonable enough to allow their justice."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I was certainly very far from expecting them to make so strong an
|
||
|
impression. I had not the smallest idea of their being ever felt in such
|
||
|
a way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I can easily believe it. You thought me then devoid of every proper
|
||
|
feeling, I am sure you did. The turn of your countenance I shall never
|
||
|
forget, as you said that I could not have addressed you in any possible
|
||
|
way that would induce you to accept me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh! do not repeat what I then said. These recollections will not do at
|
||
|
all. I assure you that I have long been most heartily ashamed of it."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Darcy mentioned his letter. "Did it," said he, "did it soon make you
|
||
|
think better of me? Did you, on reading it, give any credit to its
|
||
|
contents?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
She explained what its effect on her had been, and how gradually all her
|
||
|
former prejudices had been removed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I knew," said he, "that what I wrote must give you pain, but it was
|
||
|
necessary. I hope you have destroyed the letter. There was one part
|
||
|
especially, the opening of it, which I should dread your having the
|
||
|
power of reading again. I can remember some expressions which might
|
||
|
justly make you hate me."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The letter shall certainly be burnt, if you believe it essential to the
|
||
|
preservation of my regard; but, though we have both reason to think my
|
||
|
opinions not entirely unalterable, they are not, I hope, quite so easily
|
||
|
changed as that implies."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"When I wrote that letter," replied Darcy, "I believed myself perfectly
|
||
|
calm and cool, but I am since convinced that it was written in a
|
||
|
dreadful bitterness of spirit."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"The letter, perhaps, began in bitterness, but it did not end so. The
|
||
|
adieu is charity itself. But think no more of the letter. The feelings
|
||
|
of the person who wrote, and the person who received it, are now
|
||
|
so widely different from what they were then, that every unpleasant
|
||
|
circumstance attending it ought to be forgotten. You must learn some
|
||
|
of my philosophy. Think only of the past as its remembrance gives you
|
||
|
pleasure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot give you credit for any philosophy of the kind. Your
|
||
|
retrospections must be so totally void of reproach, that the contentment
|
||
|
arising from them is not of philosophy, but, what is much better, of
|
||
|
innocence. But with me, it is not so. Painful recollections will intrude
|
||
|
which cannot, which ought not, to be repelled. I have been a selfish
|
||
|
being all my life, in practice, though not in principle. As a child I
|
||
|
was taught what was right, but I was not taught to correct my temper. I
|
||
|
was given good principles, but left to follow them in pride and conceit.
|
||
|
Unfortunately an only son (for many years an only child), I was spoilt
|
||
|
by my parents, who, though good themselves (my father, particularly, all
|
||
|
that was benevolent and amiable), allowed, encouraged, almost taught
|
||
|
me to be selfish and overbearing; to care for none beyond my own family
|
||
|
circle; to think meanly of all the rest of the world; to wish at least
|
||
|
to think meanly of their sense and worth compared with my own. Such I
|
||
|
was, from eight to eight and twenty; and such I might still have been
|
||
|
but for you, dearest, loveliest Elizabeth! What do I not owe you! You
|
||
|
taught me a lesson, hard indeed at first, but most advantageous. By you,
|
||
|
I was properly humbled. I came to you without a doubt of my reception.
|
||
|
You showed me how insufficient were all my pretensions to please a woman
|
||
|
worthy of being pleased."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Had you then persuaded yourself that I should?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Indeed I had. What will you think of my vanity? I believed you to be
|
||
|
wishing, expecting my addresses."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My manners must have been in fault, but not intentionally, I assure
|
||
|
you. I never meant to deceive you, but my spirits might often lead me
|
||
|
wrong. How you must have hated me after _that_ evening?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Hate you! I was angry perhaps at first, but my anger soon began to take
|
||
|
a proper direction."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am almost afraid of asking what you thought of me, when we met at
|
||
|
Pemberley. You blamed me for coming?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"No indeed; I felt nothing but surprise."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Your surprise could not be greater than _mine_ in being noticed by you.
|
||
|
My conscience told me that I deserved no extraordinary politeness, and I
|
||
|
confess that I did not expect to receive _more_ than my due."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My object then," replied Darcy, "was to show you, by every civility in
|
||
|
my power, that I was not so mean as to resent the past; and I hoped to
|
||
|
obtain your forgiveness, to lessen your ill opinion, by letting you
|
||
|
see that your reproofs had been attended to. How soon any other wishes
|
||
|
introduced themselves I can hardly tell, but I believe in about half an
|
||
|
hour after I had seen you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He then told her of Georgiana's delight in her acquaintance, and of her
|
||
|
disappointment at its sudden interruption; which naturally leading to
|
||
|
the cause of that interruption, she soon learnt that his resolution of
|
||
|
following her from Derbyshire in quest of her sister had been formed
|
||
|
before he quitted the inn, and that his gravity and thoughtfulness
|
||
|
there had arisen from no other struggles than what such a purpose must
|
||
|
comprehend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
She expressed her gratitude again, but it was too painful a subject to
|
||
|
each, to be dwelt on farther.
|
||
|
|
||
|
After walking several miles in a leisurely manner, and too busy to know
|
||
|
anything about it, they found at last, on examining their watches, that
|
||
|
it was time to be at home.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What could become of Mr. Bingley and Jane!" was a wonder which
|
||
|
introduced the discussion of their affairs. Darcy was delighted with
|
||
|
their engagement; his friend had given him the earliest information of
|
||
|
it.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I must ask whether you were surprised?" said Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Not at all. When I went away, I felt that it would soon happen."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"That is to say, you had given your permission. I guessed as much." And
|
||
|
though he exclaimed at the term, she found that it had been pretty much
|
||
|
the case.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"On the evening before my going to London," said he, "I made a
|
||
|
confession to him, which I believe I ought to have made long ago. I
|
||
|
told him of all that had occurred to make my former interference in his
|
||
|
affairs absurd and impertinent. His surprise was great. He had never had
|
||
|
the slightest suspicion. I told him, moreover, that I believed myself
|
||
|
mistaken in supposing, as I had done, that your sister was indifferent
|
||
|
to him; and as I could easily perceive that his attachment to her was
|
||
|
unabated, I felt no doubt of their happiness together."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could not help smiling at his easy manner of directing his
|
||
|
friend.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Did you speak from your own observation," said she, "when you told him
|
||
|
that my sister loved him, or merely from my information last spring?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"From the former. I had narrowly observed her during the two visits
|
||
|
which I had lately made here; and I was convinced of her affection."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And your assurance of it, I suppose, carried immediate conviction to
|
||
|
him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It did. Bingley is most unaffectedly modest. His diffidence had
|
||
|
prevented his depending on his own judgment in so anxious a case, but
|
||
|
his reliance on mine made every thing easy. I was obliged to confess
|
||
|
one thing, which for a time, and not unjustly, offended him. I could not
|
||
|
allow myself to conceal that your sister had been in town three months
|
||
|
last winter, that I had known it, and purposely kept it from him. He was
|
||
|
angry. But his anger, I am persuaded, lasted no longer than he remained
|
||
|
in any doubt of your sister's sentiments. He has heartily forgiven me
|
||
|
now."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth longed to observe that Mr. Bingley had been a most delightful
|
||
|
friend; so easily guided that his worth was invaluable; but she checked
|
||
|
herself. She remembered that he had yet to learn to be laughed at,
|
||
|
and it was rather too early to begin. In anticipating the happiness
|
||
|
of Bingley, which of course was to be inferior only to his own, he
|
||
|
continued the conversation till they reached the house. In the hall they
|
||
|
parted.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 59
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dear Lizzy, where can you have been walking to?" was a question
|
||
|
which Elizabeth received from Jane as soon as she entered their room,
|
||
|
and from all the others when they sat down to table. She had only to
|
||
|
say in reply, that they had wandered about, till she was beyond her own
|
||
|
knowledge. She coloured as she spoke; but neither that, nor anything
|
||
|
else, awakened a suspicion of the truth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The evening passed quietly, unmarked by anything extraordinary. The
|
||
|
acknowledged lovers talked and laughed, the unacknowledged were silent.
|
||
|
Darcy was not of a disposition in which happiness overflows in mirth;
|
||
|
and Elizabeth, agitated and confused, rather _knew_ that she was happy
|
||
|
than _felt_ herself to be so; for, besides the immediate embarrassment,
|
||
|
there were other evils before her. She anticipated what would be felt
|
||
|
in the family when her situation became known; she was aware that no
|
||
|
one liked him but Jane; and even feared that with the others it was a
|
||
|
dislike which not all his fortune and consequence might do away.
|
||
|
|
||
|
At night she opened her heart to Jane. Though suspicion was very far
|
||
|
from Miss Bennet's general habits, she was absolutely incredulous here.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You are joking, Lizzy. This cannot be!--engaged to Mr. Darcy! No, no,
|
||
|
you shall not deceive me. I know it to be impossible."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is a wretched beginning indeed! My sole dependence was on you; and
|
||
|
I am sure nobody else will believe me, if you do not. Yet, indeed, I am
|
||
|
in earnest. I speak nothing but the truth. He still loves me, and we are
|
||
|
engaged."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Jane looked at her doubtingly. "Oh, Lizzy! it cannot be. I know how much
|
||
|
you dislike him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You know nothing of the matter. _That_ is all to be forgot. Perhaps I
|
||
|
did not always love him so well as I do now. But in such cases as
|
||
|
these, a good memory is unpardonable. This is the last time I shall ever
|
||
|
remember it myself."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bennet still looked all amazement. Elizabeth again, and more
|
||
|
seriously assured her of its truth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good Heaven! can it be really so! Yet now I must believe you," cried
|
||
|
Jane. "My dear, dear Lizzy, I would--I do congratulate you--but are you
|
||
|
certain? forgive the question--are you quite certain that you can be
|
||
|
happy with him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"There can be no doubt of that. It is settled between us already, that
|
||
|
we are to be the happiest couple in the world. But are you pleased,
|
||
|
Jane? Shall you like to have such a brother?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Very, very much. Nothing could give either Bingley or myself more
|
||
|
delight. But we considered it, we talked of it as impossible. And do you
|
||
|
really love him quite well enough? Oh, Lizzy! do anything rather than
|
||
|
marry without affection. Are you quite sure that you feel what you ought
|
||
|
to do?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Oh, yes! You will only think I feel _more_ than I ought to do, when I
|
||
|
tell you all."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"What do you mean?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Why, I must confess that I love him better than I do Bingley. I am
|
||
|
afraid you will be angry."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dearest sister, now _be_ serious. I want to talk very seriously. Let
|
||
|
me know every thing that I am to know, without delay. Will you tell me
|
||
|
how long you have loved him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It has been coming on so gradually, that I hardly know when it began.
|
||
|
But I believe I must date it from my first seeing his beautiful grounds
|
||
|
at Pemberley."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Another entreaty that she would be serious, however, produced the
|
||
|
desired effect; and she soon satisfied Jane by her solemn assurances
|
||
|
of attachment. When convinced on that article, Miss Bennet had nothing
|
||
|
further to wish.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Now I am quite happy," said she, "for you will be as happy as myself.
|
||
|
I always had a value for him. Were it for nothing but his love of you,
|
||
|
I must always have esteemed him; but now, as Bingley's friend and your
|
||
|
husband, there can be only Bingley and yourself more dear to me. But
|
||
|
Lizzy, you have been very sly, very reserved with me. How little did you
|
||
|
tell me of what passed at Pemberley and Lambton! I owe all that I know
|
||
|
of it to another, not to you."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth told her the motives of her secrecy. She had been unwilling
|
||
|
to mention Bingley; and the unsettled state of her own feelings had made
|
||
|
her equally avoid the name of his friend. But now she would no longer
|
||
|
conceal from her his share in Lydia's marriage. All was acknowledged,
|
||
|
and half the night spent in conversation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
* * * * *
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good gracious!" cried Mrs. Bennet, as she stood at a window the next
|
||
|
morning, "if that disagreeable Mr. Darcy is not coming here again with
|
||
|
our dear Bingley! What can he mean by being so tiresome as to be always
|
||
|
coming here? I had no notion but he would go a-shooting, or something or
|
||
|
other, and not disturb us with his company. What shall we do with him?
|
||
|
Lizzy, you must walk out with him again, that he may not be in Bingley's
|
||
|
way."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth could hardly help laughing at so convenient a proposal; yet
|
||
|
was really vexed that her mother should be always giving him such an
|
||
|
epithet.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As soon as they entered, Bingley looked at her so expressively, and
|
||
|
shook hands with such warmth, as left no doubt of his good information;
|
||
|
and he soon afterwards said aloud, "Mrs. Bennet, have you no more lanes
|
||
|
hereabouts in which Lizzy may lose her way again to-day?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I advise Mr. Darcy, and Lizzy, and Kitty," said Mrs. Bennet, "to walk
|
||
|
to Oakham Mount this morning. It is a nice long walk, and Mr. Darcy has
|
||
|
never seen the view."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"It may do very well for the others," replied Mr. Bingley; "but I am
|
||
|
sure it will be too much for Kitty. Won't it, Kitty?" Kitty owned that
|
||
|
she had rather stay at home. Darcy professed a great curiosity to see
|
||
|
the view from the Mount, and Elizabeth silently consented. As she went
|
||
|
up stairs to get ready, Mrs. Bennet followed her, saying:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am quite sorry, Lizzy, that you should be forced to have that
|
||
|
disagreeable man all to yourself. But I hope you will not mind it: it is
|
||
|
all for Jane's sake, you know; and there is no occasion for talking
|
||
|
to him, except just now and then. So, do not put yourself to
|
||
|
inconvenience."
|
||
|
|
||
|
During their walk, it was resolved that Mr. Bennet's consent should be
|
||
|
asked in the course of the evening. Elizabeth reserved to herself the
|
||
|
application for her mother's. She could not determine how her mother
|
||
|
would take it; sometimes doubting whether all his wealth and grandeur
|
||
|
would be enough to overcome her abhorrence of the man. But whether she
|
||
|
were violently set against the match, or violently delighted with it, it
|
||
|
was certain that her manner would be equally ill adapted to do credit
|
||
|
to her sense; and she could no more bear that Mr. Darcy should hear
|
||
|
the first raptures of her joy, than the first vehemence of her
|
||
|
disapprobation.
|
||
|
|
||
|
* * * * *
|
||
|
|
||
|
In the evening, soon after Mr. Bennet withdrew to the library, she saw
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy rise also and follow him, and her agitation on seeing it was
|
||
|
extreme. She did not fear her father's opposition, but he was going to
|
||
|
be made unhappy; and that it should be through her means--that _she_,
|
||
|
his favourite child, should be distressing him by her choice, should be
|
||
|
filling him with fears and regrets in disposing of her--was a wretched
|
||
|
reflection, and she sat in misery till Mr. Darcy appeared again, when,
|
||
|
looking at him, she was a little relieved by his smile. In a few minutes
|
||
|
he approached the table where she was sitting with Kitty; and, while
|
||
|
pretending to admire her work said in a whisper, "Go to your father, he
|
||
|
wants you in the library." She was gone directly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Her father was walking about the room, looking grave and anxious.
|
||
|
"Lizzy," said he, "what are you doing? Are you out of your senses, to be
|
||
|
accepting this man? Have not you always hated him?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
How earnestly did she then wish that her former opinions had been more
|
||
|
reasonable, her expressions more moderate! It would have spared her from
|
||
|
explanations and professions which it was exceedingly awkward to give;
|
||
|
but they were now necessary, and she assured him, with some confusion,
|
||
|
of her attachment to Mr. Darcy.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Or, in other words, you are determined to have him. He is rich, to be
|
||
|
sure, and you may have more fine clothes and fine carriages than Jane.
|
||
|
But will they make you happy?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Have you any other objection," said Elizabeth, "than your belief of my
|
||
|
indifference?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"None at all. We all know him to be a proud, unpleasant sort of man; but
|
||
|
this would be nothing if you really liked him."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I do, I do like him," she replied, with tears in her eyes, "I love him.
|
||
|
Indeed he has no improper pride. He is perfectly amiable. You do not
|
||
|
know what he really is; then pray do not pain me by speaking of him in
|
||
|
such terms."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lizzy," said her father, "I have given him my consent. He is the kind
|
||
|
of man, indeed, to whom I should never dare refuse anything, which he
|
||
|
condescended to ask. I now give it to _you_, if you are resolved on
|
||
|
having him. But let me advise you to think better of it. I know
|
||
|
your disposition, Lizzy. I know that you could be neither happy nor
|
||
|
respectable, unless you truly esteemed your husband; unless you looked
|
||
|
up to him as a superior. Your lively talents would place you in the
|
||
|
greatest danger in an unequal marriage. You could scarcely escape
|
||
|
discredit and misery. My child, let me not have the grief of seeing
|
||
|
_you_ unable to respect your partner in life. You know not what you are
|
||
|
about."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth, still more affected, was earnest and solemn in her reply; and
|
||
|
at length, by repeated assurances that Mr. Darcy was really the object
|
||
|
of her choice, by explaining the gradual change which her estimation of
|
||
|
him had undergone, relating her absolute certainty that his affection
|
||
|
was not the work of a day, but had stood the test of many months'
|
||
|
suspense, and enumerating with energy all his good qualities, she did
|
||
|
conquer her father's incredulity, and reconcile him to the match.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Well, my dear," said he, when she ceased speaking, "I have no more to
|
||
|
say. If this be the case, he deserves you. I could not have parted with
|
||
|
you, my Lizzy, to anyone less worthy."
|
||
|
|
||
|
To complete the favourable impression, she then told him what Mr. Darcy
|
||
|
had voluntarily done for Lydia. He heard her with astonishment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"This is an evening of wonders, indeed! And so, Darcy did every thing;
|
||
|
made up the match, gave the money, paid the fellow's debts, and got him
|
||
|
his commission! So much the better. It will save me a world of trouble
|
||
|
and economy. Had it been your uncle's doing, I must and _would_ have
|
||
|
paid him; but these violent young lovers carry every thing their own
|
||
|
way. I shall offer to pay him to-morrow; he will rant and storm about
|
||
|
his love for you, and there will be an end of the matter."
|
||
|
|
||
|
He then recollected her embarrassment a few days before, on his reading
|
||
|
Mr. Collins's letter; and after laughing at her some time, allowed her
|
||
|
at last to go--saying, as she quitted the room, "If any young men come
|
||
|
for Mary or Kitty, send them in, for I am quite at leisure."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's mind was now relieved from a very heavy weight; and, after
|
||
|
half an hour's quiet reflection in her own room, she was able to join
|
||
|
the others with tolerable composure. Every thing was too recent for
|
||
|
gaiety, but the evening passed tranquilly away; there was no longer
|
||
|
anything material to be dreaded, and the comfort of ease and familiarity
|
||
|
would come in time.
|
||
|
|
||
|
When her mother went up to her dressing-room at night, she followed her,
|
||
|
and made the important communication. Its effect was most extraordinary;
|
||
|
for on first hearing it, Mrs. Bennet sat quite still, and unable to
|
||
|
utter a syllable. Nor was it under many, many minutes that she could
|
||
|
comprehend what she heard; though not in general backward to credit
|
||
|
what was for the advantage of her family, or that came in the shape of a
|
||
|
lover to any of them. She began at length to recover, to fidget about in
|
||
|
her chair, get up, sit down again, wonder, and bless herself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Good gracious! Lord bless me! only think! dear me! Mr. Darcy! Who would
|
||
|
have thought it! And is it really true? Oh! my sweetest Lizzy! how rich
|
||
|
and how great you will be! What pin-money, what jewels, what carriages
|
||
|
you will have! Jane's is nothing to it--nothing at all. I am so
|
||
|
pleased--so happy. Such a charming man!--so handsome! so tall!--Oh, my
|
||
|
dear Lizzy! pray apologise for my having disliked him so much before. I
|
||
|
hope he will overlook it. Dear, dear Lizzy. A house in town! Every thing
|
||
|
that is charming! Three daughters married! Ten thousand a year! Oh,
|
||
|
Lord! What will become of me. I shall go distracted."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was enough to prove that her approbation need not be doubted: and
|
||
|
Elizabeth, rejoicing that such an effusion was heard only by herself,
|
||
|
soon went away. But before she had been three minutes in her own room,
|
||
|
her mother followed her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My dearest child," she cried, "I can think of nothing else! Ten
|
||
|
thousand a year, and very likely more! 'Tis as good as a Lord! And a
|
||
|
special licence. You must and shall be married by a special licence. But
|
||
|
my dearest love, tell me what dish Mr. Darcy is particularly fond of,
|
||
|
that I may have it to-morrow."
|
||
|
|
||
|
This was a sad omen of what her mother's behaviour to the gentleman
|
||
|
himself might be; and Elizabeth found that, though in the certain
|
||
|
possession of his warmest affection, and secure of her relations'
|
||
|
consent, there was still something to be wished for. But the morrow
|
||
|
passed off much better than she expected; for Mrs. Bennet luckily stood
|
||
|
in such awe of her intended son-in-law that she ventured not to speak to
|
||
|
him, unless it was in her power to offer him any attention, or mark her
|
||
|
deference for his opinion.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth had the satisfaction of seeing her father taking pains to get
|
||
|
acquainted with him; and Mr. Bennet soon assured her that he was rising
|
||
|
every hour in his esteem.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I admire all my three sons-in-law highly," said he. "Wickham, perhaps,
|
||
|
is my favourite; but I think I shall like _your_ husband quite as well
|
||
|
as Jane's."
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 60
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Elizabeth's spirits soon rising to playfulness again, she wanted Mr.
|
||
|
Darcy to account for his having ever fallen in love with her. "How could
|
||
|
you begin?" said she. "I can comprehend your going on charmingly, when
|
||
|
you had once made a beginning; but what could set you off in the first
|
||
|
place?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I cannot fix on the hour, or the spot, or the look, or the words, which
|
||
|
laid the foundation. It is too long ago. I was in the middle before I
|
||
|
knew that I _had_ begun."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My beauty you had early withstood, and as for my manners--my behaviour
|
||
|
to _you_ was at least always bordering on the uncivil, and I never spoke
|
||
|
to you without rather wishing to give you pain than not. Now be sincere;
|
||
|
did you admire me for my impertinence?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"For the liveliness of your mind, I did."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You may as well call it impertinence at once. It was very little less.
|
||
|
The fact is, that you were sick of civility, of deference, of officious
|
||
|
attention. You were disgusted with the women who were always speaking,
|
||
|
and looking, and thinking for _your_ approbation alone. I roused, and
|
||
|
interested you, because I was so unlike _them_. Had you not been really
|
||
|
amiable, you would have hated me for it; but in spite of the pains you
|
||
|
took to disguise yourself, your feelings were always noble and just; and
|
||
|
in your heart, you thoroughly despised the persons who so assiduously
|
||
|
courted you. There--I have saved you the trouble of accounting for
|
||
|
it; and really, all things considered, I begin to think it perfectly
|
||
|
reasonable. To be sure, you knew no actual good of me--but nobody thinks
|
||
|
of _that_ when they fall in love."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Was there no good in your affectionate behaviour to Jane while she was
|
||
|
ill at Netherfield?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Dearest Jane! who could have done less for her? But make a virtue of it
|
||
|
by all means. My good qualities are under your protection, and you are
|
||
|
to exaggerate them as much as possible; and, in return, it belongs to me
|
||
|
to find occasions for teasing and quarrelling with you as often as may
|
||
|
be; and I shall begin directly by asking you what made you so unwilling
|
||
|
to come to the point at last. What made you so shy of me, when you first
|
||
|
called, and afterwards dined here? Why, especially, when you called, did
|
||
|
you look as if you did not care about me?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Because you were grave and silent, and gave me no encouragement."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"But I was embarrassed."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And so was I."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You might have talked to me more when you came to dinner."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"A man who had felt less, might."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"How unlucky that you should have a reasonable answer to give, and that
|
||
|
I should be so reasonable as to admit it! But I wonder how long you
|
||
|
_would_ have gone on, if you had been left to yourself. I wonder when
|
||
|
you _would_ have spoken, if I had not asked you! My resolution of
|
||
|
thanking you for your kindness to Lydia had certainly great effect.
|
||
|
_Too much_, I am afraid; for what becomes of the moral, if our comfort
|
||
|
springs from a breach of promise? for I ought not to have mentioned the
|
||
|
subject. This will never do."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"You need not distress yourself. The moral will be perfectly fair. Lady
|
||
|
Catherine's unjustifiable endeavours to separate us were the means of
|
||
|
removing all my doubts. I am not indebted for my present happiness to
|
||
|
your eager desire of expressing your gratitude. I was not in a humour
|
||
|
to wait for any opening of yours. My aunt's intelligence had given me
|
||
|
hope, and I was determined at once to know every thing."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Lady Catherine has been of infinite use, which ought to make her happy,
|
||
|
for she loves to be of use. But tell me, what did you come down to
|
||
|
Netherfield for? Was it merely to ride to Longbourn and be embarrassed?
|
||
|
or had you intended any more serious consequence?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"My real purpose was to see _you_, and to judge, if I could, whether I
|
||
|
might ever hope to make you love me. My avowed one, or what I avowed to
|
||
|
myself, was to see whether your sister were still partial to Bingley,
|
||
|
and if she were, to make the confession to him which I have since made."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Shall you ever have courage to announce to Lady Catherine what is to
|
||
|
befall her?"
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I am more likely to want more time than courage, Elizabeth. But it
|
||
|
ought to be done, and if you will give me a sheet of paper, it shall be
|
||
|
done directly."
|
||
|
|
||
|
"And if I had not a letter to write myself, I might sit by you and
|
||
|
admire the evenness of your writing, as another young lady once did. But
|
||
|
I have an aunt, too, who must not be longer neglected."
|
||
|
|
||
|
From an unwillingness to confess how much her intimacy with Mr. Darcy
|
||
|
had been over-rated, Elizabeth had never yet answered Mrs. Gardiner's
|
||
|
long letter; but now, having _that_ to communicate which she knew would
|
||
|
be most welcome, she was almost ashamed to find that her uncle and
|
||
|
aunt had already lost three days of happiness, and immediately wrote as
|
||
|
follows:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I would have thanked you before, my dear aunt, as I ought to have done,
|
||
|
for your long, kind, satisfactory, detail of particulars; but to say the
|
||
|
truth, I was too cross to write. You supposed more than really existed.
|
||
|
But _now_ suppose as much as you choose; give a loose rein to your
|
||
|
fancy, indulge your imagination in every possible flight which the
|
||
|
subject will afford, and unless you believe me actually married, you
|
||
|
cannot greatly err. You must write again very soon, and praise him a
|
||
|
great deal more than you did in your last. I thank you, again and again,
|
||
|
for not going to the Lakes. How could I be so silly as to wish it! Your
|
||
|
idea of the ponies is delightful. We will go round the Park every day. I
|
||
|
am the happiest creature in the world. Perhaps other people have said so
|
||
|
before, but not one with such justice. I am happier even than Jane; she
|
||
|
only smiles, I laugh. Mr. Darcy sends you all the love in the world that
|
||
|
he can spare from me. You are all to come to Pemberley at Christmas.
|
||
|
Yours, etc."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Darcy's letter to Lady Catherine was in a different style; and still
|
||
|
different from either was what Mr. Bennet sent to Mr. Collins, in reply
|
||
|
to his last.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"DEAR SIR,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I must trouble you once more for congratulations. Elizabeth will soon
|
||
|
be the wife of Mr. Darcy. Console Lady Catherine as well as you can.
|
||
|
But, if I were you, I would stand by the nephew. He has more to give.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yours sincerely, etc."
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley's congratulations to her brother, on his approaching
|
||
|
marriage, were all that was affectionate and insincere. She wrote even
|
||
|
to Jane on the occasion, to express her delight, and repeat all her
|
||
|
former professions of regard. Jane was not deceived, but she was
|
||
|
affected; and though feeling no reliance on her, could not help writing
|
||
|
her a much kinder answer than she knew was deserved.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The joy which Miss Darcy expressed on receiving similar information,
|
||
|
was as sincere as her brother's in sending it. Four sides of paper were
|
||
|
insufficient to contain all her delight, and all her earnest desire of
|
||
|
being loved by her sister.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Before any answer could arrive from Mr. Collins, or any congratulations
|
||
|
to Elizabeth from his wife, the Longbourn family heard that the
|
||
|
Collinses were come themselves to Lucas Lodge. The reason of this
|
||
|
sudden removal was soon evident. Lady Catherine had been rendered
|
||
|
so exceedingly angry by the contents of her nephew's letter, that
|
||
|
Charlotte, really rejoicing in the match, was anxious to get away till
|
||
|
the storm was blown over. At such a moment, the arrival of her friend
|
||
|
was a sincere pleasure to Elizabeth, though in the course of their
|
||
|
meetings she must sometimes think the pleasure dearly bought, when she
|
||
|
saw Mr. Darcy exposed to all the parading and obsequious civility of
|
||
|
her husband. He bore it, however, with admirable calmness. He could even
|
||
|
listen to Sir William Lucas, when he complimented him on carrying away
|
||
|
the brightest jewel of the country, and expressed his hopes of their all
|
||
|
meeting frequently at St. James's, with very decent composure. If he did
|
||
|
shrug his shoulders, it was not till Sir William was out of sight.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mrs. Phillips's vulgarity was another, and perhaps a greater, tax on his
|
||
|
forbearance; and though Mrs. Phillips, as well as her sister, stood in
|
||
|
too much awe of him to speak with the familiarity which Bingley's good
|
||
|
humour encouraged, yet, whenever she _did_ speak, she must be vulgar.
|
||
|
Nor was her respect for him, though it made her more quiet, at all
|
||
|
likely to make her more elegant. Elizabeth did all she could to shield
|
||
|
him from the frequent notice of either, and was ever anxious to keep
|
||
|
him to herself, and to those of her family with whom he might converse
|
||
|
without mortification; and though the uncomfortable feelings arising
|
||
|
from all this took from the season of courtship much of its pleasure, it
|
||
|
added to the hope of the future; and she looked forward with delight to
|
||
|
the time when they should be removed from society so little pleasing
|
||
|
to either, to all the comfort and elegance of their family party at
|
||
|
Pemberley.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Chapter 61
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Happy for all her maternal feelings was the day on which Mrs. Bennet got
|
||
|
rid of her two most deserving daughters. With what delighted pride
|
||
|
she afterwards visited Mrs. Bingley, and talked of Mrs. Darcy, may
|
||
|
be guessed. I wish I could say, for the sake of her family, that the
|
||
|
accomplishment of her earnest desire in the establishment of so many
|
||
|
of her children produced so happy an effect as to make her a sensible,
|
||
|
amiable, well-informed woman for the rest of her life; though perhaps it
|
||
|
was lucky for her husband, who might not have relished domestic felicity
|
||
|
in so unusual a form, that she still was occasionally nervous and
|
||
|
invariably silly.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bennet missed his second daughter exceedingly; his affection for her
|
||
|
drew him oftener from home than anything else could do. He delighted in
|
||
|
going to Pemberley, especially when he was least expected.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mr. Bingley and Jane remained at Netherfield only a twelvemonth. So near
|
||
|
a vicinity to her mother and Meryton relations was not desirable even to
|
||
|
_his_ easy temper, or _her_ affectionate heart. The darling wish of his
|
||
|
sisters was then gratified; he bought an estate in a neighbouring county
|
||
|
to Derbyshire, and Jane and Elizabeth, in addition to every other source
|
||
|
of happiness, were within thirty miles of each other.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Kitty, to her very material advantage, spent the chief of her time with
|
||
|
her two elder sisters. In society so superior to what she had generally
|
||
|
known, her improvement was great. She was not of so ungovernable a
|
||
|
temper as Lydia; and, removed from the influence of Lydia's example,
|
||
|
she became, by proper attention and management, less irritable, less
|
||
|
ignorant, and less insipid. From the further disadvantage of Lydia's
|
||
|
society she was of course carefully kept, and though Mrs. Wickham
|
||
|
frequently invited her to come and stay with her, with the promise of
|
||
|
balls and young men, her father would never consent to her going.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Mary was the only daughter who remained at home; and she was necessarily
|
||
|
drawn from the pursuit of accomplishments by Mrs. Bennet's being quite
|
||
|
unable to sit alone. Mary was obliged to mix more with the world, but
|
||
|
she could still moralize over every morning visit; and as she was no
|
||
|
longer mortified by comparisons between her sisters' beauty and her own,
|
||
|
it was suspected by her father that she submitted to the change without
|
||
|
much reluctance.
|
||
|
|
||
|
As for Wickham and Lydia, their characters suffered no revolution from
|
||
|
the marriage of her sisters. He bore with philosophy the conviction that
|
||
|
Elizabeth must now become acquainted with whatever of his ingratitude
|
||
|
and falsehood had before been unknown to her; and in spite of every
|
||
|
thing, was not wholly without hope that Darcy might yet be prevailed on
|
||
|
to make his fortune. The congratulatory letter which Elizabeth received
|
||
|
from Lydia on her marriage, explained to her that, by his wife at least,
|
||
|
if not by himself, such a hope was cherished. The letter was to this
|
||
|
effect:
|
||
|
|
||
|
"MY DEAR LIZZY,
|
||
|
|
||
|
"I wish you joy. If you love Mr. Darcy half as well as I do my dear
|
||
|
Wickham, you must be very happy. It is a great comfort to have you so
|
||
|
rich, and when you have nothing else to do, I hope you will think of us.
|
||
|
I am sure Wickham would like a place at court very much, and I do not
|
||
|
think we shall have quite money enough to live upon without some help.
|
||
|
Any place would do, of about three or four hundred a year; but however,
|
||
|
do not speak to Mr. Darcy about it, if you had rather not.
|
||
|
|
||
|
"Yours, etc."
|
||
|
|
||
|
As it happened that Elizabeth had _much_ rather not, she endeavoured in
|
||
|
her answer to put an end to every entreaty and expectation of the kind.
|
||
|
Such relief, however, as it was in her power to afford, by the practice
|
||
|
of what might be called economy in her own private expences, she
|
||
|
frequently sent them. It had always been evident to her that such an
|
||
|
income as theirs, under the direction of two persons so extravagant in
|
||
|
their wants, and heedless of the future, must be very insufficient to
|
||
|
their support; and whenever they changed their quarters, either Jane or
|
||
|
herself were sure of being applied to for some little assistance
|
||
|
towards discharging their bills. Their manner of living, even when the
|
||
|
restoration of peace dismissed them to a home, was unsettled in the
|
||
|
extreme. They were always moving from place to place in quest of a cheap
|
||
|
situation, and always spending more than they ought. His affection for
|
||
|
her soon sunk into indifference; hers lasted a little longer; and
|
||
|
in spite of her youth and her manners, she retained all the claims to
|
||
|
reputation which her marriage had given her.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Though Darcy could never receive _him_ at Pemberley, yet, for
|
||
|
Elizabeth's sake, he assisted him further in his profession. Lydia was
|
||
|
occasionally a visitor there, when her husband was gone to enjoy himself
|
||
|
in London or Bath; and with the Bingleys they both of them frequently
|
||
|
staid so long, that even Bingley's good humour was overcome, and he
|
||
|
proceeded so far as to talk of giving them a hint to be gone.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Miss Bingley was very deeply mortified by Darcy's marriage; but as she
|
||
|
thought it advisable to retain the right of visiting at Pemberley, she
|
||
|
dropt all her resentment; was fonder than ever of Georgiana, almost as
|
||
|
attentive to Darcy as heretofore, and paid off every arrear of civility
|
||
|
to Elizabeth.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Pemberley was now Georgiana's home; and the attachment of the sisters
|
||
|
was exactly what Darcy had hoped to see. They were able to love each
|
||
|
other even as well as they intended. Georgiana had the highest opinion
|
||
|
in the world of Elizabeth; though at first she often listened with
|
||
|
an astonishment bordering on alarm at her lively, sportive, manner of
|
||
|
talking to her brother. He, who had always inspired in herself a respect
|
||
|
which almost overcame her affection, she now saw the object of open
|
||
|
pleasantry. Her mind received knowledge which had never before fallen
|
||
|
in her way. By Elizabeth's instructions, she began to comprehend that
|
||
|
a woman may take liberties with her husband which a brother will not
|
||
|
always allow in a sister more than ten years younger than himself.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Lady Catherine was extremely indignant on the marriage of her nephew;
|
||
|
and as she gave way to all the genuine frankness of her character in
|
||
|
her reply to the letter which announced its arrangement, she sent him
|
||
|
language so very abusive, especially of Elizabeth, that for some time
|
||
|
all intercourse was at an end. But at length, by Elizabeth's persuasion,
|
||
|
he was prevailed on to overlook the offence, and seek a reconciliation;
|
||
|
and, after a little further resistance on the part of his aunt, her
|
||
|
resentment gave way, either to her affection for him, or her curiosity
|
||
|
to see how his wife conducted herself; and she condescended to wait
|
||
|
on them at Pemberley, in spite of that pollution which its woods had
|
||
|
received, not merely from the presence of such a mistress, but the
|
||
|
visits of her uncle and aunt from the city.
|
||
|
|
||
|
With the Gardiners, they were always on the most intimate terms.
|
||
|
Darcy, as well as Elizabeth, really loved them; and they were both ever
|
||
|
sensible of the warmest gratitude towards the persons who, by bringing
|
||
|
her into Derbyshire, had been the means of uniting them.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Pride and Prejudice, by Jane Austen
|
||
|
|
||
|
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK PRIDE AND PREJUDICE ***
|
||
|
|
||
|
***** This file should be named 1342.txt or 1342.zip *****
|
||
|
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
|
||
|
http://www.gutenberg.org/1/3/4/1342/
|
||
|
|
||
|
Produced by Anonymous Volunteers
|
||
|
|
||
|
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
|
||
|
will be renamed.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
|
||
|
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
|
||
|
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
|
||
|
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
|
||
|
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
|
||
|
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
|
||
|
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
|
||
|
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
|
||
|
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
|
||
|
rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
|
||
|
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
|
||
|
research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
|
||
|
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
|
||
|
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
|
||
|
redistribution.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
|
||
|
|
||
|
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
|
||
|
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
|
||
|
|
||
|
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
|
||
|
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
|
||
|
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
|
||
|
http://gutenberg.org/license).
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
electronic works
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
|
||
|
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
|
||
|
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
|
||
|
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
|
||
|
all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
|
||
|
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
|
||
|
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
|
||
|
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
|
||
|
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
|
||
|
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
|
||
|
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
|
||
|
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
|
||
|
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
|
||
|
and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
||
|
works. See paragraph 1.E below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
|
||
|
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
|
||
|
collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
|
||
|
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
|
||
|
located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
|
||
|
copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
|
||
|
works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
|
||
|
are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
|
||
|
freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
|
||
|
this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
|
||
|
the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
|
||
|
keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
|
||
|
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
|
||
|
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
|
||
|
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
|
||
|
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
|
||
|
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
|
||
|
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
|
||
|
States.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
|
||
|
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
|
||
|
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
|
||
|
phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
|
||
|
copied or distributed:
|
||
|
|
||
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
|
||
|
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
|
||
|
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
|
||
|
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
|
||
|
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
|
||
|
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
|
||
|
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
|
||
|
or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
|
||
|
with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
|
||
|
work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
|
||
|
through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
|
||
|
1.E.9.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
|
||
|
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
|
||
|
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
|
||
|
terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
|
||
|
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
|
||
|
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
|
||
|
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
|
||
|
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
|
||
|
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
|
||
|
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm License.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
|
||
|
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
|
||
|
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
|
||
|
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
|
||
|
"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
|
||
|
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
|
||
|
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
|
||
|
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
|
||
|
request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
|
||
|
form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
|
||
|
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
|
||
|
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
|
||
|
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
|
||
|
that
|
||
|
|
||
|
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
|
||
|
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
|
||
|
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
|
||
|
owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
|
||
|
has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
|
||
|
must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
|
||
|
prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
|
||
|
returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
|
||
|
sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
|
||
|
address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
|
||
|
the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
|
||
|
|
||
|
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
|
||
|
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
|
||
|
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
License. You must require such a user to return or
|
||
|
destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
|
||
|
and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
||
|
|
||
|
- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
|
||
|
money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
|
||
|
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
|
||
|
of receipt of the work.
|
||
|
|
||
|
- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
|
||
|
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
|
||
|
forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
|
||
|
both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
|
||
|
Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
|
||
|
Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
|
||
|
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
|
||
|
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
||
|
works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
|
||
|
"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
|
||
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
|
||
|
property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
|
||
|
computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
|
||
|
your equipment.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
|
||
|
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
|
||
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
|
||
|
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
|
||
|
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
|
||
|
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
|
||
|
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
|
||
|
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
|
||
|
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
|
||
|
DAMAGE.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
|
||
|
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
|
||
|
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
|
||
|
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
|
||
|
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
|
||
|
your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
|
||
|
the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
|
||
|
refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
|
||
|
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
|
||
|
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
|
||
|
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
|
||
|
opportunities to fix the problem.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
|
||
|
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
|
||
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
|
||
|
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
|
||
|
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
|
||
|
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
|
||
|
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
|
||
|
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
|
||
|
the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
|
||
|
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
|
||
|
|
||
|
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
|
||
|
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
|
||
|
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
|
||
|
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
|
||
|
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
|
||
|
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
|
||
|
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
|
||
|
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
|
||
|
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
|
||
|
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
|
||
|
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
|
||
|
people in all walks of life.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
|
||
|
assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
|
||
|
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
|
||
|
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
|
||
|
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
|
||
|
To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
|
||
|
and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
|
||
|
and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
|
||
|
Foundation
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
|
||
|
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
|
||
|
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
|
||
|
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
|
||
|
number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
|
||
|
http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
|
||
|
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
|
||
|
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
|
||
|
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
|
||
|
throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
|
||
|
809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
|
||
|
business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
|
||
|
information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
|
||
|
page at http://pglaf.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
For additional contact information:
|
||
|
Dr. Gregory B. Newby
|
||
|
Chief Executive and Director
|
||
|
gbnewby@pglaf.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
|
||
|
Literary Archive Foundation
|
||
|
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
|
||
|
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
|
||
|
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
|
||
|
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
|
||
|
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
|
||
|
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
|
||
|
status with the IRS.
|
||
|
|
||
|
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
|
||
|
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
|
||
|
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
|
||
|
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
|
||
|
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
|
||
|
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
|
||
|
SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
|
||
|
particular state visit http://pglaf.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
|
||
|
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
|
||
|
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
|
||
|
approach us with offers to donate.
|
||
|
|
||
|
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
|
||
|
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
|
||
|
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
|
||
|
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
|
||
|
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
|
||
|
To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
||
|
works.
|
||
|
|
||
|
Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
||
|
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
|
||
|
with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
|
||
|
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
|
||
|
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
|
||
|
unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
|
||
|
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
|
||
|
|
||
|
|
||
|
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
|
||
|
|
||
|
http://www.gutenberg.org
|
||
|
|
||
|
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
|
||
|
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
|
||
|
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
|
||
|
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
|